Laws from Heaven for Life on Earth.
ILLUSTRATIONS
OF THE
BOOK OF PROVERBS.
BY THE
REV. WILLIAM ARNOT,
ST. PETER'S FREE CLIMB, GLASGOW.
First Series.
Vol. 1.
LONDON;
T. NELSON AND SONS, PATERNOSTER ROW;
EDINBURGH; AND NEW YORK.
MDCCCLXIII.
TO THE READER.
THESE illustrations of the Proverbs are not critical, con-
tinuous, exhaustive. The comments, in imitation of the
text, are intended to be brief, practical, miscellaneous,
isolated. The reader may, however, perceive a principle
of unity running through the whole, if he takes his stand
at the outset on the writer's view point—a desire to
lay the Christian System along the surface of common
life, without removing it from its foundations in the
doctrines of Grace. The authority of the instructions
must be divine: the form transparently human. Al-
though the lessons should, with a pliant familiarity, lay
themselves along the line of men's thoughts and actions,
they will work no deliverance, unless redeeming love be
everywhere the power to press them in. On the other
hand, although evangelical doctrine be consistently main-
tained throughout, the teaching will come short of its
purpose unless it go right into every crevice of a corrupt
heart, and perseveringly double every turn of a crooked
path. Without "the love wherewith He loved us" as
our motive power, we cannot reach for healing any of the
deeper ailments of the world: but having such a power
within our reach, we should not leave it dangling in the
air; we should bring it down, and make it bear on every
iv TO THE READER.
sorrow that afflicts, and every sin that defiles humanity.
The two extremes to be avoided are, abstract unpractical
speculation, and shallow, powerless, heathen morality; the
one a soul without a body, the other a body without a
soul—the one a ghost, the other a carcass. The aim is
to be doctrinal without losing our hold of earth, and
practical without losing our hold of heaven.
Most certain it is that if the Church at any period, or
any portion of the Church, has fallen into either of these
extremes, it has been her own fault; for the Bible, her
standard, is clear from both imputations. Christ is its
subject and its substance. His word is like Himself.
It is of heaven, but it lays itself closely around the life
of men. Such is the Bible; and such, in their own
place and measure, should our expositions of it be.
Had our object been a critical exposition of the Book,
it would have been our duty to devote the larger share of
our attention to the more difficult parts. But our aim from
first to last has been more to apply the obvious than to
elucidate the obscure, and the selection of texts has been
determined accordingly. As there is diversity of gifts,
there should be division of labour. While scientific
inquirers re-examine the joints of the machine, and
demonstrate anew the principles of its construction, it
may not be amiss that a workman should set the machine
a-going, and try its effects on the affairs of life.
W. A.
CONTENTS.
Page
I. THE PREACHER 9
II. THE BOOK—PROVERBS 15
III. THE ROOT OF KNOWLEDGE 19
IV. THE FAMILY 25
V. FILIAL LOVE A BLOSSOM OF BEAUTY 30
VI. THE FOE AND THE FIGHT 34
VII. FILTHY LUCRE 57
VIII. THE CRY OF WISDOM 64
IX. A REVIVAL 72
X. SOWING DISOBEDIENCE, REAPING JUDGMENT 78
XI. SEEK AND YE SHALL FIND 88
XII. PERILS IN THE DEEP 97
XIII. THE MEANS OF SAFETY 104
XIV. A GOOD MEMORY 106
XV. THE ART OF PRINTING 110
XVI. TRUST 116
XVII. THE HEALTH OF HOLINESS 121
XVIII. CAPITAL AND PROFIT 123
XIX. A FATHERLY WORD ON FATHERLY CORRECTION 126
XX. TREASURES FOR THE TAKING 134
XXI. GAINFUL MERCHANDISE 136
XXII. LENGTH OF DAYS IN THE HAND OF WISDOM 139
XXIII. A PLEASANT PATH 142
vi CONTENTS.
Page
XXIV. WISDOM MAKING AND MANAGING WORLDS 144
XXV. CONFIDENCE IN GOD THE TRUE SAFEGUARD FROM
TEMPTATION 147
XXVI. THE RIGHT THING DONE AT THE RIGHT TIME 152
XXVII. THE CURSE AND THE BLESSING UPON THE HOUSE 158
XXVIII. PRECEPT AND EXAMPLE 161
XXIX. HOLD FAST 163
XXX. THE PATH OP THE JUST 166
XXXI. THE FOUNTAIN AND ITS STREAM 171
XXXII. FAMILY JOYS 179
XXXIII. THE METHOD OP PROVIDENCE FOR RESTRAINING EVIL 185
XXXIV. SEVEN HATEFUL THINGS 188
XXXV. MOTHER'S LAW 190
XXXVI. THE WORTH Or WISDOM 197
XX XVII. HATE EVIL 200
XXXVIII. RANK AND RICHES 202
XXXIX. THE REDEEMER ANTICIPATING REDEMPTION 205
XL. THE MARRIAGE SUPPER FOR THE KING'S SON 200
XLI. REPROOF 213
XLII. THE TALENT AND ITS PRODUCT 219
XLIII. THE PLEASURES OF SIN 221
XLIV. THE PLACE AND POWER OF A SON 229
XLV. DILIGENT IN BUSINESS 234
XLVI. POSTHUMOUS FAME 236
XLVII. THE WISE TAKE ADVICE: FOOLS ONLY GIVE IT 238
XLVIII. THE CENTRE OF GRAVITY 240
XLIX. THE WELL OF LIFE 242
L. EXPERIENCE KEPT FOR USE 245
LL THE MONEY POWER 247
LII. THE LIPS AND TONGUE 251
LIII. THE BLESSING OF THE LORD MAKETH RICH 254
LIV. A FOOL'S SPORT 261
CONTENTS. vii
Page
LV. FILM REALIZED, AND HOPES FULFILLED 263
LVI. THE PAINING WHIRLWIND AND THE SURE FOUNDATION 273
LVII. THE GREATNESS OF LITTLE THINGS 274
LVIII. HONESTY IS THE BEST POLICY 279
LIX. ASSORTED PAIRS 285
LX. DIPLOMACY 288
LXI. THE DESTROYER OF A NEIGHBOUR 290
LXII. A TALEBEARER 292
LVIII. DEBTS AND SURETIES 294
LXIV. VIRTUE ITS OWN REWARD 303
LXV. EVERY SEED BEARS FRUIT OF ITS OWN KIND 305
LXVI. GOD'S PEOPLE ARE GOD'S DELIGHT 307
LXVII. A JEWEL ILL SET 308
LXVIII. THE DESIRE OF THE RIGHTEOUS 312
LXIX. SCATTERING TO KEEP, AND KEEPING TO SCATTER 315
LXX. THE WATERER IS WATERED 319
LXXI. RAISING THE MARKET—THE PRACTICE AND THE
PENALTY 323
LXXII. THE TREE AND ITS BRANCH 327
LXXIII. THE WISDOM OF WINNING SOULS 333
LXXIV. A BITTER BUT HEALTHFUL MORSEL 336
LXXV. A HUSBAND'S CROWN 340
LXXVI. THE TENDER MERCIES OP THE WICKED 343
LXXVII. LIES, THE SNARE THAT LIARS ARE CAUGHT IN 345
LXXVIII. HOPE DEFERRED 347
LXXIX. GOD'S WORD THE PRESERVER OF NATIONS 350
LXXX. THE HARD WAY 352
LXXXI. THE CHOICE OF COMPANIONS 355
LXXXII. THE FATHER WHO HATES HIS SON 359
LX XXIII. SECULARISM 367
LXXXIV. FLIGHT, THE SAFETY OF THE WEAK 373
LXXXV. SYMPATHY 375
viii CONTENTS.
Page.
LXXXVI. A MAN IS RESPONSIBLE FOR HIS BELIEF 378
LXXXVII. THE BACKSLIDER 384
LXXXVIII. THE TRUSTFUL AND THE TRUTHFUL 388
LXXXIX. THE FOOL'S CONFIDENCE 392
XC. WITNESS 396
XCI. THE PLACE OF REFUGE 401
XCII. ENVY, THE DISEASE AND THE CURE 406
XCIII. THE MERCIFUL 410
XCIV. THE TWO DEPARTURES—THE HOPEFUL AND THE
HOPELESS 417
XCV. THE TRUTH IN LOVE 424
ILLUSTRATIONS
OF THE
BOOK OF PROVERBS.
I.
THE PREACHER
"The Proverbs of Solomon the son of David, king of Israel."—i. 1.
GOD'S word is like God's world: it combines unity of
pervading principle, with endless variety in detail. The
whole Bible, considered as one book, stands entirely apart
from all other writings; and yet every several portion of
it is distinguished from every other portion, as much as
one merely human writing is distinguished from another.
This combination results from the manner in which it has
pleased God to make known his will. One Divine Spirit
inspires; hence the unity of the whole. Men of diverse
age, taste, and attainments write; hence the diversity of
the parts. Although the books are written by Moses,
David, Solomon, they are all alike the word of God:
therefore they exhibit a complete separation from all
other writings, and a perfect consistency among them-
selves. Again, although they are all one as being the
word of God, they are as much the genuine product of
different human minds, as the ordinary writings of men
are the work of their authors: therefore there is in matter
10 THE PREACHER.
and manner, an unconstrained, natural, life-like diversity.
It was God who "spake unto the fathers," but it was "by
the prophets" that he spoke; not by their tongues only,
but their understandings, memories, tastes; in short, all
that constituted the men. There is as much individuality
in the books of Scripture as in any other books. There
is as much of Moses shining through the Pentateuch, as
of Gibbon in the Decline and Fall. As are the articulat-
ing lips to the soul whose thoughts they utter, so are the
prophets to the Holy Spirit, whose mind they reveal.
Every writer was chosen by God, as well as every word.
He had a purpose to serve by the disposition, the acquire-
ments, and the experience of each. The education of
Moses as one of the royal race of Egypt was a qualifica-
tion necessary to the leader of the exodus, and the writer
of the Pentateuch. The experience of David, with its
successive stages, like geologic strata, touching each other
in abrupt contrast, first as a shepherd youth, then as a
fugitive warrior, and last as a victorious king, was a quali-
fication indispensable to the sweet singer of Israel. God
needed a human spirit as a mould to cast consolation in,
for every kindred in every age. He chose one whose ex-
perience was a compound of meekness and might, of deep
distress and jubilant victory. These, when purged of
their dross, and fused into one by the Spirit's baptism of
fire, came forth an amalgam of sacred psalmody, which
the whole church militant have been singing ever since,
and "have not yet sung dry."
Solomon did not, like David, pass his youth in pastoral
simplicity, and his early manhood under cruel persecution.
THE PREACHER. 11
Solomon could not have written the twenty-third psalm-
"The Lord is my Shepherd;" nor the fifty-seventh—A
psalm of David when be fled from Saul in the cave. His
experience would never have suggested the plaintive strains
of the ninetieth psalm—A prayer of Moses the man of
God—"Lord, thou hast been our dwelling-place." But,
on the other hand, Solomon went through a peculiar ex-
perience of his own, and God, who in nature gives sweet
fruit to men through the root sap of a sour crab, when a
new nature has been engrafted on the upper stem, did not
disdain to bring forth fruits of righteousness through
those parts of the king's experience that cleaved most
closely to the dust. None of all the prophets could
have written the Proverbs or the Preacher; for God is
not wont, even in his miraculous interpositions, to make
a fig-tree bear olive berries, or a vine figs: every crea-
ture acts after its kind. When Solomon delineated
the eager efforts of men in search of happiness, and
the disappointment which ensued, he could say, like
Bunyan, of that fierce and fruitless war, "I was there."
The heights of human prosperity he had reached: the
paths of human learning he had trodden, farther than any
of his day: the pleasures of wealth and power and pomp
he had tasted, in all their variety. No spring of earthly
delight could be named, of whose waters he had not deeply
drunk. This is the man whom God has chosen as the
schoolmaster to teach us the vanity of the world when it
is made the portion of a soul, and He hath done all things
well. The man who has drained the cup of pleasure can
best tell the taste of its dregs.
12 THE PREACHER.
The choice of Solomon as one of the writers of the
Bible, at first sight startles, but on deeper study instructs.
We would have expected a man of more exemplary life
a man of uniform holiness It is certain that in the main;
the vessels which the Spirit used were sanctified vessels.
"Holy men of old spoke as they were moved by the Holy
Ghost." But as they were all corrupt at first, so there
were diversities in the operation whereby they were called
and qualified for their work. There were diversities in
the times, and degrees of their sanctification. Some were
carried so near perfection in the body, that human eyes
could no longer discern spot or wrinkle; in others the
principle of grace was so largely overlaid with earthli-
ness, that observers were left in doubt whether they had
been turned to the Lord's side at all. But the diversity
in all its extent is like the other ways of God; and He
knows how to make either extreme fall into its place in
the concert of his praise. He who made Saul an apostle,
did not disdain to use Solomon as a prophet. Very
diverse were the two men, and very diverse their life
course; yet in one thing they are perfectly alike. To-
gether in glory now they know themselveselves to have been
only sinners, and agree in ascribing all their salvation to
the mercy of God.
Moreover, although good men wrote the Bible, our
faith in the Bible does not rest on the goodness of the
men who wrote it The fatal facility with which men
glide into the worship of men may suggest another reason
why some of the channels chosen for conveying the mind
of God were marred by glaring deficiencies. Among
THE PREACHER. 13
many earthen vessels, in various measures purged of their
filthiness, may not the Divine Administrator in wisdom
select for actual use some of the least pure, in order by
that grosser argument to force into grosser minds the con-
viction that the excellency of the power is all of God?
If all the writers of the Bible had been perfect in holiness
—if no stain of sin could be traced on their character,
no error noted in their life, it is certain that the Bible
would not have served all the purposes which it now serves
among men. It would have been God-like indeed in
matter and in mould, but it would not have reached down
to the low estate of man—it would not have penetrated
to the sores of a human heart. For engraving the life
lessons of his word, our Father uses only diamonds: but
in every diamond there is a flaw, in some a greater and
in some a less; and who shall dare to dictate to the Omni-
scient the measure of defect that blinds Him to fling the
instrument as a useless thing away?
When God would leave on my mind in youth the
lesson that the pleasures of sin are barbed arrows, he uses
that same Solomon as the die to indent it in. I mark
the wisdom of the choice. I get and keep the lesson, but
the homage of my soul goes to God who gave it, and not
to Solomon, the instrument through which it came. God
can make man's wrath to praise him, and their vanity too.
He can make the clouds bear some benefits to the earth,
which the sun cannot bestow. He can make brine serve
some purposes in nature which sweet water could not
fulfil. So, practical lessons on some subjects come better
through the heart and lips of the weary repentant king,
14 THE PREACHER.
than through a man who had tasted fewer pleasures, and
led a more even life.
Two principles cover the whole case. "All things are
of God;" and "All things are for your sakes." We can
never be sufficiently familiar with these two: (1.) The
universality of God's government; and (2.) The special
use for his own people to which he turns every person
and every thing. All Solomon's wisdom, and power,
and glory and pleasure were an elaborate writing by the
finger of God, containing a needful lesson to his children.
The wisdom which we are invited to hear is Divine wis-
dom; the complicated life-experience of Solomon is the
machinery of articulation employed to convey it to the
ears of men. In casting some of the separate letters, the
king may have been seeking only his own pleasure, yet
the whole, when cast, are set by the Spirit so that they
give forth an important page of the word of truth.
The thought recurs, that the king of Jerusalem was not
from his antecedents, qualified to sit in the chair of autho-
rity and teach morality to mankind. No, he was not:
and perhaps on that very account the morality which he
taught is all the more impressive. Here is a marvel;
NOT A LINE OF SOLOMON'S WRITINGS TENDS TO PALLIATE
SOLOMON'S SINS. How do you account for this? The
errors and follies were his own; they were evil. But out
of them the All-wise has brought good. The glaring im-
perfections of the man's life have been used as a dark
ground to set off the lustre of that pure righteousness
which the Spirit has spoken by his lips.
THE BOOK—PROVERBS. 15
II.
THE BOOK—PROVERBS.
"To understand a proverb, and the interpretation;
the words of the wise, and their dark sayings."—i. 6.
IT is safer and better to assume that all men know what
a proverb is, than to attempt a logical definition of it.
As a general rule, the things that are substantially best
known are hardest to define.
Proverbs are very abundant in all languages, and
among all peoples. Many of them, though they seem
fresh and full of sap on our lips to-day, have descended
to us from the remotest antiquity. They deal with all
manner of subjects, but chiefly with the broadest features
of common life. The peculiar charm and power of the
proverb are due to a combination of many elements.
Among others are the condensed antithetic form of
expression and the mingled plainness and darkness of
the meaning. Often there is something to startle at first;
and yet, on closer inspection, that which seemed paradox,
turns out to be only intenser truth. Like those concen-
trated essences of food, which are so much used by tra-
vellers in our day, the proverb may not present to the
eye the appearance of the wisdom that it was originally
made of; but a great quantity of the raw material has
been used up in making one, and that one, when skil-
fully dissolved, will spread out to its original dimensions.
16 THE BOOK—PROVERBS.
Much matter is pressed into little room, that it may
keep, and carry. Wisdom, in this portable form, acts an
important part in human life. The character of a people
gives shape to their proverbs; and again, the proverbs
go to mould the character of the people who use them.
These well worn words are precious, as being real gold,
and convenient, as being a portable, stamped, and recog-
nised currency.
As a general rule, proverbs spring from the people at
large, as herbage springs spontaneously from the soil, and
the parentage of the individual remains for ever unknown.
Very few proverbs are attached, even traditionally, to the
name of any man as their author. From time to time
collections of these products are made, and catalogued
by the curious; and the stock is continually increasing
as the active life of a nation gives them off. In other
cases, books of proverbs have an opposite origin. Persons
who appreciate the proverbial form cast their own thoughts
in that mould, and so make a book of sentences, which
are proverbs in their nature, although not, in point of
fact, generated by casual contact of mind with mind in
miscellaneous human life. It is altogether probable that,
as to its construction, the Book of Proverbs partook of
both kinds. It is probable that Solomon gathered and
recast many proverbs which had sprung from human ex-
perience in preceding ages, and were floating past him on
the tide of time; and that he also elaborated many new
ones from the material of his own experience. Towards
the close of the book, indeed, are preserved some of
Solomon's own sayings, that seem to have fallen from
THE BOOK—PROVERBS. 17
his lips in later life, and been gathered by other
hands.
Even in this one book the proverb appears under con-
siderable diversity of form. Both in the beginning and
towards the close, occur arguments, more or less length-
ened, of continuous texture. But even in these the seve-
ral links of the connected chain are cast in the proverbial
mould; and the great central mass of the book consists
of brief sayings, more or less arranged, indeed, but almost
entirely isolated.
Considering how great a place proverbs hold in human
language—how great a part they act in human life—it
was to be expected that the Spirit would use that instru-
ment, among others, in conveying the mind of God to
men. Proverbs, like hymns and histories, are both in
human life and in the Bible—in the Bible, because they
are in human life. If you wished to convey a message
to a number of countrymen in France, you would not
speak in Latin in order to display your own learning; you
would speak in French in order to accomplish your object.
God's will to man is communicated by means of instru-
ments which man already uses, and therefore understands.
A greater than Solomon spoke in proverbs. He who
knew what was in man sometimes took up that instru-
ment, to probe therewith the secrets of the heart. Some
he gathered as they grew in nature, and others he created
by his word; but the old and the new alike are spirit
and life, when they drop from the lips of Jesus.
Of the proverbs current in the world many are light, and
some are wicked. Those of this book are grave and good.
18 THE BOOK—PROVERBS.
God's words are pure, whether he speaks by the prophets
of old, or by his own Son in the latter day. "More
be desired are they than gold, yea, than much fine gold;
sweeter also than honey, and the honey-comb. Moreover,
by them is thy servant warned."—Psalm xix. 10, 11.
The book from which the following studies are selected
is peculiarly rich in "warnings," and the age in which
we live peculiarly needs them. "Speak, Lord, for thy
servant heareth."
THE ROOT OF KNOWLEDGE. 19
III.
THE ROOT OF KNOWLEDGE.
"The fear of the Lord is the beginning of knowledge:
but fools despise wisdom and instruction."—i. 7.
THE royal preacher begins his sermon at the beginning.
He intends to discourse largely of knowledge and wisdom
in all their aspects, and he lays his foundation deep in
"the fear of the Lord." This brief announcement con-
tains the germ of a fair-reaching philosophy. Already it
marks the book divine. The heathen of those days pos-
sessed no such doctrines Solomon had access to a
Teacher who was not known in their schools
"The fear of the Lord" is an expression of frequent
occurrence throughout the Scriptures. It has various
shades of meaning, marked by the circumstances in which
it is found; but in the main it implies a right state of
heart toward God, as opposed to the alienation of an
unconverted man. Though the word is "fear," it does not
exclude a filial confidence, and a conscious peace. There
may be such love as shall cast all the torment out of the
fear, and yet leave full bodied, in a human heart, the
reverential awe which all, creatures owe to the Highest
One. "There is forgiveness with thee, that thou mayest be
feared." "Oh fear the Lord, ye his saints; for there is
no want to them that fear him!" "I am the Lord thy
God;" behold the ground of submissive reverence:
20 THE ROOT OF KNOWLEDGE
"which brought thee up from the land of Egypt;" be-
hold the source of confiding love. What God is inspires
awe; what God has done for his people commands affec-
tion. See here the centrifugal and centripetal forces of
the moral world, holding the creature reverently distant
from the Creator, yet compassing the child about with
everlasting love, to keep him near a Father in heaven.
The whole of this complicated and reciprocal relation is
often indicated in Scripture by the brief expression, "the
fear of God."
"Knowledge" and "wisdom" are not distinguished
here; at least they are not contrasted. Both terms may
be employed to designate the same thing; but when they
are placed in antithesis, wisdom is the nobler of the two.
Knowledge may be possessed in large measure by one
who is destitute of wisdom, and who consequently does
no good by it, either to himself or others. A lucid defi-
nition of both, in their specific and distinct applications,
is embodied in a proverb of this book, xv. 2, "the tongue
of the wise useth knowledge aright" We take the two
terms of this text as in effect synonymous,—the best
knowledge wisely used for the highest ends.
What is the relation which subsists between the fear
of the Lord and true wisdom? The one is the founda-
tion, the other the imposed superstructure; the one is
the sustaining root, the other the sustained branches;
the one is the living fountain, the other the issuing
stream.
The fear of the Lord is the beginning of knowledge:
the meaning is, he who does not reverentially trust in
THE ROOT OF KNOWLEDGE. 21
God, knows nothing yet as he ought to know. His know-
ledge is partial and distorted. Whatever acquisitions in
science he may attain, if his heart depart from the living
God, he abides an ignorant man. He who in his heart
says "no God," is a fool, however wise he may be in the
estimation of the world, and his own.
But how does this judgment accord with facts?
Have not some Atheists, or at least Infidels, reached the
very highest attainments in various departments of know-
ledge? It is true that some men, who remain willingly
ignorant of God, who even blaspheme his name, and
despise his word, have learned many languages, have
acquired skill in the theory and application of mathema-
tics, have stored their memories with the facts of history,
and the maxims of politics—this is true, and these
branches of knowledge are not less precious because they
are possessed by men whose whom life turns round
on the pivot of one central and all-pervading error; but
after this concession, our position remains intact. These
men possess some fragments of the superstructure of
knowledge, but they have not the foundation; they
possess some of the branches, but they have missed the root.
The knowledge of God—his character and plans, his
hatred of sin, his law of holiness, his way of mercy—
is more excellent than all that an unbelieving philo-
sopher has attained. If it be attainable, and if a Chris-
tian has reached it, then is a Christian peasant wiser
than the wisest who know not God. It is a knowledge
more deeply laid, more difficult of attainment, more fruitful,
and more comprehensive, than all that philosophers know.
22 THE ROOT OF KNOWLEDGE.
What right has an unbelieving astronomer to despise a
Christian labourer as an ignorant man? Let them be
compared as to the point in question, the possession of
knowledge. Either is ignorant of the other's peculiar
department, but it is an error to suppose the astronomer's
department the higher of the two. The Christian knows
God; the astronomer knows certain of his material
works. The Christian knows moral, the astronomer phy-
sical laws. The subjects of the Christian's knowledge are
as real as the heavenly bodies. The knowledge is as dif-
ficult, and perhaps, in its higher degrees, as rare. It
reaches further, it lasts longer, it produces greater results.
The astronomer knows the planet's path; but if that
planet should burst its bonds, and wander into dark-
ness, his knowledge will not avail to cast a line around
the prodigal and lead him home. He can mark the
degrees of divergence, and predict the period of total
loss, but after that he has no more that he can do. The
Christian's knowledge, after it has detected the time,
manner, and extent of the fallen spirit's aberration, avails
farther to lay a new bond unseen around him, soft, yet
strong, which will compel him to come in again to his
Father's house and his Father's bosom. The man who
knows that, as sin hath reigned unto death, even so grace
reigns through righteousness unto eternal life by Jesus
Christ our Lord, possesses a deeper, more glorious, and
more potential knowledge, than the man who calculates
the courses of the planets, and predicts the period of the
comet's return.
Men speak of the stupendous effects which knowledge,
THE BOOK OF KNOWLEDGE. 23
in the department of mechanical philosophy, has produced
on the face of the world, and in the economy of human
life; but the permanence of these acquisitions depends on
the authority of moral laws in the consciences of men.
If there were no fear of God, there would be no reverence
for moral law in the bulk of mankind. If moral re-
straints are removed from the multitude, society reverts
to a savage state. Inventions in art, though once at-
tained, are again lost, when a community feed on venison,
and clothe themselves with skins. So, "the fear of the
Lord" is a fundamental necessity, on which high attain-
ments, even in material prosperity, absolutely depend.
True knowledge in the spiritual department, as to the
authority, the sanction, and the rule of morality, is a
greater thing than true knowledge in the material depart-
ment, for the moral encircles and controls the economic
in the affairs of men.
The man whose knowledge begins and ends with
matter and its laws, has got a superstructure without a
foundation. In that learning the enduring relations of
man as an immortal have no place, and the fabric topples
over when the breath of life goes out. But this begin-
ning of knowledge, resting on the being and attributes of
God, and comprehending all the relations of the crea-
ture, is a foundation that cannot be shaken. On that
solid base more and more knowledge will be reared, high
as heaven, wide as the universe, lasting as eternity.
The knowledge of God is the root of knowledge.
When branches are cut from a tree and laid on the
ground at a certain season, they retain for a time a por-
24 THE ROOT OF KNOWLEDGE.
tion of their sap. I have seen such branches, when the
spring came round, pushing forth buds like their neigh-
bours. But very soon the slender stock of sap was
exhausted, and as there was no connection with a root,
so as to procure a new supply, the buds withered away.
How unlike the buds that spring from the branches grow-
ing in the living root! This natural life is like a severed
branch. The knowledge that springs from it is a bud
put forth by the moisture residing in itself. When
life passes, it withers away. When a human soul is, by
the regeneration, "rooted in Him," the body's dissolution
does not nip its knowledge in the bud. Transplanted
into a more genial clime, that knowledge will flourish for
ever. Eye hath not seen, nor ear heard, what it will
grow to.
THE FAMILY. 25.
IV.
THE FAMILY.
"My son, hear the instruction of thy father,
and forsake not the law of thy mother."—i. 8.
THE first and great commandment is the fear of God, and
the, second, which is next to it, and like to it, is obedience
to parents. Wherever the root is planted, this is the first
fruit which it bears.
The teaching of the Decalogue, and of the Proverbs,
though circumstantially different, is essentially the same.
On the one hand we have the legislator formally record-
ing a code of laws; on the other, the aged, prosperous,
and witty monarch collecting the best sayings that had
been current at his court in that Augustan age of Hebrew
literature. The cast of the writings corresponds with
the position of the men; yet there are evident marks
of the same spirit as the teacher, and the same truth
as the lesson. The ten commandments are divided into
two tables. The first lays the foundation of all duty
in our relation to God, and the second rears the super-
structure in the various offices of love between man and
his fellow. In the Decalogue the fear of God, lies deepest
as the root; and of the manifold duties which man owes
to man, the branch that springs forth first is filial love.
It is precisely the same here. The beginning of the com-
mandment is "Fear the Lord" and the earliest outcome is,
26 THE FAMILY.
"My son, hear the instruction of thy father." This verse
of the Proverbs flows from the same well-spring that
had already given forth the fifth commandment.
God honours his own ordinance, the family. He gives
parents rank next after himself. Filial love stands near,
and leans on godliness.
God is the author of the family constitution. He has
conceived the plan, and executed it. Its laws are stamped
in nature, and declared in the word. The equal num-
bers of the sexes born into the world, the feebleness of
childhood at first, and the returning frailty of age, are
so many features of the family institute left by the
Creator indented on his work. They intimate not ob-
scurely the marriage of one man with one woman, the
support of children by parents, and the support of decayed
parents by ther children grown. There are many such
laws deeply imprinted in nature; and in nature, too, a
terrible vengeance is stored up, which bursts with uner-
ring exactitude on the head of the transgressor.
One of the wonders of that little world in the dwelling
is the adaptation by which all the powers of the elder
children are exerted for the protection of the youngest.
A boisterous and impulsive boy, able and willing to main
tain his rights by force of arms against a rival older than
himself, may be seen to check suddenly the embryo man-
hood that was spurting prematurely out, and put on a
mimic motherliness, the moment that the infant appears,
bent on a journey across the room, and tottering unsteady
by. A condescending look, and a winning word, and a
soft arm around,—all the miniature man is put forth in
THE FAMILY. 27
self-forgetting benevolence. How exquisitely contrived is
this machinery in nature, both for protecting the feeble
thing that receives the kindness, and softening the rude
hand that bestows it! There is fine material here for
parents to watch and work upon. The stem is soft, you
may train it; the growth is rapid, you must train it
now.
In proportion as men have adopted and carried out the
ordinance in its purity, have the interests of society pros-
pered. All deviations are at once displeasing to God and
hurtful to men. The polygamy of Eastern peoples has made
the richest portions of the earth like a howling wilderness
The festering sores opened in the body of the community
by the licentiousness of individuals among ourselves, make
it evident, that if the course, which is now a too frequent
exception, should become the general rule, society itself
would soon waste away. It is chiefly by their effects in
deranging the order of families, that great manufactories
deteriorate a community. Though the socialist bodies,
being so sickly and diseased in constitution, have never
lived much beyond infancy amongst us; yet, as they are
founded on a reversal of the family law, their effects,
as far as they have produced effects, are misery and ruin.
The Romish priesthood, abjuring the divinely provided
companionship of the household, and adopting solitude, or
something worse, have ever been like a pin loose in the
circling machinery of society, tearing every portion as it
passes by. In the constitution of nature there is a self-
acting apparatus for punishing the transgression of the
family laws. The divine institute is hedged all round.
28 THE FAMILY.
The prickles tear the flesh of those who are so foolish as
to kick against them.
In practice, and for safety, keep families together as
long as it is possible. When the young must go forth
from a father's house, let a substitute be provided as
closely allied to the normal institution as the circum-
stances will admit. Let a sister be spared to live with
the youths, and extemporize an off-shoot family near the
great mart of business, with a dwelling that they may call
their own. The cutting, though severed from the stem,
being young and sapful, will readily strike root, and imi-
tate the parent. This failing, let a lodging be found in a
family where the youths will be treated as its members,
participating at once in the enjoyments and restraints of
a home. When the boy must needs be broken off from
the parental stem, oh, throw him not an isolated atom on
the sea of life that welters in a huge metropolis. Nor
pen him up with a miscellaneous herd of a hundred men
in the upper flat of some huge mercantile establishment,
a teeming islet lapsed into barbarism, with the waters of
civilization circling all around. If you do not succeed
in getting the severed branch engrafted into some stock
that shall be an equivalent to the family, and so exercise
the natural affections, the natural affections checked, will
wither up within, or burst forth in wickedness. The
youth will be ruined himself, and the ruined youth will
be an element of corruption to fester in the heart of the
society that neglected him.
Honour thy father and thy mother. This is the
pattern shown in the mount. The closer we keep to it,
THE FAMILY. 29
the better will it be both for the individual and the com-
munity. God is wiser than men,
Children obey your parents in the Lord, for this is
right, and all right things are profitable. To violate the
providential laws is both a crime and a blunder.
Love to parents ranks next under reverence to God.
That first and highest commandment is like the earth's
allegiance to the sun by general law; and filial obedience
is like day and night, summer and winter, budding spring
and ripening harvest, on the earth's surface. There could
be none of these sweet changes, and beneficent operations
of nature on our globe, if it were broken away from the
sun. So when a people burst the first and greatest bond
—when a people cast off the fear of God, the family rela-
tions, with all their beauty and benefit, disappear. We
may read this lesson in the fortunes of France. When
the nation threw off the first commandment, the
second went after it. When they repudiated the fear of
God, they could not retain conjugal fidelity, and filial love.
Hence the wreck and ruin of all the relations between
man and man. As well might they try to make a new
world, as to manage this one wanting the first and second,
the primary and subordinate moral laws of its Maker.
30 FILIAL LOVE A BLOSSOM OF BEAUTY.
V.
FILIAL LOVE A BLOSSOM OF BEAUTY.
"For they shall be an ornament of grace unto thy head,
and chains about thy neck."-i. 9.
IT seems an instinct of humanity to put ornaments upon
the person. It is greatly modified in its development
by circumstances, but it is certainly a uniform tend-
ency of our nature. It does not rank high among the
exercises of the human faculties, yet it is quite above
the reach of all inferior creatures. The propensity is fully
developed in tribes that lie lowest in the scale of human-
ity; yet no germ of it can be traced in species that form
the culminating point in the brute creation. By so many
and so various marks may be known the abrupt and
absolute separation between men who have fallen the
lowest, and other sentient beings that occupy the summit
of their scale.
Ornaments on the fallen, like many other innocent
things, become the occasions of sin, but they are not in
their own nature evil. It is probable that the pleasure
which we derive from them springs originally from some
association with moral qualities. There is some connec-
tion between sensible beauty and moral goodness, although
the instances of deception are so numerous as to deprive
that connection of all value as a rule of life. To deck
with external beauty that which is morally corrupt within,
FILIAL LOVE A BLOSSOM OF BEAUTY. 31
is a cheat which men practise on themselves and others;
but adornment of the person, modest in measure, and
adopted instinctively by an innate sense of propriety, is
conducive to virtue, and consistent with Scripture.
Ornaments, however, are mentioned here not for their
own sakes, either to commend or forbid them, but as a
form of expression to convey emphatically the truth that
moral qualities, after all, are the true adornments of a
human being. All the graces of the Spirit are lovely;
but here the foremost of relative duties, a child's reveren-
tial regard for a parent, is recommended as an ornament
of surpassing beauty. Young men and young women,
put that ornament on your heads—twine that chain of
gold around your necks! These jewels from heaven, set
deep within your souls, and glancing at every turn
through the transparency of an unaffected life, will do
more to make your persons attractive than all the
diamonds that ever decked a queen.
The world and its history teem with types of heaven.
Beauty, and the love that fastens on it, are types, and
they have their antitypes on high. The ransomed Church
is the bride of the Lamb, and she is adorned for her hus-
band. When the adorning is complete, she is all glorious,
and the King greatly desires her beauty. When he pre-
sents unto himself a church without spot or wrinkle, or
any such thing, then shall he see of the travail of his
soul and be satisfied.
Put on now, oh son! daughter! put on these beautiful
garments; love, obey, cherish, reverence your parents.
These are in God's sight of great price. They are valued
32 FILIAL LOVE A BLOSSOM OF BEAUTY.
not only by the spiritually minded disciples of Jesus, but
even by every man of sense around you. They are
thought becoming by all but fools. These ornaments will
not be out of date when time has run its course. They
will be worn on the golden streets of the New Jeru-
salem, when the fashion of this world shall have passed
away.
Over against this beaming beauty, of similar shape and
size, a dark shadow stands. Whithersoever that comely
body turns, this ghastly spectre follows it. It is a daughter,
emerging into womanhood, with ruddy cheek and spark-
ling eye,—with beads on her neck and bracelets on her
arms,—who has so crushed a mother's heart, by con-
stantly trampling down its desires, that the disconsolate
mother never utters now the reproof which she knows
would be despised. Personal beauty, aided by costly orna-
ments, cannot make that creature gainly. The deformity
within will make itself felt through all the finery.
The evil spirit that possesses the heart will glance from
the eye, and tinkle on the tongue, in spite of every effort
to act the angel. Every mind that retains in any mea-
sure a healthful moral tone will, in close contact with
such a character, infallibly be sensible of a discord. Felt
repulsive, she will be repelled. The disobedient daughter
will gravitate down to the companionship of those who,
having no sense of harmony, recoil not from a spirit out
of tune. She is miserable, and knows not what ails her.
She has broken that commandment which holds a pro-
mise in its band, and been thrown over on the barbs of
the counterpart curse. Those who see her impaled alive
FILIAL LOVE A BLOSSOM OF BEAUTY. 33
there, should learn that the moral laws of God have
avenging sanctions, even in the powers of nature. God-
liness is profitable unto all things. The first command-
ment is fruitful, even in this life; and the second is like
it,—like it in its heavenly origin,—like it in its holy
character,—like it in its glad results. Honour thy father
and thy mother,—this is an ornament of solid gold.
Unlike the watering of superficial accomplishments, the
more rudely it is rubbed, the more brightly it glows.
34 THE FOE AND THE FIGHT.
VI.
THE FOE AND THE FIGHT.*
"My son, if sinners entice thee, consent thou not."--i. 10.
THE verse, in brief compass and transparent terms, reveals
the foe and the fight. It is a Father's voice. It speaketh
unto us as unto children. With a kindness and wisdom
altogether paternal, it warns the youth of the Danger
that assails him, and suggests the method of Defence.
A glance at the three preceding verses will fix the
character of the persons whom Solomon has here in his
eye. They are not the ignorant, the outcast, the profli-
gate. The stages over which he travels before he reaches
this warning, show that he addresses the well-conditioned
and hopeful portion of the community. In the seventh
verse we have "the beginning of wisdom" laid in the
fear of God; in the eighth, the earliest outcome from
that unfailing source, the obedience of children to their
parents; in the ninth, the beauty of this filial obedience,
as the most winsome ornament that the young can deck
themselves withal. We have wisdom presented first in
its sustaining root, next in its swelling buds, and last in
its opening bloom of beauty. The preacher fastens upon
persons who have had the fear of God early implanted in
their hearts, who have reverently obeyed their parents
______________________________________________
* This chapter, with some additions, is published separately, as an Address
to Young Men.
THE FOE AND THE FIGHT. 35
during childhood, and who in youth have been observed
by others as adorning the doctrine of the Saviour. To these,
as they are passing out of youth into the responsibilities
of manhood, and from a father's house to the wide theatre
of the world, he addresses this plain and pungent exhorta-
tion, "My son, if sinners entice thee, consent thou not."
The Danger is, "if sinners entice thee. "There are
enticers and enticements; the fowler and his snare.
The enticers of youth may be divided into two great
classes, the internal and the external. There are a mul-
titude of evil thoughts in the little world within, and a
multitude of evil men in the great world without.
The sinners that entice from within are the man's
own thoughts and desires. There is quite an army of
these sinners in a young man's breast. Thoughts have
wings. They pass and repass unobserved. They issue
forth from their home in the heart, and expatiate over
every forbidden field, and return like doves to their win-
dows, through the air, leaving no track of their path.
These thoughts become acquainted with sin. They are
accustomed to visit the haunts of vice without detection.
They revel unchecked in every unclean thing. They
open up the way, and prepare a trodden path on which
the man may follow. A gossamer thread is attached to
an arrow, and shot through the air unseen, over an im-
passable chasm. Fixed on the other side, it is sufficient
to draw over a cord; the cord draws over a rope; the
rope draws over a bridge, by which a highway is opened
for all corners. Thus is the gulf passed that lies between
the goodly character of a youth fresh from his father's
36 THE FOE AND THE FIGHT.
family, and the daring heights of iniquity on which vete-
ran libertines stand. The sober youth stands on the solid
platform of religious and moral worth. No one can think
it possible that he should go over to the other side. But
from the brink on this side he darts over a thought which
makes itself fast to something on these forbidden regions.
The film no one saw, as it sped through the air; but it
has made good a lodgment in that kingdom of darkness,
and the deeds of wickedness will quickly follow when the
way has been prepared. "Out of the heart," said He
who knows it (Matt. xv. 19), "proceed evil thoughts."
Yes; that is what we expected; but what come out
next? "Murders, adulteries, fornication, thefts, false
witness, blasphemies." A horrible gang! How quickly
they come on! How closely they follow their leaders!
Murders and adulteries march forth unblushingly; but
they follow in the wake of evil thoughts. Oh, if the
fountain were cleansed, the streams of life would be
pure! So thought David, when, in an agony of grief
despairing of his own efforts, he cried, "Create in me a
clean heart, O God!" This is the root of the evil, and
no cure will be thorough or lasting that does not reach
and remove it.
The sinners that entice from without are fellow-men,
who, having gone astray themselves, are busy leading
others after them. The servants of Satan seem to be
diligent and successful. When a society, associated for
economical or benevolent purposes, desires to enlarge the
number of its members, a common method is to request
every one to bring in two others. Thus the membership
THE FOE AND THE FIGHT. 37
is tripled by a single effort. This seems to be the prin-
ciple of administration adopted by the god of this world.
All his subjects are busy. "Ye are of your father the
devil, and the deeds of your father ye will do." The
deed most characteristic that the father of lies ever did,
was to lead others after him into sin. To entice into
sin is specifically "the deed " of the devil, and that deed
his children will instinctively do. An evil-doer has a
craving for company in his wickedness. He cannot enjoy
solitary crime. He is impelled to seek company, as a
thirsty man is impelled to seek water. It is his vocation
to draw others after him into sin. By a natural neces-
sity, the licentious recruit among the ranks of the virtu-
ous; the drunken among the ranks of the sober. An
enemy is amongst us: let the inexperienced beware.
How great the danger that every youth incurs as he
issues forth from his parents' control, to take his place in
the race of life, and on the stage of time! A dreadful
conspiracy is organized against him. It is designed and
directed by spiritual wickedness in high places; its agents
swarm unseen in his own heart, a legion of evil spirits,
as it were, possessing him already. Co-operating with
these intestine foes, are the whole host of evil-doers who
come in contact with him in the world. Young man,
this life is not the place to walk at ease in. If you slum-
ber there, the Philistines will be upon you. Though you
have a Samson's strength, they will put out your eyes,
and make you grind in meanest slavery, and triumph in
your misery and death.
It is a power of nature that is taken and employed to
38 THE FOE AND THE FIGHT.
enslave men. The disposition in youth to go together is
a law of the human constitution. Men are gregarious.
The principle of association is implanted in their nature,
and is mighty, according to the direction it gets, for good
or evil. This great power generally becomes a ready
agency of ill. How faithfully a youth clings to a com-
panion who has obtained an influence over him! It
often happens that the more vigorous mind has been
imbued with wickedness. The very abandonment of that
leading spirit adds to his power. There is a reckless
hardihood attained, where the restraints of conscience are
unknown, that acts like a charm on softer minds. One
bold, bad spirit often holds many gentler natures, as it
were, in a mesmerised state. They are not masters of
themselves. They have been drawn into the vortex of
the more powerful orb: destitute of an independent will,
they flutter fascinated around him.
The enticements, like the enticers, are manifold. As
addressed to well-educated, well-conducted youth, they
are always more or less disguised. The tempter always
flings over at least his ugliest side some shred of an angel's
garment. An enemy who desired to destroy you by your
own deed, would not lead you straight to a yawning pre-
cipice, and bid you cast yourself down. He would rather
lead you along a flowery winding path, until you should
insensibly be drawn into a spot which would give way
beneath you. Enticements to moral evil will generally
take that form. You will not be persuaded all at once
to plunge into deeds of darkness, knowing them to be
such. Few young men who have enjoyed a religious
THE FOE AND THE FIGHT. 39
education come to a sudden stand, and at once turn their
back upon God and godliness. Most of those who do
fall, diverge at first by imperceptible degrees from the
path of righteousness. When it is intended, by a line of
rails, to conduct a train off the main trunk, and turn it
aside in another direction, the branch-line at first runs
parallel with the trunk. It goes alongside for a space in
the same direction; but when it has thus got fairly off,
then it turns more rapidly round, and bounds away at
right angles to its former course. As engineers avoid the
physical, so the tempters avoid the moral difficulty. An
abrupt turn is not attempted in either case. The object
is far more surely attained by a gently graduated diver-
gence. The importance of the ancient rule, Obsta prin-
cipiis (resist the beginnings), can never be over-rated.
The prize is great. Everything is at stake. Life is at
stake, —both the lives. Time and eternity, body and
soul; all that you have or hope, is to be lost or won.
Watch the beginnings of evil. "Watch and pray, that
ye enter not into temptation."
We must name and briefly describe some of these
snares. Their name is Legion. They cannot be num-
bered. We shall uncover and expose two from among
the multitude of betrayers that lurk beside your path,
one peculiar to large towns, the other common to all
places.
High in the list of dangerous enticements to the young
stands the theatre. We shall not waste time in a dispute
regarding the possibility of obtaining innocent and harm-
less dramatic entertainments. Enough for our present
40 THE FOE AND THE FIGHT.
purpose is the fact that there are none such. The idea,
wherewith some would fain excuse their sin, is a stage
managed in accordance with pure morals. It is a vain
imagination. Those who build and manage theatres do
so with the view of a good investment and profitable
employment. They know the tastes of their customers.
They must either conform to these tastes, or lose money
by opposing them. A theatre conducted on such prin-
ciples as would make it safe to the morals of youth
would not pay its proprietor. There are many enlight-
ened and benevolent citizens who rear and maintain
institutions which do not bear their own charges. They
submit to loss from zeal for the public good: but these
men never choose theatres as the instruments of elevating
the community.
We scarcely know anything that would make us fear
more for a young man than to hear that he was in the
habit of attending the theatre. We know that the prac-
tice, besides its own proper evil, would not long stand
alone. A man cannot take fire into his bosom without
being burned.
Does the impatient spirit of youth attempt to ward off
our word, by averring that we would smother the joys of
the young under the gloomy cloud of religion? Oh, for
a balance that could nicely discriminate the degrees of
happiness that each enjoys! We would enter the com-
petition with the merriest frequenter of the stage. We
would set any sensible, God-fearing youth in competition
with him, and show that, even as to present gladness, the
theatre is a cheat and a lie. Once, on a Sabbath morn-
THE FOE AND THE FIGHT. 41
ing, as the writer was going to church through the streets
of a large city, he saw, flaunting gaudily on the walls, the
stage placards of the preceding Saturday evening. In
large, lying letters, they announced, "A Cure for the
Heartache." Avaunt, deceivers! Ye often inoculate
your victims with the poison of that disease, but ye have
no power to take it away. Can the company of rakes
and courtezans minister consolation to a mind distressed?
Will they parody the griefs that wring a human heart?
Will they make sport of that deep-set disease that Jesus
died to heal? When a sinner's heart is aching, he must
bend his steps to another place—he must seek the skill
of another Physician! We have sometimes thought the
matter of attending the theatre, and similar scenes of
midnight merriment, might be profitably put in the form
of a dilemma, thus:—
The unconverted (having other work before them) have
no time to be there.
The converted (having other joys within them) have no
inclination.
The customs of society encouraging the use of intoxi-
eating drinks constitute one of the most formidable dan-
gers to youth in the present day. All are aware that
drunkenness, in our country, is the most rampant vice.
How broad and deep is the wave whereby it is desolating
the land. It is not our part, at present, to register
an array of facts tending to show how many are held
helpless in its chain, and how deeply that chain cuts into
the life of the victim. The extent and the virulence of
the malady we shall not prove, but assume to be known.
42 THE FOE AND THE FIGHT.
Our special business is to remind the young of the entice-
ments by which they are led into that horrible pit. It
is specially true of this potent enemy, that it makes its
approaches unsuspected and by slow degrees. We have
known many drunkards. We have witnessed scenes of
wretchedness which haunt our memory in shapes of terror
still! We have seen a youth brought down by it from a
place of honour and hopefulness, laid upon his bed utter-
ing hideous groans, twisting himself, in mingled bodily
and mental agony, like a live eel upon a hook. We have
seen an old man, who knew that drink was making his
life-springs fail fast away, yet, in spite of threats and per-
suasion, going drunk to bed every night. We have heard
that man, when sober, say, "If there is one place of hell
worse than another, it must be mine, for I know the
right, and do the wrong;" and yet he drank himself to
death. We have seen a female, with a gentle air and a
tender frame, stand and tell that she had a batch of
demons within her, uttering loud voices, and declaring
that they had her surely bound over to hell. Reason had
fled. Drink had brought madness on. And yet, when-
ever the delirium abated, she returned to the drink again.
What need of cases? We have seen drunkenness in most
of its stages, and forms, and effects; but we never yet met
a drunkard who either became a drunkard all at once, or
who designed to become one. In every case, without ex-
ception, the dreadful demon vice has crept over the faculties
by slow degrees, and at last surprised the victim. The
sinners with whom he kept company did not entice him
to become a sot in a single night. They only invited him
THE FOE AND THE FIGHT. 43
to go into cheerful company. They suggested that reli-
gion, when rightly understood, did not forbid a merry
evening. He went; and the evening was merry. Strong
drink contributed to its merriment He was sober. He
had no intention of becoming a drunkard, either then or
on any subsequent occasion. A drunkard, however, he
now is. He is in the pit, and who shall pull him out!
May God have mercy on the lost immortal, for he is
beyond all help of man!
Let young men, as they value their souls, beware of
these Satan-invented customs prevalent in society, which
multiply the occasions of tasting strong drink. These
habits of sipping so frequently, on every occasion of joy
or sorrow, of idle ease or excessive toil, in freezing cold
or in scorching heat—these habits of a little now and a
little then, seem to have been invented with fiendish in-
genuity, to beget at last, in the greatest possible number,
that fiery thirst which, when once awakened, will merci-
lessly drag its subject down through a dishonoured life to
an early grave.
Leaning on the bank of the majestic river a few miles
above Niagara, a little boat was floating on a summer
day. A mother plied her industry in a neighbouring
field. Her daughter, too young yet for useful labour,
strolled from her side to the water's edge. The child
leaped into the boat. It moved with her weight The
sensation was pleasant. Softly the boat glided down on
the smooth bosom of the waters. More and more plea-
sant were the sensations of the child. The trees on the
shore were moving past in rows. The sunbeams glittered
44 THE FOE AND THE FIGHT.
on the water, scarcely broken by the ripple of the
stream. Softly and silently, but with ever-growing speed,
the tiny vessel shot down the river with its glad uncon-
scious freight. The mother raised her bended back and
looked. She saw her child carried quickly by the current
toward the cataract. She screamed, and ran. She
plunged into the water. She ventured far, but failed.
The boat is caught in the foaming rapids—it is carried
over the precipice! The mother's treasure is crushed to
atoms, and mingles with the spray that curls above
Niagara. This is not a fiction; it is a fact reported in
the newspapers of the day. But, though itself a sub-
stantive event, it serves also as a mirror to see the sha-
dow of others in. The image that you see glancing in
that glass is real. It is not single. It may be seen,
thousand upon thousand, stretching away in reduplicat-
ing rows. Pleasant to the unconscious youth are the
merry cup and the merry company. Lightly and happily
he glides along. After a little, the motion becomes un-
easy. It is jolting, jumbling, sickly. He would fain
escape now. Vain effort! He is rocked awhile in the
rapids, and then sucked into the abyss.
If many thousands of our population were annually
lost in Niagara, the people, young and old, would con-
ceive and manifest an instinctive horror of the smooth
deceitful stream above it, which drew so many to their
doom. Why, oh, why do the young madly intrust them-
selves to a more deceitful current, that is drawing a
greater number to a more fearful death?
Such, young men, are some of your dangers. You
THE FOE AND THE FIGHT. 45
should be ready to consider earnestly the means of
escape. Even this brief glance at the breadth of the
battle-field, and the array of the foe, should stir us up to
"prove" both the armour that we wear, and our aptitude
in using it. If the result of such survey should be a
sense of utter weakness in presence of the adversary, and
a cry from the helpless to the Lord God of hosts, it will
be well: our labour will not be lost.
The Defence prescribed is, "consent thou not." How
may one successfully contend against these formidable
foes? Observe the form of the Scripture injunction, "If
sinners entice thee, consent thou not." It is a blunt, per-
emptory command. Your method of defence must be
different from the adversary's mode of attack. His
strength lies in making gradual approaches; yours in a
resistance, sudden, resolute, total. For example, let a
man who is now a drunkard look back on his course.
He will find that he came into that state by impercep-
tible, unsuspected advances. But if ever he get out
of that state, it is not by slow degrees that he will
make his escape. It is not by lessening gradually the
quantity of strong drink till he wean himself from the
poison, and creep back from madness into himself
again. The enemy can play at the graduated system
better than he. His only safety lies in an abrupt, reso-
lute refusal.
The same method that is best suited for recovery is
also best for prevention. It is not by partial compliance
and polite excuses that you are to repel enticements to
sin. This is an adversary with whom you are not obliged
46 THE FOE AND THE FIGHT.
to keep terms. Gather from Scripture the attitude you
should assume, and the language you should hold, "Get
thee behind me, Satan!" "Save yourselves from this
untoward generation." "Come out from among them,
and be ye separate, and I will receive you." Much
depends on the round, blunt refusal,—the unfaltering,
undiluted, dignified "No" of one who fears God more
than the sneer of fools. Many stumble from neglect of
this principle. They intend to refuse. They will not go
all the way into sin; but they will resist politely—they
will keep terms with the enticers. They are not wining
to let it be known that they are so timid about their own
integrity. It might not be reckoned manly. They are
like those who were disciples secretly for fear of the Jews.
Your enticers are honourable men, and they would be
hurt if you should meet their invitation by a prompt
negative, and give your reasons. Well: and is it not
enough for the disciple to be "as his Lord?" He was
in the same position; "Master, in so saying thou con-
demnest us also." Out with it unreservedly, whenever
and wherever companions would wile you into evil. If
you begin to pare away the edges of your dedinature,
lest it should bear too hardly upon your tempters—if
you make excuses that are not the real reasons, in order
that under cover of them you may glide out of the way
without the disagreeable shock of a direct collision—you
may escape for that time; but some day your excuse will
fail, and your foot will be taken. If sinners entice thee,
consent not. The shortest answer is the best.
They speak of consecrated places. We believe there
THE FOE AND THE FIGHT. 47
are consecrated spots on this earth, and desecrated spots
too. That spot is consecrated in the eye of God and all
the good, where a condemned transgressor has been born
again, and taken into the number of God's children; that
spot is desecrated which has been the turning-point where
an immortal chose death rather than life. Many such
places there are, both in rural lanes and in the city's
thoroughfares. A youth is leaving his place of business
in the evening, and making his way homewards. At a
crossing he meets a knot of companions, who hail and
stop him. They are convening to a place of danger, and
deeds of sin. They invite him to go. He replies that
he is going home. They insist—they cannot go without
him. As he hangs back and hesitates, a leading spirit
of the club suddenly cries out he knows the reason:
"Our friend is going to set up for saint—he is going
home to pray." A loud laugh runs round the ring. The
youth is not prepared for this. He desired rather to go
home, but he is not yet a good soldier of Jesus Christ.
He cannot endure hardness. He gives way at this last
thrust, and goes with them. That night he parts with a
good conscience; and it is but another step to make ship-
wreck of his faith. That spot where evil spirits embodied
formed a circle round the youth, and won him—that spot
is desecrated. The blood of a soul is there. The writer
was standing one day lately among a crowd of visitors
under the dome of St. Paul's in London, gazing upward
in silence on its grandeur, when a gentleman touched him,
and requested him to remove his, foot; he then pointed
to a small cross mark made by a mason's chisel on the
48 THE FOE AND THE FIGHT.
marble pavement, informing the bystanders that a person
who cast himself from the dome aloft, had fallen there
and died. The group of living beings who had gathered
round our informant stood instinctively back and sighed.
The living were awed in spirit when they found them-
selves, standing on the spot that had been stained by the
blood of a self-murdered man. Oh, if there were marks
made in the ground at every place stained by the suicide
of a soul, how thickly dotted the world would be with
the startling symbols—how fearfully and tremblingly
would the living thread their way between!
How much of the low spirits, the moody mind, the
miserable incapacity, which abound, has been induced by
violation of God's laws—both the natural marked in our
constitution, and the moral revealed in the Bible!
Appetites indulged grow strong. Beware lest the cub
which you fondle and feed, insensibly become the lion
which devours you.
Friendship sealed by companionship in sin will not
last long. It is not worth having. It deserves not to
be known by that noble name. Friends that are glued
together by the slime of their lusts will be torn asunder
soon; and these foul exudations that seem now to bind
them into one, will become the fuel to a flame of mutual
hate, when first a spark of disagreement falls. They will
bite and devour one another. The degree of their privacy
to each other's wickedness will be the measure of their
dislike and distrust.
After all, above all, including all, a reason why you
should not consent to go with sinners is, you thereby
THE FOE AND THE FIGHT. 49
displease God, crucify Christ, grieve the Spirit, and cast
your own soul away.
The means of resisting.—We address those who have
obtained a religious education. We do not speak here of
the first and best means, the word of God and prayer.
We assume that you know all that we could tell you
regarding these, and only offer some suggestions on subor-
dinate topics—such as refinement of manners, profitable
study, benevolent effort, and improving company.
Refinement of manners.—I know well that it is the
state of the heart within that decides the outward de-
meanour; but I know also that the outward demeanour
has a reflex influence back upon the heart. I do not say
that politeness will do as a substitute for religion; but
politeness is of use as the handmaid of religion. Indeed,
rude speech and manners are both the signs of moral evil
already existing, and the causes of increasing it. In
many districts of country, and among certain classes, rude
habits are the open inlets to great crimes. To cultivate
a refined and tasteful form of speech and manners would
become a shield to protect from many prevailing tempta-
tions. Christianity, with its living power in the heart,
will produce refinement in the manners; and outward
refinement will throw a shield round inward principle,
and keep it out of harm's way. We do not mean to
encourage show and fashion. The fop is most wretched
himself, and most repulsive to an onlooker; but we would
not avoid this extreme by leaping into the extreme of
vulgar rudeness. We would not like a youth to be
gilded; but neither would we like him to be rough and
50 THE FOE AND THE FIGHT.
foul with rust. We would have him polished that is
the medium. Some people are rusty: their harsh, un-
gainly manners eat out whatever is good in their own
character, and saw the very flesh of those who come near
them. Some people, again, are gilt: a very brilliant
exterior they present, but the first brush of hard usage
rubs off the gilding and reveals the base material beneath.
A third class are polished; the polish, indeed, is on the
surface, but it is a polish on the surface of solid worth;
and, in the multifarious crosses of human life, the more it
is rubbed the brighter it grows. This is the thing: not
a gilding to hide the baseness, but a polish to set off and
make more useful the real substantial excellence of the
inner man. Even when the material is sound to the
core, a polish on the surface both fits it for use and pro-
tects it from injury. If we have two youths equal as to
strength and soundness of Christian principle within, but
unequal as to habits of refinement in intercourse with
others, he who has outward polish added to inward worth
will be more useful and more safe.
Profitable study.—Occupation goes far as a means of
safety. Add every day something to your store of know-
ledge. Study alternately books, and men, and things,
Mere book-reading is not enough, without reflection and
observation. Again, mere observation is not enough, if
you do not enlarge your resources by the treasures which
books contain. Both are best. You have many oppor-
tunities. You need not at any time be in want of a use-
ful book. From experience we are able to say that a
book perused intelligently, and with appetite in youth,
THE FOE AND THE FIGHT. 51
will retain its hold better than information acquired at
a later day. The few books to which we had access
when we were young are fresh in our memory still, both
the good and the bad. The “Pilgrim's Progress” was
greedily devoured, and indelibly impressed; but so also
were other books in which a like genius glowed, without
a like baptism of holiness The young of this generation
may always, have a book to read, and may choose a book
that is worthy. Never let the machinery of your mind
become rusty. The way to keep it sweet is to keep it
going.
We have two opposite experiences to look back upon.
In our retrospect are times of intellectual idleness, and
times of intellectual diligence. We remember precious
hours spent by a circle of youthful companions in silly,
useless conversation, —a sort of slang which was directly
vulgarizing, and indirectly demoralizing. We remember
too, times devoted to useful study. We mean the leisure
hours of a labour-day. The writer remembers the days
when, as the dinner-hour was announced, and all gladly
threw their work aside, he satisfied a fresh appetite
during the first five minutes, and stretched beneath
the shade of a tree, occupied the remaining fifty-five
reading the wars of Caesar, and the songs of Virgil, in
the language of ancient Rome. It made his afternoon's
toil lighter. It made his neighbours respect him; and
what is more, young men, it made him respect himself.
In virtue of that employment, the enticers did not so
frequently assail him; and he was supplied with an
auxiliary means of defence. There are many branches of
52 THE FOE AND THE FIGHT.
useful knowledge, easily accessible, from which you may
choose, each according to his taste. We earnestly counsel
young men to scour up, and keep in use all the powers of
understanding and memory which God has given them.
It will sweeten your labour. It will be something softer
to lean on between your flesh and the iron instruments of
toil. How great the privileges of youth in this country,
and at the present day! How great is the waste, if the
museums, libraries, and public reading-rooms be not turned
to good account!
Benevolent effort.—Every one, young and old, rich and
poor, should always be trying to do some good. There is
abundant opportunity, if there be the willing mind. Try
to live in the world so that you will be missed when you
leave it.
More especially if any young man trusts in Jesus, and
loves souls, these affections will supply the impulse, and
keep him going. Providence on God's part, and prudence
on his, will soon shape out some useful work that he is
able to do. You have not the gifts and graces to conduct
with effect missionary work among the godless and
ignorant? Well, if you have not the ten talents, are you
willing, without the shame of pride, to labour away in
the laying out of one? Will you become librarian, and
distribute a few soiled books into more soiled hands in a
needy district, at a stated hour on a Saturday evening?
You are not clever enough to teach a school of destitute
children, nor rich enough to pay another ? Well, will
you be the whipper-in of the ragged parliament for a given
lane, and see that none of the honourable members be
THE FOE AND THE FIGHT. 53
absent from the lesson? If there were but the willing
mind, every volunteer could be put into harness, so that
his strength would not be overtasked on the one hand,
nor wasted on the other. Over on the enemy's side all
hands are called out, and every one is made to contribute
to the mass of evil. The children of light should be wiser
than they.
Improving company.—It is of great practical import-
ance that young men have friends who will encourage and
direct them. Union is strength. In the battle of life
the want of a sympathizing companion may be the very
point on which an otherwise brave combatant may at last
give way. In this fight as well as others, "shoulder to
shoulder" is a most potent principle, both for the defence
and the onset. Here and there in history you may read
of some hero, who single-handed has foiled an army; but,
taking the common standard of humanity, even a brave
man is easily overpowered by numbers when he stands
alone. There are some points of analogy between that
warfare and ours. To most men the sympathy of tried
friends is a substantial support in the conflict with moral
evil. Right-principled, true-hearted companions are often
"the shields of the earth," which the all-ruling God has
at his disposal, and throws around a youth to protect him
from the fiery darts of the wicked one.
But, though the society of the good is an instrument
of protection not to be despised, it is still subordinate.
There is another Companion. There is a Friend that
sticketh closer than a brother. "Call upon me in the
day of trouble: I will deliver thee, and thou shalt glorify
54 THE FOE AND THE FIGHT.
me" (Ps. 1. 1.5). That He might get into communion
with us, and we with him, God was manifested in the
flesh. The man Christ Jesus, God with us,—this is the
companion by whose side a young man will be infallibly
safe. We believe never youth could be more strongly
assailed than Joseph in Potiphar's house. A sinner enticed
him, —and oh, how many things conspired to give force
to the temptation, as if Satan had concentrated all his
strength, to break through the chain of purposed mercy
for Israel in the fall of Joseph!—a sinner enticed him,
but he consented not. How? Whence did this stripling
derive strength to defy and repel such a cunningly-devised
and well-directed onset? He was weak like another
man, but he had help at hand. He had a companion
whom he had chosen, and with whom he walked. God
was not far from Joseph; Joseph was not far from God.
His answer was, "How can I do this great evil, and sin
against God?" There—there is Joseph's strength. Young
man, you will be as strong as he was, if you lean on the
Arm that supported him.
The best way of moving a young heart is to please it.
The surest way of turning a person from one pleasure is to
give him a greater pleasure on the opposite side. A weep-
ing willow, planted by a pond in a pleasure-garden, turns
all to one side in its growth, and that the side on which
the water lies. No dealing, either with its roots or with
its branches, will avail to change its attitude; but place
a larger expanse of water on the opposite side, and the
tree will turn spontaneously, and hang the other way.
So it is with the out-branching affections of the human
THE FOE AND THE FIGHT. 55
heart. Follies and vices on this side are sweet to its
depraved nature. The joys are shallow at the best, but
it knows no other, and to these it instinctively turns; to
these it grows forth. It acquires a bent in that direction
which no human hand can turn. It will never be turned
unless you can open a rival joy, wider and deeper, on the
other side. And, blessed be God, greater are those joys
that are for us, than all that are against us! The entice-
ments on the side of holiness and safety are in themselves
greater than all that Satan can spread out; and when a
distracted mind can see, and a ladened heart can feel them
as they are, it is forthwith won. "The love of Christ
constraineth us." It is pleasure that can compete with
pleasure. When you are entangled by the allurements of
sin, and oppressed by the terror of wrath, "the joy of the
Lord is your strength."
The lowliness of the prodigal's place, the hunger he
endured, the loathsome appearance of the husks and the
swine,—these things, doubtless, made some impression;
but, alone, they could not save him. They might have
crushed him in despair to the ground, but could not have
borne him home in hope. It was the yearning of his father's
love, it was the image of his father's open embrace, it
was the presentiment of his father's weeping welcome, that
drew the prodigal at once from his miseries and his sins.
Even the truth of God entering the heart, and fasten-
ing on the conscience, has not power to turn a sinner
from the error of his ways, so long as it comes in simply
as a terror. What the law could not do God did by
sending his Son. What naked righteousness, with ven-
56 THE FOE AND THE FIGHT.
geance at its back, failed to do, manifested mercy in
Christ achieved. Righteous mercy—justice satisfied by
Emmanuel's sacrifice, and divine compassion flowing free
upon the lost—this is the thing of Christ which the
Holy Spirit wields as the weapon to win a human heart.
This heart, young man, is a space that must and will
be occupied. It is the battle-field between Satan and
Satan's manifested Destroyer. Within you this holy war
must be waged. How long halt ye between two
opinions? Who is on the Lord's side? let him come.
Unless Christ dwell in your heart by faith, the enemy
will return, or abide, in triumph. You cannot fight the
enticements of sinful pleasure in your own strength.
These iniquities, like the wind, will carry you away; but
under the Captain of your salvation you may fight and
win. The deceits and corruptions of your heart, which
your own resolutions cannot overcome—bring forth these
enemies and slay them before Him Drag forth these
enticements of sinners that seemed so fresh and sweet to
the carnal eye—drag them forth and expose them there;—
their root will become rottenness, and their blossom will
go up like dust. The faces of these tempters that beamed
with mirth in the glare of kindled passions, will, when
seen in the light of His love, appear hideous as spectres of
the night.
His entrance into the heart will turn the tide of the
conflict; and He is willing: "Behold I stand at the
door and knock. If any man open, I will come in."
"Even so: come, Lord Jesus!"
FILTHY LUCRE. 57
VII.
FILTHY LUCRE.
"So are the ways of every one that is greedy of gain;
which taketh away the life of the owners thereof."—i. 19.
THESE "ways," as described by Solomon in the preceding
verses, are certainly some of the very worst. We have
here literally the picture of a robber's den. The persons
described are of the baser sort: the crimes enumerated
are gross and rank: they would be outrageously disreput-
able in any society, of any age. Yet when these apples
of Sodom are traced to their sustaining root, it turns out
to be greed of gain. The love of money can bear all these.
This scripture is not out of date in our day, or out of
place in our community. The word of God is not left
behind obsolete by the progress of events. "All flesh is as
grass, and all the glory of man as the flower of grass. The
grass withereth, and the flower thereof falleth away: but
the word of the Lord endureth for ever." —1 Peter i. 21,
25. The Scripture traces sin to its fountain, and deposits
the sentence of condemnation there, a sentence that fol-
lows actual evil through all its diverging paths. A spring
of poisonous water may in one part of its course run over
a rough rocky bed, and in another glide silent and smooth
through a verdant meadow; but, alike when chafed into
foam by obstructing rocks, and when reflecting the flowers
from its glassy breast, it is the same lethal stream. So
58 FILTHY LUCRE.
from greed of gain—from covetousness which is idolatry,
the issue is evil, whether it run riot in murder and rapine
in Solomon's days, or crawl sleek and slimy through cun-
ning tricks of trade in our own. God seeth not as man
seeth. He judges by the character of the life stream that
flows from the fountain of thought, and not by the form
of the channel which accident may have hollowed out to
receive it.
When this greed of gain is generated, like a thirst in
the soul, it imperiously demands satisfaction: and it takes
satisfaction wherever it can be most readily found. In
some countries of the world still it retains the old-fashioned
iniquity which Solomon has described: it turns freebooter,
and leagues with a band of kindred spirits, for the prose-
cution of the business on a larger scale. In our country,
though the same passion domineer in a man's heart, it
will not adopt the same method, because it has cunning
enough to know that by this method it could not succeed.
Dishonesty is diluted, and coloured, and moulded into
shapes of respectability to suit the taste of the times. We
are not hazarding an estimate whether there be as much
of dishonesty under all our privileges as prevailed in a
darker day: we affirm only that wherever dishonesty is,
its nature remains the same, although its form may be
more refined. He who will judge both mean men and
merchant princes requires truth in the inward parts.
There is no respect of persons with Him. Fashions do
not change about the throne of the Eternal. With Him
a thousand years are as one day. The ancient and
modern evil doers are reckoned brethren in iniquity.
FILTHY LUCRE. 59
despite the difference in the costume of their crimes.
Two men are alike greedy of gain. One of them being
expert in accounts, defrauds his creditors, and thereafter
drives his carriage: the other, being robust of limb, robs
a traveller on the highway, and then holds midnight revel
on the spoil. Found fellow sinners, they will be left fellow
sufferers. Refined dishonesty is as displeasing to God, as
hurtful to society, and as unfit for heaven, as the coarsest
crime.
This greed, when full grown, is coarse and cruel. It
is not restrained by any delicate sense of what is right or
seemly. It has no bowels. It marches right to its mark,
treading on everything that lies in the way. If necessary
in order to clutch the coveted gain, "it taketh away the
life of the owners thereof." Covetousness is idolatry. The
idol delights in blood. He demands and gets a hecatomb
of human sacrifices.
Among the labourers employed in a certain district to
construct a railway was one thick-necked, bushy, sensual,
ignorant, brutalized man, who lodged in the cottage of a
lone old woman. This woman was in the habit of laying
up her weekly earnings in a certain chest, of which she
carefully kept the key. The lodger observed where the
money lay. After the works were completed and the work-
men dispersed, this man was seen in the grey dawn of a
Sabbath morning stealthily approaching the cottage. That
day, for a wonder among the neighbours, the dame did
not appear at church. They went to her house, and
learned the cause. Her dead body lay on the cottage-
floor: the treasure-chest was robbed of its few pounds
60 FILTHY LUCRE.
and odd shillings; and the murderer had fled. Afterwards
they caught and hanged him.
Shocking crime! To murder a helpless woman in her
own house, in order to reach and rifle her little hoard,
laid up against the winter and the rent! The criminal
is of a low, gross, bestial nature. Be it so. He was a
pest to society, and society flung the troubler off the earth.
But what of those who are far above him in education and
social position, and as far beyond him in the measure of
their guilt? How many human lives is the greed of gain
even now taking away, in the various processes of slavery?
Men who hold a high place, and bear a good name in the
world, have in this form taken away the life of thousands
for filthy lucre's sake. Murder on a large scale has been,
and is done upon the African tribes by civilized men for
money.
The opium traffic, forced upon China by the military
power of Britain, and maintained by our merchants in
India, is murder done for money on a mighty scale.
Opium spreads immorality, imbecility, and death, through
the teeming ranks of the Chinese populations. No
opium is cultivated on their own soil. The governments,
alike the Tartar dynasty and the patriot chiefs, have
prohibited the introduction of the deadly drug. Our
merchants brought it to their shores in ship-loads not-
withstanding, and the thunder of our cannon opened a
way for its entrance through the feeble ranks that lined
the shore. Every law of political economy, and every
sentiment of Christian charity, cries aloud against nur-
turing on our soil, and letting loose among our neigh-
FILTHY LUCRE. 61
bours, that grim angel of death. The greed of gain alone
suggests, commands, compels it. At this hour the patriot
army in China, who, with all their faults and their igno-
rance, certainly do circulate the Bible, and worship God,
oppose the introduction of opium, with all their moral
influence and all their military force. How can we
expect them to accept the Bible from us, while we
compel them to take our opium? British Christians
might bear to China that life for which the Chinese seem
to be thirsting, were it not that British merchants are
bearing to China that death which the Chinese patriots
loathe. It is an instance of the strong coveting the
money of the weak, and, in order to reach it, taking
"away the life of the owners thereof"
A bloated, filthy, half naked labourer, hanging on at
the harbour, has gotten a shilling for a stray job. As
soon as he has wiped his brow, and fingered the coin, he
walks into a shop and asks for whisky. The shopkeeper
knows the man—knows that his mind and body are
damaged by strong drink—knows that his family are
starved by the father's drunkenness. The shopkeeper
eyes the squalid wretch. The shilling tinkles on the
counter. With one band the dealer supplies the glass,
and with the other mechanically rakes the shilling into
the till among the rest. It is the price of blood. Life is
taken there for money. The gain is filthy. Feeling its
stain eating like rust into his conscience, the man who
takes it, reasons eagerly with himself thus;—"He was
determined to have it; and if I wont, another will." So
he settles the case that occurred in the market-place on
62 FILTHY LUCRE.
earth; but he has not done with it yet. How will it
sound as an answer to the question, “where is thy bro-
ther” when it comes in thunder from the judgment-
seat of God?
Oh that men's eyes were opened to know this sin
beneath all its coverings, and loathe it in all its disguises!
Other people may do the same, and we may never have
thought seriously of the matter. But these reasons, and
a thousand others, will not cover sin. All men should
think of the character and consequences of their actions.
God will weigh our deeds. We should ourselves weigh
them beforehand in his balances. It is not what that
man has said, or this man has done; but what Christ
is, and his members should be. The question for every
man through life is, not what is the practice of earth, but
what is preparation for heaven. There would not be
much difficulty in judging what gain is right, and what
is wrong, if we would take Christ into our counsels. If
people look unto Jesus, when they think of being saved,
and look hard away from him when they are planning
how to make money, they will miss their mark for both
worlds. When a man gives his heart to gain, he is an
idolater. Money has become his god. He would rather
that the Omniscient should not be the witness of his
worship. While he is sacrificing in this idol's temple, he
would prefer that Christ should reside high in heaven,
out of sight, and out of mind. He would like Christ to
be in heaven, ready to open its gates to him, when death
at last drives him off the earth; but he will not open for
Christ now that other dwelling-place which he loves—a
FILTHY LUCRE. 63
humble and contrite heart. "Christ in you, the hope of
glory;" there is the cure of covetousness! That blessed
Indweller, when he enters, will drive out—with a scourge,
if need be—such buyers and sellers as defiled his temple.
His still small voice within would flow forth, and print
itself on all your traffic,—"love one another, as I have
loved you."
On this point the Christian Church is very low. The
living child has lain so close to the world's bosom, that
she has overlaid it in the night, and stifled its troublesome
cry. After all our familiarity with the Catechism, we
need yet to learn "what is the chief end of man" and
what should be compelled to stand aside as a secondary
thing. We need from all who fear the Lord, a long, loud
testimony against the practice of heartlessly subordinating
human bodies and souls to the accumulation of material
wealth.
64 THE CRY OF WISDOM.
VIII.
THE CRY OF WISDOM.
"Wisdom crieth without; she uttereth her voice in the streets she crieth in
the chief place of concourse, in the openings of the gates: in the city she
uttereth her words, saying, How long, ye simple ones, will ye love simplicity?
and the scorners delight in their scorning, and fools hate knowledge?"—
i. 20-22.
THE evil doers are not left without a warning. The
warning is loud, public, authoritative. But who is this
monitor that claims the submissive regard of men? WIS-
DOMS. —Wisdom from above is the teacher: the lesson
that follows is not after the manner of men. We recog-
nise already the style of that Prophet who came in the
fulness of time, speaking as never man spake. It was in
this manner that Jesus, in the days of his flesh, stood
and cried to the multitude—to the simple who loved
simplicity, and the scorners who loved scorning—"if any
man thirst, let him come unto me and drink." Before
He was manifested to Israel, His delights were with the
sons of men. In the provisions of the well ordered cove-
nant, He had the means of sounding an alarm in human
ears before He became incarnate. He found and used a
willing messenger to preach righteousness to rebellious
spirits in Noah's days. Neither did He leave Himself
without a witness in the time of Solomon. The eternal
Son of God is not only wisdom in himself, He is "made
unto us wisdom." He who was seen by Abraham afar
THE CRY OF WISDOM. 65
off, was heard by Abraham's seed in later days. In the
beginning was the Word, and the Word was God. The
Word and Wisdom of God made Himself known to men
at sundry times, and in divers manners, before He took
flesh and dwelt among us.
In the Scriptures, Wisdom cried to men. "They tes-
tify of me," said Jesus. The prophets all spake of his
coming, and prepared his way. The sacrifices offered
year by year, and day by day continually, proclaimed
aloud to each generation the guilt of men, and the way
of mercy. The history of Israel, all the days of old, was
itself Wisdom's perennial articulate cry of warning to the
rebellious. The plains of Egypt and the Red Sea, Sinai
and the Jordan, each had a voice, and all proclaimed in con-
cert the righteousness and mercy that kissed each other
in the counsels of God. The things that happened to
them, happened for ensamples; and the things were not
done in a corner. In the opening of the gates, in the
city's busiest haunts, the proclamation was made to
unwilling listeners. The cry of Wisdom, in those days
of old, if it did not turn the impenitent, was sufficient to
condemn them. It was so manifestly from God, and so
intelligible to men, that it must have either led them
out of condemnation, or left them under it, without
excuse.
But the wisdom of God is a manifold wisdom. While
it centres bodily in Christ, and thence issues as from its
source, it is reflected and re-echoed from every object, and
every event. There is a challenge in the prophets, "Oh,
earth, earth, earth, hear the word of the Lord!" The
66 THE CRY OF WISDOM.
receptive earth has taken in that word, and obediently
repeats it from age to age. The stars of heaven, and the
flowers of earth, facing each other like the opposite ranks
of a choral band, hymn, alternate and responsive, the
wisdom of God. He hath made all things for Himself.
He serves Himself of criminals and their crimes. From
many a ruined fortune, Wisdom cries, "Remember the
Sabbath-day, to keep it holy." From many an outcast
in his agonies, as when the eagles of the valley are picking
out his eyes, Wisdom cries, "Honour thy father and
mother that thy days may be long." From many a
gloomy scaffold Wisdom cries, "Thou shalt not kill."
Every law of nature, and every event in history, has a
tongue by which Wisdom proclaims God's holiness, and
rebukes man's sin.
But is there any prophet of the Lord besides these?
Is there any other organ by which Wisdom cries to men?
There is one. Giving force to all other intimations there
is a prophet of the Lord within every man—his own
conscience. We are fearfully made. That witness within
us is often feared and shunned, more than armed men,
more than gates and bars, more sometimes than the
dungeon, the scaffold, and the drop. It is the case of the
ancient king over again. He is a prophet of the Lord,
"but I hate him because he never prophesies good con-
cerning me."
But it is not conscience proclaiming God's anger against
the man's evil, that has power to make the man good.
All the instincts of the transgressor's nature are leagued
in an effort to smother the disturber, and they generally
THE CRY OF WISDOM. 67
succeed. It is the conscience sprinkled with the blood
of Christ that at once speaks peace, and works purity.
Three classes of persons seem to be singled out here,
and to each is administered an appropriate reproof:
1. The simple who love simplicity; 2. The scorners who
delight in scorning; 3. The fools who hate knowledge.
1. The simple who love simplicity. Probably we
would not be far from the truth if we should accept this
term in the Proverbs as intended to indicate that class of
sinners whose leading characteristic is the absence of good,
rather than positive activity in evil. The root of bitter-
ness has not shot forth in any form of outrageous vice,
but it remains destitute of righteousness, They do not
blaspheme God indeed, but they neglect his salvation,
and they cannot escape. Their hearts by a law of
inherent evil depart from Him; He in judgment lets them
go, and gives them over.
The simple for time are always a numerous class.
They cannot be intrusted with money, for it will all go
into the hands of the first sharper whom they meet.
They will let the day pass, with no provision for the
night, and never think it needful until the darkness has
fallen down. They will let the summer come and go
without laying up a store for the time to come. When
the winter arrives they have neither house nor clothing,
neither money nor food. Somehow they did not think
of these things. The sunshine was pleasant while it
lasted; they basked in its rays; and it did not occur to
them that a cloud might soon darken the face of the
sky.
68 THE CRY OF WISDOM.
But the simple for eternity are more numerous still.
While they have food and raiment they pass the time
pleasantly and never think of sin. As for righteousness,
they do not feel the want of it, and form no high estimate
of its worth. As to the judgment-seat of God, they have
lived a long time, and have never seen it yet; they don't
trouble themselves with anticipations of evil. The great
white throne has always kept out of their sight, and they
keep out of its sight. How many simple ones are going
fast forward to death, with no life to triumph over it!
How many are drawing near the border in utter listless-
ness, as if there were no sin, and no judgment—no God,
no Heaven, no Hell!
2. The scorners who love scorning. This is another
feature of the fallen—another phase of the great rebellion.
This class meet the threatening realities of eternity not
by an easy indifference, but by a hardy resistance. They
have a bold word ever ready to ward solemn thought
away,—a sneer at the silliness of a saint, an oath to
manifest courage, or a witty allusion to Scripture which
will make the circle ring again with laughter.
There have been scorners in every age. There are
not a few amongst us at the present day. They may be
found on both the edges of society. Poverty and riches
become by turns a temptation to the same sin. It is not
only the shop of the artizan that resounds with frequent
scoffs: the same sound is familiar in the halls of the
rich. Many of the young men who have been educated
in affluence, belong to this class. They have large pos-
sessions, and larger prospects; they wish to enjoy what
THE CRY OF WISDOM. 69
they have. The triumph of grace in their hearts would
dethrone the god of this world, and spoil his goods. The
running fire of profane jests proceeds from advanced
earth-works which Satan has thrown up around his
citadel, in his earnestness not only to keep his goods in
safety from the overthrowing power of conversion, but in
peace from the troublesome assaults of conviction.
Scorners love scorning. The habit grows by indulgence.
It becomes a second nature. It becomes the element in
which they live. And what gives them confidence? Have
they by searching found out that there is no God? Or
have they ascertained that He has no punishment in store
for the wicked? No they have not settled these ques-
tions at all, either to the satisfaction of mankind, or their
own. These scoffs are generally parrying strokes to keep
convictions away. These smart sayings are the fence to
turn aside certain arrows which might otherwise fix their
tormenting barbs in the conscience. The scorner is
generally not so bold a man as he appears to be. He
keeps the truth at arms length. He strikes at it
vehemently before it gets near him. All this be-
trays a secret sense of weakness. He cannot afford to
come into close contact with the sword of the Spirit.
These violent gesticulations against the truth indicate the
unerring instinct of the old man resisting that which
advances to destroy him. "What have we to do with
thee thou Jesus, art thou come to torment us before the
time?”
3. The fools who hate knowledge. By a comparison
of various scriptures in which the term occurs, it appears
70 THE CRY OF WISDOM.
that fools are those who have reached the very highest
degrees of evil. Here it is intimated that they hate
knowledge; and knowledge has its beginning in the fear
of God. All the branches springing from that root, and
all the sweet fruit they bear, are hateful to fools. The
knowledge has come to men, in so far as to be presented
to their minds, and pressed on their acceptance. Some,
the simple, never think of it at all; and others, the
scorners, bar its faintest approaches; but these fools,
after it has made its way into the conscience, exclude it
from their hearts. They have not been able to keep
Truth's heavenly form out of their minds, but they hate it
when it comes in. Others only live without Christ,
keeping Him at a distance; but these are against Him,
after He has been revealed in majesty divine. The
emphatic "No God" of the Fourteenth Psalm indicates,
not the despair of a seeker who is unable to find truth,
but the anger of an enemy who does not like to retain
it. It is not a judgment formed in the fool's under-
standing, but a passion rankling in his heart.
How long is all this to last?
"How long, ye simple ones, will ye love simplicity?"
God is weary of your indifference; how long will it
cleave to you? How long will a man continue to be
regardless of his soul? Till death? It will certainly be
no longer. He who would not cry in hope for mercy to
pardon his sin, did cry without hope for a drop of water
to cool his tongue.
"How long will the scorners delight in their scorning?"
Will they not cease from blaspheming God, until God,
THE CRY OF WISDOM. 71
ceasing to be gracious, stop their breath, and take them
away? If you continue this scorning till your dying
day, do you expect to continue it longer? Will you
make merry with the judgment-seat? Will you be able
to argue against the wrath of the Lamb? Depart from
me, ye cursed—that word will crush the scorning out of
the boldest blasphemer. Would that the profane might
make the discovery now; for it will be too late to make
it when the day is spent.
“How long shall fools hate knowledge?” Unless
they learn to love it soon, they will hate it for ever.
They might learn to love it now; for the same word
that rebukes sin reveals mercy. Well might the fool
learn to love the knowledge which presents Christ cruci-
fied as the way of a sinner’s return; but if a man do not
love knowledge revealing mercy, how shall he love it
denouncing wrath? The only knowledge that can reach
the lost is the knowledge that the door is shut. How
long
will they hate that knowledge? Evermore.
72 A REVIVAL.
IX.
A REVIVAL.
"Turn you at my reproof: behold, I will pour out my Spirit unto you."—i. 28.
"TURN you at my reproof: behold, I will pour out my
Spirit;"—the command and the promise joined, and con-
stituting one harmonious whole. How strictly in con-
cord are the several intimations of the Scriptures! "Work
out your own salvation; for it is God that worketh in
you" (Phil. ii. 12). To him that hath shall be given,
and he shall have abundance. It is to those who turn
that the promise of the Spirit is addressed. These two
reciprocate. The Spirit poured out arrests a sinner, and
turns him; then, as he turns, he gets more of the Spirit
poured out. The sovereignty of God, and the duty of
men, are both alike real, and each has its own place in
the well ordered covenant. It is true, that unless a man
turn, he will not get God's Spirit poured out; and it is
also true, that unless he get God's Spirit poured out, he
will not turn. When the dead is recalled to life, the
blood, sent circling through the system, sets the valves of
the heart a-beating, and the valves of the heart, by their
beating, send the life-blood circling throughout the frame.
It would be in vain to inquire what was the point in the
reciprocating series to which the life-giving impulse was
first applied. The mysteries of the human spirit are
A REVIVAL. 73
deeper still than those of the body. The way of God, in
the regeneration of man, is past finding out. One, part
of it He keeps near himself, concealed by the clouds
and darkness that surround his throne; another part
of it He has clearly revealed to our understandings, and
pressed on our hearts. His immediate part is to pour
out the Spirit; our immediate part is to turn at his
reproof if, instead of simply doing our part, we pre-
sumptuously intrude into his, we shall attain neither. If
we reverently regard the promise, and diligently obey
the command, we shall get and do—we shall do and get.
We shall get the Spirit, enabling us to turn; and turn,
in order to get more of the Spirit. The command is
given, not to make the promise unnecessary, but to send
us to it for help. The promise is given, not to super-
sede the command, but to encourage us in the effort to
obey. Turn at his reproof and hope in his promise;
hope in his promise, and turn at his reproof
Religion, when it is real, is altogether a practical
thing. It disappoints Satan; it crucifies the flesh; it
sanctifies the character; it glorifies God. It is a thing
that acts, and acts mightily. It is a thing, not of words,
but of deeds. There is an enormous amount of mere
imitation religion amongst us. If there were as great a
proportion of counterfeit coin circulating in the kingdom,
we would be all on the alert to detect and destroy it.
We would feel the danger of being ourselves deceived,
and losing the riches for which we care. There ought to
be greater jealousy of a spiritless form, a gilded word
religion, passing current in the Church; for he who is
74 A REVIVAL.
taken in by this "name to live," though he should gain
the whole world, will lose his own soul.
A valorous hand to hand struggle with inherent cor-
ruptions is distressingly rare, in the wide spread religious
profession of the day. You read and pray, and worship
in the assembly, and complain that, notwithstanding,
your souls do not prosper; you have not comfort; you
are not sensible of growth in grace. But all this is mere
hypocrisy, if you be not "turning"—tearing yourself
asunder from besetting sins, as from a right arm or a
right eye. The evil speaking, watch it, catch it on your
lips, crush it as it swells and germinates in the seed-bed
of your thoughts within. The equivocations, the half-
untruths, down with them. Out with the very truth,
although it should break off the nearly completed bar-
gain—although it should freeze the friendship that seems
necessary to your success. Anger, malice, envy,—seize
these vipers, that twist and hiss in your bosom; strangle
them outright there. Your religion is nothing better
than a cheat, if you are not busy with the work of ceas-
ing to do evil. "Herein do I exercise myself:" said
Paul, "that I may have a conscience void of offence."
How can the feeblest learners of the truth attain, by an
idle wish, that actual progressive purification, which its
greatest human teacher only strove after by incessant
exercise?
In the manifold diversities of sin, there is such a
thing as the pride of self-righteousness. You fall into
this error when you pretend to turn from evil without
trusting in God. You fall into the opposite snare of
A REVIVAL. 75
hypocrisy, when you pretend to trust in God, and do
not turn at his command. Getting freely and doing faith-
fully, together constitute true religion. Get and do, do
and get. Nor is it a partitioning of salvation be-
tween God and man, as if a part of it were his gift,
and a part of it man's act. The turning which consti-
tutes salvation is, supremely, all God's gift, and, subordi-
nately, all the doing of the man. From the spring-
head in the heart, to the outermost streams of life, He
makes all things new; and yet the man himself must, at
God's bidding, turn from all iniquity.
We speak of a revival; we pray for it; perhaps we
long for it. But all this, and an hundredfold more in
the same direction, will not bring it about. God's arm
is not shortened: his ear is not heavy. Our iniquities
separate between us and Him. The way to invite his
presence is to put away the evil of our doings: for He
cannot dwell with sin. And if any one, conscious of his
knowledge and jealous of orthodoxy, should say in oppo-
sition, it is God's presence, sovereignly vouchsafed, that
makes the visited man put away his evil, we answer, that
is a glorious truth, but is not an argument against our
injunction. That is the upper end of a revealed truth
which reaches from earth to heaven. It is too high for
us. If you put forth your hand to touch it at the top,
it will consume you. That high thing is for God to
handle, and not man. The end that leans on earth and
lies to your band is—turn, you at my reproof. The
only safe way of moving the heaven-high extreme of the
divine sovereignty for revival, is by throwing ourselves
76 A REVIVAL.
with our whole weight on this which is the visible, tan-
gible, lower end of that incomprehensible mystery—this
turning from our own evil in obedience to the command
of God.
The grand hinderance to a revival by the Spirit poured
out is the general conformity of Christians to the fashion
of the world. The short road to a revival is to turn
from the error of our ways. If there were more of the
doing which religion demands, there would be more of
the getting which it promises.
Turn at my reproof. God looketh on the heart. He
measures the motive as well as the deed. There is such
a thing as a proud atheistic morality, which is as offen-
sive to God as more vulgar vice. To abstain from com-
mon and gross transgressions, is not holiness. It is a
partial process. It is to diminish the bulk of wickedness
on one side, by directing all the stream of internal cor-
ruption to the other side. When a man turns from
wickedness because God hates it, he will turn alike from
every sin. If we reform ourselves, we will select despised
and shameful lusts of the flesh to be sacrificed, but retain
and cherish certain favourite lusts of the mind. If we
permit God's word to search, and God's authority to rule,
idols alike of high and low degree will be driven forth of
the temple. If the turning be at His reproof, it will be
a turning both complete in its comprehension and true in
its character—a turning without partiality and without
hypocrisy.
When we turn at his reproof, He will pour out his
Spirit: when He pours out his Spirit we will turn at
A REVIVAL. 77
his reproof. Blessed circle for saints to reason in. He
formed the channel wherein grace and duty chase each
other round. He supplied the material alike of the get-
ting and the doing. He set the stream in motion, and
He will keep it going, until every good work begun shall
be perfect in the day of Christ Jesus.
Hear that voice from heaven, "I will pour out." Yea,
Lord; then we must draw away. We are placed at the
open orifice in the lowest extremity of the outbranching
channel: the fountain head is with God on high. When
He pours out, we draw forth: when we draw forth, He
pours out. It is because there is a pressure constant and
strong from that upper spring of grace, that we can draw
any here below for the exercises of obedience; but the
covenant is ordered so that, if we do not draw for the
supply of actual effort, none will gravitate toward us from
the fountain head. It is the still stagnant dead mass of
inert profession, sticking in the lower lips of the channel,
that checks the flow of grace, and practically seals for us
its unfathomable fountain. If there were a turning, a
movement, an effort, an expenditure, a need, a vacancy,
at our extremity below, there would be a flow of the
divine compassion to make up the want, and charge every
vessel anew with fresh and full supply. Prove Him
now herewith; exert and expend in his service, and see
whether He will not open the windows of heaven and
pour out a blessing, greater than the room made vacant
to receive it.
78 SOWING DISOBEDIENCE, REAPING JUDGMENT.
X.
SOWING DISOBEDIENCE, REAPING JUDGMENT.
"Because I have called, and ye refused; I have stretched out my hand, and no
man regarded; but ye have set at nought all my counsel, and would none of
my reproof: I also will laugh at your calamity; I will mock when your fear
cometh; when your fear cometh as desolation, and your destruction cometh as
a whirlwind; when distress and anguish cometh upon you. Then shall they
call upon me, but I will not answer; they shall seek me early, but they shall
not find me."—i. 2 4-28.
AT sundry times and in divers manners, the Omniscient
Witness of men's wickedness has invited the evil doers to
draw near, ere yet the judgment should be set and the
books opened, that He may "reason together" with them
on their state and prospects. One of those marvellous rea-
sonings of the Judge with the criminal is recorded here.
I. God in mercy visits a rebellious generation.—There
are four terms employed to describe this visit, and although
they are arranged to suit the exigencies of Hebrew poetry,
they follow each other in natural order and issue in a
climax. He calls, stretches out His hands, gives counsel,
and administers reproof.
1. The call. Men with one consent were departing
from the living God. They had turned the back on Him,
and not the face. He does not leave Himself without a
witness. He has many ways of uttering His voice. It
is in the earthquake and in the storm. Day unto day
SOWING DISOBEDIENCE, REAPING JUDGMENT. 79
proclaims it, and night unto night. There is no speech
nor language where it is not heard. Even where its only
effect is to drive the scared culprit to superstitious ob-
servances, it has been heard, and the superstitious are
accountable. The call has come with more distinct arti-
culation from the lips of prophets and apostles. It sounds
with authority in a human conscience. Whether men
obey the call or disobey it, they are secretly conscious that
the call has reached them, and are left without excuse.
2. The hands stretched out.—When the call has come
and startled the prodigal; when the prodigal, aroused,
looks toward the quarter whence the voice proceeds, lo, a
Father whom he has offended is opening his arms wide
to clasp the outcast in the embrace of an everlasting love.
Is. lxv. 1, 2. When busy men lift up their heads from
the dust to which their souls are cleaving, and listen to
the voice of God, they find out that He is not yet against
them a consuming fire. His hands are outstretched:
there is a way, and the way is open unto the Father.
There is no obstruction: there is no forbidding: there is
no upbraiding. Chief sinners are even now entering. in.
Behold, they are arising and going to the Father. They
are converging frequent and swift, as doves to their win-
dows, They are neither kept back, nor thrust down
among hired servants. They are welcomed as sons and
daughters. They are made heirs of God, and joint-heirs
with Christ. Their sins are remembered no more.
3. The counsel.—Some who have heard the call and
lifted up their heads and looked, and seen the door of
mercy open, are glad, and take encouragement to continue
80 SOWING DISOBEDIENCE, REAPING JUDGMENT.
a little longer far from God and righteousness. They see
the arms of mercy stretched out all day long, although a
people continue disobedient. Seeing this, they secretly
feel, if they do not venture to say, that there is no cause
for alarm. The door will remain open to-day, and, to-
morrow, and the next day: we shall run in before it be
shut. What does God do for these deceivers? He does
not let them alone. He counsels them. "Flee to the
stronghold, prisoners of hope." "Wherefore spend ye your
money for that which is not bread?" "Come unto me, ye
that labour and are heavy laden, and I will give you rest"
If they resist still, will He shut the door now, and shut
them out? No, not yet: He will administer,
4. Reproof—Mercy interposes with the plea, let them
alone yet this once. There is One yearning over the cal-
lous, who have no mercy on their own souls. "How can
I give thee up?" He remembers mercy, and makes
judgment stand back. He makes judgment his strange
work, not permitting it to appear early or often to strike
the decisive blow. He has yet another resource. When
counsel is despised, He will bring forward reproof. If they
will not be enticed by the promise of heaven, He will
threaten them with the fear of hell. "The wicked shall
be turned into hell, and all the nations that forget God."
"Except ye repent, ye shall perish." "Except a man be born
again, he cannot see the kingdom of God." Inconceivably
great is the weight of that wrath which is treasured up
against the day of wrath, to be poured all on the impeni-
tent then. But that reserved wrath is not left meantime
lying useless in its treasure-house. Everlasting love needs
SOWING DISOBEDIENCE, REAPING JUDGMENT. 81
a strong hard instrument wherewith to work out her
blessed purposes on an unpliant race. Mercy, in this the
day of her reign, sovereignly seizes judgment before its
time, and works that mighty lever to move mankind.
The terrors of the Lord are not permitted to sleep un-
noticed and unknown, till the day when they shall over-
flow and overwhelm all his enemies: they are summoned
forth in the interval, and numbered among the all things
that work together for good. Though kept like it reserve
in the rear, their grim hosts are exposed to view, in order
that they may co-operate with kindlier agencies in per-
suading men to yield, and fight against God no more.
"Him that cometh to me, I will in no wise cast out"
Kindly plies the sweet promise next to a wounded heart:
but the gentle promise is backed by a terrible reproof.
Cast out—there it is; judgment looming in reserve;
serving meantime by its blackness to make the invitation
more winning, but there, unchangeable, omnipotent, to
receive on its awful edge, the crowds that rush reckless
over the intervening day of grace, and fall into the hands
of the living God.
He suffers long, and pleads: but even in Him compas-
sions will not, cannot farther flow. He calls, stretches
out his hands, counsels, and, when men still refuse, He
makes the threat of wrath mercy's instrument to compass
them about, and compel them to come in: but He stops
there. God will not put forth a hand to lift a man to
heaven in his sleep; or drag him in against his will.
When counsel and reproof are rejected, then "there re-
maineth nothing but a fearful looking for of judgment
82 SOWING DISOBEDIENCE, REAPING JUDGMENT.
and fiery indignation, which shall devour the adversary."
Those who withstand all these means and messages, will
be left like Esau without the blessing. "He cried with
an exceeding great and bitter cry, and said unto his
father, Bless me, even me also, oh, my father:" but the
time was past, and the door was shut.
II. A rebellious generation neglect or resist the gracious
visitation of God. "I have called, and ye refused: I have
stretched out my hand, and no man regarded: Ye have
set at nought all my counsel; and would none of my re-
proof." This is an appalling indictment uttered by the
God of truth. Who are the guilty? "Lord, is it I? Lord,
is it I?"
“He that hath an ear to hear let him hear what the Spirit
saith.” Men have ears and stop them. The Lord made
the ear of man, and a wonderful work it is. Strange that
it should be open to every voice but the entreaty of its
Maker. In times when vile men held the high places
of this land, a roll of drums was employed to drown
the martyr's voice, lest the testimony of truth from the
scaffold should reach the people. Thus they closed the
ears of the multitude against the voice of the servants.
Not by a roll of drums at a single tyrant's bidding, but
by a strong deep hum of business, kept up through com-
mon consent, is the ear closed now against the Master's
own word. So constant is the noise of mammon, hum-
ming day and night, that the partial silence of the Sab-
bath is felt an unwelcome pause. As arts advance, and
more is crammed into the six days, so much the more
SOWING DISOBEDIENCE, REAPING JUDGMENT. 83
eager are mammon's worshippers to fill the Sabbath with
the same confused noise. The word says, "Be still and
know that I am God:" those who don't want this know-
ledge are afraid to be still, lest it should steal in and dis-
turb their peace. God's mighty hand sometimes inter-
feres to quiet this hubbub in a heart, or a house. It is
when the inmates are compelled to go about the house
with whispers, that his voice is best heard. I know of
nothing more fitted to touch a conscience than this ten-
der complaint from our Judge. He stretched out his
hands: no man regarded. What then? He complains
of the neglect, and addresses his complaint to the ne-
glecters. Here is mercy full, pressed down, and run-
ning over. He whom men reject, pleads with men for
rejecting him. When he so stretched out himself to us,
how shall we answer if we turn our back on Him?
III. They shall eat the fruit of their own ways, and be
filled with their own devices.
This life is the spring time of our immortal being; the
harvest is eternity. Harvest is not the time for sowing.
We shall reap then what we sow now. This law is of
God. It is like the laws by which He regulates all nature.
If a man sow tares or thistles in his field in spring, it is
probable that a bitter regret will seize upon him in the
harvest day. He will loathe the worthless crop that he
gets to fill his bosom. But he cannot, by a sudden and
energetic wish, change all the laws of nature, and make
his field wave with ripened grain. As certainly as a hus-
bandman in harvest reaps only what he sowed in spring,
84 SOWING DISOBEDIENCE, REAPING JUDGMENT.
shall they who in life sow sin, reap wrath in the judg-
ment. The provisions of his covenant are steadfast as
the laws of his world. His promises are sure as the ordi-
nances of heaven, and his threatenings too.
It is true that God destroys his enemies: but it is also
true that they destroy themselves. They throw themselves
into the fire, and by his laws they are burned. He has
laws that are everlasting and unchangeable. He has not
hidden them from men. He has plainly declared them.
"The soul that sinneth, it shall die." Those who cast them-
selves on revealed wrath are their own destroyers. These
outstretched hands of his are clear of a sinner's blood.
Judgment will be an exact answer to disobedience, as
fruit answers the seed, or an echo the sound. The
stictness of retribution at last will correspond to the
freeness of mercy now. There would be no glory in God's
present compassion, if it had not the full terror of immut-
able justice behind it to lean upon. Even the divine long-
suffering would lose its loveliness if it did not stand in
front of divine wrath. You cannot paint an angel upon
light: so mercy could not be represented—mercy could not
be, unless there were judgment without mercy, a ground of
deep darkness lying beneath, to sustain and reveal it.
That there may be a day of grace pushed forward within
the reach of men on earth, there must be a throne of judg-
ment as its base in eternity. When the day of grace is
past, the throne of judgment stands alone, and the impeni-
tent must meet it.
The anguish comes first within the conscience of the
ungodly, when the life course is drawing near its close.
SOWING DISOBEDIENCE, REAPING JUDGMENT. 85
Desolation comes like a whirlwind. The body is drooping:
the grave is opening: the judgment is preparing. He has no
righteousness, and no hope. Behold now the prospect be-
fore the immortal, when death, like a rising wave, has blot-
ted out the beams of mercy that lingered to the last. It is
now the blackness of darkness. Hope, that flickered long,
has gone out at length. And how rigidly strict must the
retribution be. They would not hear God in the day of
mercy: in the day of vengeance God will not hear them.
They laughed at His threatenings: He will mock their cry.
This reciprocity is the law of his kingdom. It cannot be
changed.
Let those who live without God in the world mark
what it is that He counts the heaviest retribution upon
sin. It is this--"They shall call upon me, but I will not
answer." When, groping darkling on the shore of eternity,
they cry in terror, "O God, where art Thou?" only their
own voice, mocking, will return from, the abyss, "Where
art thou?" A man's life has a language which the Judge
understands. The life utterance of the carnal, when
divested of all its pretences, and gathered into one, is
"No God!" That concentrated intensified expression,
issuing forth from time, has generated an echo in the
receptive expanse of eternity. That echo meets the
entrant on the border, and conscience, not clouded now,
is constrained to acknowledge it a truthful answer to the
essence of his life. It is a fruit exactly after the kind of
the seed which he had sown. "No God!" was the mean-
ing of his course in time: "No God!" rebounding from
the judgment-seat, at once fixes his place for eternity,
86 SOWING DISOBEDIENCE, REAPING JUDGMENT.
and proclaims that it is the fruit of his own doing
Consider this all ye who live for your own pleasure,
and leave the long-suffering Saviour stretching out his
hands to you all day in vain: your life, thrown up, a
sullen, bold, defiant no, from you to God in the day of
his mercy, will rebound from the throne a no unchange-
able, eternal, from God to you in the day of your need.
Reciprocity runs through. When mercy was sovereign,
mercy used judgment for carrying out mercy's ends.
When mercy's reign is over, and judgment's reign begins,
then judgment will sovereignly take mercy past and
wield it to give weight to the vengeance stroke.
This terror of the Lord in eternity is clearly set forth
in time with the gracious design of persuading men to flee
to the hope set before them.
At the close of this line of terrors there is a sweet and
gentle word. It is a Father's voice, this still small voice
that speaks when the storm and the thunders have passed
by. "Whoso hearkeneth unto me shall dwell safely, and
shall be quiet from the fear of evil." A safe dwelling-place!
There is now no condemnation to them that are in Christ
Jesus. No plague shall come nigh them there. One
would think this is enough. Himself our everlasting por-
tion, if now we yield unto Him; and a rest remaineth for
the people of God. Enough indeed: sinners saved could
not of themselves expect more: but He provides and pro-
mises more. He will give them not only deliverance from
death at last, but freedom from fear now; safety from
evil to come, and safety from the apprehension of its
coming; justification at the throne of God, and peace
SOWING DISOBEDIENCE, REAPING JUDGMENT. 87
within the conscience. When Christ came to work de-
liverance for all his own, he expressly provided both these
blessings. It is not only to deliver them from death by
receiving himself its sting; but also to deliver them from
that fear of death, which otherwise would have held them
all their lifetime subject to bondage (Heb. ii. 15). "Godli-
ness is profitable unto all things." Eternal life secure in the
world to come casts a beam of bright hope across, sufficient
to quiet the anxieties of a fainting fluttering heart, in all
the dangers of the journey through. For his Redeemed
Israel, who have already passed over the divided sea, he
has provided a safe dwelling-place beyond the Jordan;
and under the shade of the Almighty, the pilgrims, even
in the wilderness, will be quiet from the fear of evil.
88 SEEK AND YE SHALL FIND.
XI.
SEEK AND YE SHALL FIND.
"If thou seekest her as silver . . . thou shalt find the knowledge of God."—
ii. 4, 5.
WISDOM continues still to cry unto men with the affec-
tionate authority of a parent. The incarnation of the Son
is God's grand utterance to mankind. The Word was made
flesh, and dwelt among us. He came to make known the
Father. "No man hath seen God at any time: the only
begotten Son who is in the bosom of the Father, He hath
declared him."
Such is the speaker, and such the theme. Wisdom
cries, "Incline thine ear unto wisdom." Christ calls on
men to come unto Christ. It was He who opened the
Scriptures; and He taught from them the things concern-
ing Himself He is Prophet and Priest. He gives the
invitation; and the invitation is "Come unto me." It is
Christ offering Christ to sinners; the teacher and the lesson
alike divine. The preacher and the sermon are the same.
He is the beginning and the ending. He is all in all.
The matter of the whole passage, ii. 1-9, consists in a
command to seek, and a promise to bestow. The same
speaker, at a later day, condensed his own discourse into
the few emphatic words, "Seek, and ye shall find." In
this passage there is a needful expansion and profitable
repetition of these two great pillar thoughts.
SEER AND YE SHALL FIND. 89
The seeking is in verses 1-4; the finding in verses 5-9.
A Father speaks, and He speaks as unto children. He
demands a reasonable service, and promises a rich reward.
In the fourfold repetition of the command there seems
an order of succession; and the order, when observed, is
both comely and instructive. It combines the beauty of
the blossom and the profit of the fruit
1. Receive my words, and hide my command-
ments.
2. Incline thine ear, and apply thine heart
3. Cry after knowledge: lift up thy voice for un-
derstanding.
4. Seek her as silver: search for her as for hid
treasure.
1. "Receive my words.” This is the first thing. Prac-
tical instruction must ever begin here. The basis of all
religion and morality is the word of the Lord, taken into
the understanding and heart When the sower went
forth to sow, some fell by the wayside, and the fowls
came and devoured it. This is the first danger to which
the published truth is exposed. It does not enter the
ground at all. It tinkles on the surface of the mind,
like seed on a beaten path, and next moment it is off, no
one knows whither. It never penetrated the soil; it
was never received. Corresponding to that first danger
is the first counsel, "My son receive my words;" and if
there should be any doubt about the meaning of the
precept, the clause which balances it on the other side
supplies the comment, "hide my commandments with
90 SEEK AND YE SHALL FIND.
thee." Our adversary the devil goeth about like a roar-
ing lion, or ravening bird, seeking whom he may devour.
He carries off the word from the surface of listless minds
as birds carry away the seed that lies on the surface of
unbroken ground. The word of God is a vital seed, but
it will not germinate unless it be hidden in a softened
receptive heart. It is here that Providence so often
strikes in with effect as an instrument in the work of
the Spirit. Especially, at this point, bereaving provi-
dences work together for good. Even these, however,
precious though they have been in the experience of all
the saved, are only secondary and subordinate agencies.
Sorrow is not seed. A field that is thoroughly and
deeply broken may be as barren in the harvest as the
beaten pathway. The place and use of providential visi-
tation in the divine administration of Christ's kingdom, is
to break up the way of the word through the incrustations
of worldliness and vanity that encase a human heart and
keep the word lying hard and dry upon the surface.
Every one is capable of perceiving the difference, be-
tween merely hearing the word and receiving it. It is
a blessed thing to have that word dwelling richly within
you; felt in all its freshness touching your conscience
and enlightening your mind, during the busy day and in
the silent night, giving tone to your spirit within, and
direction to your course through life.
The Word was made flesh, and dwelt among us. Be-
hold, He stands at the door and knocks; if any man
open, He will come in. To as many as receive Him,
He gives power to become the sons of God.
SEEK AND YE SHALL FIND. 91
2. "Incline thine ear." The entrance of the word
has an immediate effect on the attitude of the mind and
the course of the life. The incoming of the word makes
the ear incline to wisdom; and the inclining of the ear
to wisdom lets in and lays up greater treasures of the
word.
In practice it will be found that those who hide the
word within them, feeding on it as daily bread, acquire
a habitual bent of mind towards things spiritual. On
the other hand, when the truth touches, and glances
off again, like sunlight from polar snows, it is both a
symptom and a cause of an inclination of the mind away
from God and goodness. The great obstacle to the power
and spread of the gospel lies in the averted attitude of
human hearts. The mind is turned in another direction,
and the faculties occupied in other pursuits. How hope-
ful the work of preaching becomes when the lie and the
liking of the listener's soul is towards saving truth.
When the heart is applied to it, some portion of the
word goes in, and that which has obtained an entrance
prepares the way for more. To him that hath that little
will be given much, and he shall have abundance. A man
inclines his ear to those sounds which already his heart
desires; again to turn the ear, by an exercise of will at
God's high command, to the word of wisdom, is the very
way to innoculate the heart with a love to that word
passing the love of earthly things. The lean of the
disciples' hearts in the days of old drew them to Jesus;
and Jesus near, made their hearts burn with a keener
glow. The ear and the heart!—precious gifts. He
92 SEEK AND YE SHALL FIND.
that hath an ear to hear, let him hear what the Spirit
saith. He that hath a heart to love, let him love with
it the altogether Lovely. The ear inclined to divine wis-
dom will draw the heart; the heart drawn will incline
the ear. Behold one of the circles in which God, for his
own glory, makes his unnumbered worlds go round.
3. "Cry after knowledge." The preceding verse ex-
pressed the bent heavenward of the heart within and the
senses without: this verse represents the same process at
a more advanced stage. The longing for God's salvation
already begotten in the heart, bursts forth now into an
irrepressible cry. It is not any longer a Nicodemus
inclined toward Jesus, he cannot tell how, and silently
stealing into his presence under cloud of night; it is the
jailor of Philippi springing in, and crying with a loud
voice, "What must I do to be saved?" While the man
was musing, the fire burned; and now it no longer
smoulders within, it bursts forth into a flame. He who
gave Himself for his people loves to feel them kindling
thus in his hands. Men may be offended with the fer-
vour of an earnest soul—God never. "Hold thy peace,"
the prudent will still say to the enthusiastic follower of
Jesus: but he feels his want, and hopes for help; he
heeds them not: he cries out all the more, "Jesus, thou
son of David, have mercy on me." Even disciples, appa-
rently more alarmed by what seem irregularities in the
action of the living than they were by the silence of the
stiffened dead, may interpose with a frown and a re-
buke; but compression will only increase the strength of
the emotion struggling within. That word hidden in
SEEK AND YE SHALL FIND. 93
the heart will swell and burst and break forth in strong
crying and tears, "Whom have I in heaven but Thee?
and there is none upon earth that I desire besides Thee.
My flesh and my heart faileth, but God is the strength
of my heart, and my portion for ever." Psalm lxxiii.
25, 26.
4. "Seek her as silver." Another and a higher step.
The last was the earnest cry; this is the persevering
endeavour. The strong cry is not enough: it is a step
in the process, but the end is not yet. It might be
Balaam's cry, "Let me die the death of the righteous,"
while in life he loved and laboured for the wages of ini-
quity. Fervent prayer must be tested by persevering
pains.
Seek wisdom. Not only be inclined to spiritual things,
and earnestly desire salvation, but set about it. Strive
to enter in; lay hold on eternal life. Work out the sal-
vation. "The kingdom of heaven suffereth violence, and
the violent take it by force." The Christian life is a
battle to be fought: the reward at last is a crown to
be won.
More particularly, the search for wisdom is compared
to another search with which we are more familiar. Seek
her as silver. Those who seek the treasures that are at
God's right hand are referred to their neighbours who are
seeking treasures that perish in the using, and told to go
and do likewise. The zeal of mammon's worshippers
rebukes the servants of the living God. We are invited
to take a leaf from the book of the fortune-seeker.
Besides the pursuit of money in the various walks of
94 SEEK AND YE SHALL FIND.
merchandise, there is, in our day, much of a direct and
literal search for treasures hid in the earth. A prominent
part of our daily public news, for years past, has been the
stream of emigration from the settled countries of Europe
to the western shores of America, and the great Australian
Continent in search of hid treasure. The details are most
instructive. Multitudes of young and old, from every
occupation, and every rank, have left their homes, and tra-
versed stormy seas, and desert continents, to the place
where the treasure lies. Not a few have perished on
the way. Others sink under privations on the spot.
The scorching sun by day, and the chill dews at night;
labour all day among water, and sleeping under the im-
perfect shelter of a tent; the danger of attack by uncivil-
ized natives on the one hand, and by desperately wicked
Europeans on the other,—all these, and a countless mul-
titude more, are unable to deter from the enterprise, or
drive off those who are already engaged. To these re-
gions men flock in thousands, and tens of thousands.
Those shores lately desolate are in motion now with a
teeming population.
Search for her as for hid treasure! He knows what
is in man. He who made the human heart, and feels
every desire that throbs within it, takes the measure
of men's earnestness in their search for silver. He pro-
nounces it sufficient for the object which he has at heart,
the salvation of sinners. He points to it as a fit measure
of the zeal with which a being, destitute by sin, should
set out in the search for the salvation by grace. He
intimates this will do—this earnestness, if directed upon
SEEK AND YE SHALL FIND. 95
the right object. How all this puts to shame the languid
efforts of those who do seek the true riches! There
may be an inclination on the whole rather to the im-
perishable riches—a wish to be with Christ rather than
left with a passing world for a portion. There may be
the desire in that direction, but another question comes
in, what is the strength of that desire? That blessed
portion in Christ is what you desire; well, but how much
do you desire it? Will not the far reaching plans, and
heroic sacrifices, and long enduring toil of Californian
and Australian gold diggers rise up and condemn us who
have tasted and known the grace of God? Their zeal is
the standard by which the Lord stimulates us now, and
will measure us yet. Two things are required in our
search—the right direction, and the sufficient impulse.
The Scriptures point out the right way; the avarice of
mankind marks the quantum of forcefulness, wherewith
the seeker must press on.
But the search for hid treasure, which reads a lesson
to the Church, is not confined to the gold regions, and
the gold diggers. They dig as hard at home. It cannot
be told how much of plan and effort, of head and hand,
are expended in making money. It is no business of ours
here to draw the nice distinctions between the rightful
industry of a Christian merchant, and the passage through
the fire of mammon's child. This is not our present
theme at all. What we want is to get our slackness
in seeking a Saviour rebuked and quickened by the
parallel movement of a more energetic search. Our
question here is not how much is gold worth? but is
96 SEEK AND YE SHALL FIND.
gold worth as much as the grace of God in Christ to a
sinner? You answer, No. This is our unanimous reply.
It is true in its own nature; and sincerely it is uttered
by our lips. Out of our own mouths then will we be
condemned, if He who compasseth us about like air in all
our ways, feels that we strive with our might for the less,
and but languidly wish for the greater. Seek first the
kingdom.
Those who seek thus shall not seek in vain; we have
the word of the true God for it in many promises. Among
the gathered multitudes in the great day, it will not be
possible to find one who has sought in the right place
for the right thing, as other men seek money, and who
has nevertheless been disappointed. No doubt there are
some who seek after a fashion, and gain nothing by it;
who vent a wish to die the death of the righteous, and
never attain to the object of their desire. But none fail
who seek according to the prescription of the word, and
after the example of the world.
Many people proceed upon a principle the very reverse
of that which the word inculcates. They search for
money as if it were saving truth, instead of searching
for saving truth as if it were money. These must be
turned upside down ere they begin to prosper. There
is no promise to indolence. The hand of the diligent
maketh rich. As to what ye should seek, hear what the
Lord says: as to the earnestness of the search, observe
how the world does. Those who keep between these
two lines are sure to gain in godliness.
PERILS. IN THE DEEP. 97
XII.
PERILS IN THE DEEP.
"To deliver thee from the way of the evil [man], from the man that speaketh
froward things; who leave the paths of uprightness, to walk in the ways of
darkness; who rejoice to do evil, and delight in the frowardness of the wicked;
whose ways are crooked, and they froward in their paths: to deliver thee
from the strange woman, even from the stranger which flattereth with her
words; which forsaketh the guide of her youth, and forgetteth the covenant of
her God: for her house inclineth unto death, and her paths unto the dead.
None that go unto her return again, neither take they hold of the paths of
life."--ii. 12-19.
"THE wicked are like the troubled sea when it cannot
rest." Here an arm of that sea is spread out before us,
and we are led to an eminence whence we may behold
its raging. We must one by one go down into these
great waters. We see many of our comrades sinking
beneath the surge. It is good to count the number, and
measure the height of these ranks of raging waves, that
we may be induced to hold faster by the anchor of the
soul, which is sure and steadfast
The dangers are delineated here in exact order, con-
tinuous succession, and increasing power. They come as
the waves come when the tide is flowing; they gradually
gain in strength until they reach their height; then, when
Satan has done his worst, he retires sullenly, leaving all
who have not been overwhelmed, high, and safe, and
triumphing..
1. "The way of the evil." Whether they be persons or
98 PERILS IN THE DEEP.
principles, whether they be men or devils, the word does
not expressly say. The announcement, in the first place,
is couched in terms the most general; the particulars are
enumerated in the verses following. The way of the
evil is the way which Satan trod, and by which all his
servants follow. It is the way whereon all the wicked
travel to their doom.
2. But more specifically, the first item of the evil is "the
man that speaketh froward things." "The tongue can no
man tame, it is an unruly evil, full of deadly poison"
This little fire kindles a flame which spreads and licks
up all that is lovely and of good report in a wide circle
of companionship. The man who speaks froward things
is one of the foremost dangers to which the young are
exposed at their first start in life. In a workshop, or
warehouse, or circle of private friendship, there is one
who has a foul tongue. It is difficult to conceive how
quickly and how deeply it contaminates all around.
There may be much specific variety in the forms of fro-
wardness. In one case the pollution assumes the shape
of profane swearing. In another it is the frequent in-
jection of obscenities amidst the conversation of the day,
feathered with wit to make them fly. In a third it is
infidel insinuation. In a fourth it is one huge mass of
silliness, a shapeless conglomorate of idle words, injuring
not so much by the infliction of positive evil, as by occu-
pying a man's heart and his day with vanity, to the ex-
clusion of all that is substantial either for this world or
the next.
It is hardly possible that one who is much in con-
PERILS IN THE DEEP. 99
tact with these froward words should come off unscathed.
Even when a person does not sympathize with the evil,
and imitate it, his conscience gets a wound. Only one
has ever appeared on earth who was entirely safe under
the fiery darts of the wicked. "The prince of this
world cometh, and hath nothing in Me" (John xiv. 30).
If there were perfect purity within, these onsets from
without would leave no stain. But upon our impure
hearts, even when the temptation in the main is resisted,
and the tempter put to flight, the marks are left behind.
Some of the filth sticks, and will not off, to the dying
day. For us even in our best estate it is not good, in
that experimental way, to know evil. The foul tongue
of the froward is one grand cause of dread to godly
parents in sending their youths to a business, and even
in sending their children to school.
How good are pure words! Set a watch upon your
mouth. "Let your speech be always with grace, seasoned
with salt." Bad as it is to hear froward words, it is in-
conceivably worse to speak them. It is more cursed to
give temptation than to receive it
3. "Who leave the paths of righteousness." When
the imagination is polluted, and the tongue let loose, the
feet cannot keep on the path of righteousness. Thinking,
and hearing, and speaking evil, will soon be followed by
doing it. The world is startled from time to time by
the report of some daring crime. But if the history
of the criminal were known, however much grief there
might be, there would be no surprise at the culmination
of his wickedness. When you see a mighty tree in the
100 PERILS IN THE DEEP.
forest, you assume that it did not leap into maturity in a
day, although you saw not its gradual growth. You may
as confidently count that full-sized crime did not attain
its stature in a day. In all of us are the seeds of it, and in
many the seedlings are growing apace. The ways fol-
low the thoughts and words, as trees spring from seeds.
He who would be kept from the path of the destroyer,
must crucify the flesh with its affections and lusts. Out
of the heart proceed evil thoughts, and soon after mur-
ders and adulteries follow. In the matter of watching
for one's soul, as in all other matters, the true wisdom is
to take care of the beginnings.
4. "To walk in the ways of darkness." There is a,
strictly causal and reciprocal relation between unrighteous
deeds and moral darkness. The doing of evil produces
darkness, and darkness produces the evil-doing. Indulged
lusts put out the eye-sight of the conscience; and under
the darkened conscience the lusts revel unchecked.
"From him that hath not, shall be taken away."
5. "Who rejoice to do evil." This is a more advanced
step in guilt. At first the backslider is ashamed of his
fall. He palliates, alleges the strength of the temptation,
and promises amendment. As the hardening process
goes on, however, he begins to feel more easy. He
ceases to make excuses, and at last he glories in his
shame. "Were they ashamed when they had committed
abomination? Nay, they were not at all ashamed,
neither could they blush" (Jer. vi. 15). This is a mea-
sure of evil which should make even the wicked tremble.
He has become the very essence of antichrist, when it
PERILS IN THE DEEP. 101
is his meat and his drink to oppose the will of our
Father who is in heaven.
6. Profligacy can yet one step farther go. They who
"delight in the frowardness of the wicked," are more
abandoned than the wicked themselves. To take plea-
sure in sin is a characteristic of fallen humanity; to de-
light in seeing others sinning is altogether devilish.
Some monsters in human form have presided over the
process of torture, and drunk in delight from a brother's
pain; but it is. a still clearer evidence that a man is of
his father the Devil, when he lays snares for a brother's
soul, and laughs at his own success. There are not a
few amongst us who have reached this stage of depravity,
and yet have no suspicion that they are in any way
more guilty than others. They have so drunk into the
spirit, and been changed into the image of the first
tempter, that they relish as dainty food the pollution of
a neighbour, and let never perceive that there is any-
thing out of the way. “Blessed are they that hunger
and thirst after righteousness, for they shall be filled.”
Cursed are they that hunger and thirst after wickedness,
for they shall be filled too. They shall be filled with
food convenient for them. It is the Lord's way both in
mercy and judgment to provide for every creature abun-
dance of that which it loves and longs for. This prin-
ciple is announced with terrific distinctness in the pro-
phet Habakkuk (ii. 15, 16). Those who have a relish
for the sin of others, will be filled with the food they
have chosen; and although the horrid sweet pall upon
the taste by reason of its abundance, there is no variety,
102 PERILS IN THE DEEP.
and no diluting of sin by fragments of good in the place
of the lost. The same—the same that they loved on
earth, the lost must abide for ever; sin—nothing but
sin, within and around them.
To complete the picture of the danger, one other peril
of the world's deep is marked on the chart which is mer-
cifully placed in the voyager's hands—it is "the strange
woman." Thanks be to God for his tender care in kind-
ling these beacon-lights on the rock to scare the coming
passenger away from the quicksands of doom.
The deceiver is called a "strange" woman. Whore-
dom is distinguished from marriage, which God appointed
and approves. When man and woman are given to
each other as helps meet from the Lord, they become
"one flesh." They are not only known to each other,
but, in an important sense, they lose their individual
personality, and are merged into one. "A man shall
leave father and mother and cleave unto his wife." To
follow the "strange woman" is the Satanic reversal
of this divine ordinance. There is no love, no holy
union, no mutual helpfulness; but wild, selfish passions,
followed by visible marks of God's vengeance. For it is
not his word only; with equal clearness his providence
frowns on licentiousness. That vice eats in like a fester-
ing sore on the body of society. If all should act as
libertines do, the very nation would dwindle away. We
are fearfully and wonderfully made; we are fearfully
and wonderfully governed. It is in vain that the pot-
sherds of the earth strive with their Maker. His anger
will track lust through all its secret doublings. He
PERILS IN THE DEEP. 103
makes sin generate its own punishment. Vengeance
against that evil thing circulates through the veins, and
dries up the marrow in the heart of the bones. Verily,
there is a God that judgeth in the earth. Of the strange
woman, it is said, "Her house inclineth unto death, and
her paths unto the dead." Mark well this description,
ye simple ones who are enticed to follow her. There is
an "incline on the path. It goes down. She leads the
way, you follow. It is easy to go down—down a slip-
pery, slimy path; but its issue is death. What death?
The death of the soul, and the body too. It leads to
"the dead." It brings you to the society of libertines,
and they are dead while they live. This lust is a canker-
worm that quickly withers the greenness of spring in the
soul of youth. We have no trust in the patriotism, the
truth, the honesty, the friendship of a licentious man.
When you get down into their company, you are among
the dead. They move about like men in outward
appearance, but the best attributes of humanity have dis-
appeared—the best affections of nature have been drained
away from their hearts.
104 THE MEANS OF SAFETY.
XIII.
THE MEANS OF SAFETY.
"When wisdom entereth into thine heart, and knowledge is pleasant unto thy
soul; discretion shall preserve thee, understanding shall keep thee."—ii.
10, 11.
CHRIST'S prayer for his disciples was not that they should
be taken out of the world, but that they should be pre-
served from the evil that is in it. Life is a voyage on
the deep: there are perils which we must pass; how
shall we pass them safely? The grand specific is the
entrance of wisdom into the heart. As already ex-
plained, you may understand by Wisdom either the Sal-
vation or the Saviour. The entrance of the word giveth
light, and chases away the darkness. If the truth as it
is in Jesus come in through the understanding, and make
its home in the heart, it will be a purifier and preserver.
"Sanctify them through the truth." The word of God
and the way of the wicked are like fire and water; they
cannot be together in the same place. Either the flood
of wickedness will extinguish the word, or the word will
burn and dry up the wickedness.
If we understand the Word personally of Christ, the
same holds good. Where He dwells, the lusts of the flesh
cannot reign. Evil cannot dwell with Him. When the
Light of the world gets entrance into the heart, the foul
spirits that swarmed in the darkness disappear. His
coming shall be like the morning.
THE MEANS OF SAFETY. 105
The other strand of the two-fold cord which keeps a
voyager in safety amid all these perils is, "when know-
ledge is pleasant to thy soul." The pleasantness of the
knowledge that comes in, is a feature of essential importance.
Even the truth entering the mind, and fastening on the
conscience, has no effect in delivering from the power of
evil, while it comes only as a terror; what the law could
not do by all its fears, God did by sending his Son. The
love of Christ constraineth us, when all other appliances
have been tried in vain. The Spirit employs terror in
his preparatory work; but it is only when the redemp-
tion of Christ begins to be felt sweeter than the pleasures
of sin that the soul is allured, and yields, and follows on
to know the Lord. It is pleasure that can compete with
pleasure. It is "joy and peace in believing" that can
overcome the pleasure of sin. Felix trembled under Paul's
preaching, yet offered to sell justice for money, and, to curry
favour with the multitude, kept the innocent in bonds.
The word of God, though it ran through him like a sword
in his bones, left him wholly in the power of his lusts.
A human soul, by its very constitution, cannot be fright-
ened into holiness. It is made for being won; and won it
will be, by the drawing on this side, or the drawing on that.
The power on God's side is greater than all on the side of
sin. As long as that power is felt to be repelling, the
sinner creeps still farther and farther from the consum-
ing fire. But whenever the love of God in the face of
Jesus becomes "pleasant" to his soul, that love keeps
and carries him, as the central sun holds up a tributary
world.
106 A GOOD MEMORY.
XIV.
A GOOD MEMORY.
"My son, forget not my law; but let thine heart keep my commandments."—
iii. 1.
WISDOM—the wisdom from above—continues still to cry.
How gentle and winsome is the voice of this monitor!
"My son, forget not." Such pity as a father hath, like
pity shows the Lord. Throughout his dispensations, the
Eternal wears the aspect of a Father to his creature
man. In the Bible, the parental regard is seen glancing
through at every opening. When Jesus taught his dis-
ciples how to pray, Father was the foremost word of the
inspired liturgy. With this tender name is the arrow
pointed that is to penetrate the heavens. Those who
have skill to read the hieroglyphs of nature, will find many
a parallel text in earth and sea. The world is full of his
goodness. The fatherliness of the Creator is graven on all
his works.
The matter thus tenderly commended to the pupil's
regard is nothing less than "my law." He who made
us knows what is good for us. Submission to his will is
the best condition for humanity. What shall be the
guide of our life—our own depraved liking, or the holy
will of God? Our own will leads to sin and misery.
The law of the Lord is perfect, converting the soul, and
making wise the simple. The two rival rules are set
A GOOD MEMORY. 107
before us. Choose ye whom ye shall serve. His servants
ye are whom ye obey, whether of sin unto death, or of
obedience unto righteousness.
"Forget not my law;" another evidence that the In-
spirer of the word knows what is in man. Silently to
forget God's law is amongst us a much more common
thing than blasphemously to reject it. To renounce God's
law because your reason condemns it, is the infidelity that
slays its thousands: to forget God's law because your
heart does not like it, is the ungodliness that slays its ten
thousands. The deceitfulness of the heart is a form of
sin's disease much more widely spread and much more
fatal than the hostility of the understanding. In the Bible,
God displays more of jealousy than of wrath. He can-
not endure that any idol should possess the dwelling-
place which He has made for Himself. The very key-
note of the Scriptures is, "My son, give Me thine heart."
"Let thine heart keep my commandments;" another
step in the same direction—another stage in the process
of dissecting the spirit, in order to reach the seat of sin.
What the heart cleaves to is not readily forgotten. As a
general rule it may be safely laid down, that what you
habitually forget you do not care for. So true is it, that
love is the fulfilling of the law. If you do not love it,
so far from obeying it, you will not even remember that
there is such a thing. It is often given as an excuse for
evil doing, that it was done without thought—that the
evil of it was not present to the mind. If you had ob-
served at the time the real character of your action, you
would have done otherwise. What is this but to tell
108 A GOOD MEMORY.
that your heart does not keep God's commandment? If
that law had been at hand, in God's name forbidding the
word or the deed, you would have refrained. No thanks
to you. That is as much as to say you would not of set
purpose oppose the Almighty to his face. But you did
what He complains of; you forgot Him and his law.
You had extruded these from your heart as unwelcome
visitors, and now you say, if they had been within, the
mischief would not have happened. But why were they
not within? Why was the word not dwelling richly in
you? Why was your heart not its hidden home? The
house was full of the company that you liked. The law
of the Lord, weary waiting on outside, had slipt away
unnoticed. It was not there—it was not in sight, with
its holy frown, when the temptation pressed suddenly;
and prevailed. If it had been there, the enemy would
not have gained an advantage over you; and this is an
excuse or palliation! What you put forward as an ex-
cuse, God marks as the very essence of the sin. The
heart keeps what it loves; what it dislikes it lets go.
The very soul of sin is here; "an evil heart of unbelief
in departing from the living God."
One ever-ready excuse of those who live without God
in the world is "a bad memory." Where there is real
imbecility in the nature, the excuse is good; but then it
is never pleaded as an excuse. The skill which can plead
a treacherous memory as an excuse for not knowing the
truth, would have charged the memory with the truth if
it had been so applied. Those who intend to plead a
short memory at the judgment-seat of God, would need
A GOOD MEMORY. 109
to see to it that other things should slip as quickly and
as cleanly off from the mind as the word of Christ.
When Saul averred to Samuel "I have performed the
commandment of the Lord, I have destroyed all that be-
longed to Amalek," Samuel replied, "What meaneth,
then, this bleating of the sheep in mine ears, and this low-
ing of the oxen which I hear?" The king was con-
founded when his pretence was laid bare. What con-
fusion must cover those who pass through life with scarce-
ly a conception of how a sinner may be saved, when they
put in the plea, "We had a treacherous memory," and
are met by the question, "What mean, then, all these
rules, and numbers, and events concerning the world,
that crowded your memory through life, and clung there
undefaced in your old age?"
Let us not deceive ourselves. When there is a hun-
gering for the truth, the mind takes it in; when the
heart loves divine truth, the memory retains it. Turn
the excuse into an aggravation, while yet there is time.
Plead no more a feeble memory; begin to grieve over an
evil heart.
110 THE ART OF PRINTING.
XV.
THE ART OF PRINTING.
"Let not mercy and truth forsake thee: bind them about thy neck;
write them upon the table of thine heart."—iii. 3.
THE matter to be recorded is "mercy and truth:" the
tablet for receiving it is the human heart; and here we
have some instructions on the art of printing it in.
Look first to the legend itself—"mercy and truth."
These two, meeting and kissing in the Mediator, consti-
tute the revealed character of God himself; and He de-
sires to see, as it were, a miniature of his own likeness
impressed upon his children. As we cannot have any
printing without a type, we cannot have mercy and truth
in holy union raised on the life of a human being, unless
we get the exemplar brought from above, and transferred
to man.
What God desires to see in man, he showed to man.
He who dwelleth between the cherubim, merciful and
true, shone forth upon his creatures, that those who look
might be transformed into the same image, as by the
Spirit of the Lord.
It is only in Christ that we can know God. As mani-
fested there, He is just and forgiving. Mercy and truth
meet in the person and sacrifice of the Son. With-
out the Saviour, we can conceive of mercy or truth
being displayed by God to the rebellious. We could at
THE ART OF PRINTING. 111
least conceive of mercy without truth; but then it would
let the unclean into heaven: we could also conceive of
truth without mercy; but then it would cast mankind
without exception into hell. In order that there might
be mercy and truth from the judge to the sinful, Christ
obeyed, and died, and rose again. "God so loved the
world, that He gave his only-begotten Son;" but God so
hated sin, that He gave Him up to die as an expiation to
justice. Mercy reigns, not over righteousness, but through
righteousness.
"Be ye followers [imitators] of God as dear children"
(Ephesians v. 1). If we receive grace reigning through
righteousness, they will be seen upon us in their union.
The reception of these into the heart is, as it were, the
sowing of the seed; and that seed will bring forth fruit
after its kind. If, conscious of guilt and condemnation,
you accept and rejoice in free grace from God, this
doctrine will not lie barren within you. It will burst
forth in meekness, gentleness, pity, love, to all the needy.
If you mark, as you get pardon, how it comes—pardon
through Christ crucified—if you take it as it comes,
bought by His blood, you will never make light of sin,
either in yourselves or others. In all religions, true and
false, there are an original and a copy. Either God
manifested leaves the impress of his own character on the
receptive heart of a believing man, or man unbelieving
transfers his own likeness to the gods whom he makes in his
imagination or by his hands. "Mercy and truth"—there
is the type let down from God out of heaven. Are our
hearts open, soft, receptive, to take the impression on?
112 THE ART OF PRINTING.
"Let them not forsake thee: bind them about thy
neck." These injunctions indicate that there is a fickle-
ness which makes the printing difficult, and the impres-
sion indistinct at the best. This command to bind them
about the neck (Deuteronomy vi. 8) was adopted by the
Jews in the letter, and neglected in spirit. It degene-
rated into a superstition; and hence the phylacteries, the
amulets worn by the Pharisees. The command here is
more specific—"Write them upon the table of thine
heart" The reference obviously is to the writing of the
law on tables of stone. These tables were intended to be
not a book only, but also a type. From them we may
read the law indeed; but off them also an impress should
be taken on our own hearts, that we may always have
the will of God bidden within us. This idea is with
marvellous fulness expressed by Paul—"The epistle of
Christ, written not with ink, but with the Spirit of the
living God: not in tables of stone, but in fleshly tables
of the heart" (2 Corinthians iii. 3). Men can easily read
the word from the old table of stone; but they are slow
to learn "the art of printing" it on their own nature, so
that it may be legible in all their life. This impression
can be effectually taken only in the melting down of the
regeneration, as Paul expresses it, Romans vi. 17—"Ye
have obeyed from the heart that mould of doctrine into
which ye were delivered."
This fleshly table of the heart lies open, and it is con-
tinually receiving impressions of some kind. It seems to
harden after youth has passed, so that what it has pre-
viously received it tenaciously keeps; what is afterwards
THE ART OF PRINTING. 113
applied, it does not so readily take on. Of great moment
it is, therefore, that right impressions should go deeply
in, while the mind is still in a receptive state. But in
this promiscuous life, the table of a young man's heart
lies open for all comers; it is often seen indented deeply
and crowded all over with "divers lusts and pleasures,"
so that no room is left, whereon the things of God may
mark themselves.
At places of public resort, such as the summit of a lofty
mountain, or the site of some famous monument, you may
see tables of wood or stone or level turf. All over them
inscriptions have been chiselled so thickly, that you could
not now find an unoccupied spot to plant a letter on.
The characters are various: some old, some new, some
well-formed, some irregular scrawls, some mere scratches on
the surface, which a winter's storms will wash out, some
so deep that they will be legible for ages. As to matter,
some are records of personal ambition, others a spurt of
thoughtless jollity, others the date of some great event;
some are profane, and some obscene. The table lies
there, the helpless recipient of ideas, good or bad, that
stray corners may choose to impress on it.
I have thought, as I looked on the Babel-like confu-
sion, that the heart of a man, which the Bible calls a
"table," is like one of these common public receptacles. In
youth it is peculiarly soft, and affords an inviting material
for every adventurous sculptor to try his hand upon. It
often lies exposed, and receives the accidental impressions
of every passer by. Many legends of mere emptiness
have been written on it, and were thought innocent; but
114 THE ART OF PRINTING.
there they are, at life's latest day, taking up room, and
doing no good. Some impure lines have been early
carved in, and now they will not out, even where the
possessor has been renewed, and learned to loathe them.
Parents, set a fence round your children; youth, set a
fence round yourselves. Perhaps you may have seen one of
these monumental tablets suddenly enclosed, and a notice
exhibited over the gateway, doing all men to wit, that
"whereas some evil disposed persons have imprinted vain
and wicked words on this table, it has been surrounded
by a strong fence, and henceforth no person shall be ad-
mitted to write thereon except the owner and his friends."
Go thou and do likewise. Warn, ward the intruders off.
Reserve that precious tablet for the use of the King its
owner, and those who will help to occupy it with His cha-
racter and laws.
Take these three in the form of practical observations.
1. The duty of parents is clear, and their encourage-
ments great. Watch the young. Stand beside that soft
receptive tablet. Keep trespassers away more zealously
than ever hereditary magnate kept the vulgar from his
pleasure-grounds. Insert many truths. Busily fill the
space with good, and that too in attractive forms. This
is the work laid to your hand. Work in your own sub-
ordinate place, and the Lord from above will send you
the blessing down.
2. Afflictive providences generally have a bearing on
this printing process. God sends what will break the
heart; nay, sometimes a fire to melt it like water within
you; and this, in wise mercy, to make it take on the
THE ART OF PRINTING. 115
truth. When the pilgrims compare notes in Zion at
length, it will be found that most of them learned this
art of printing in the furnace of affliction. "Before I
was afflicted I went astray, but now have I kept thy
word" (Psalm csix. 67). The heart, in contact with a
busy world, was rubbed smooth and slippery. The type,
when it touched, glided off the surface, and left no mark
behind. This bruising and breaking opened the crust, and
let the lesson in.
3. Whether in youth or in age, whether in sickness or
in health, it is not an effort from within or a Providence
from without that will make the heart new and the life
holy. It is the type, by the Spirit's ministry impressed
on the prepared page; it is the mercy and truth united in
Christ crucified for sin, embodied love let down from
heaven and touching the earth; it is Christ clasped to a
softened heart, that will reimprint the image of God upon
a sinful man.
116 TRUST.
XVI.
TRUST.
"Trust in the Lord with all thine heart;
and lean not unto thine own understanding."—iii. 5.
FAITH is not fear, and fear is not faith. The terrors of
the Lord beaming in upon the conscience, using guilt as
fuel for the flame of a premature torment—this is not
religion. Christianity is not a dark ground, with here
and there a quivering streak of light thrown in. Blessed
hope is the very basis of it all. Many spots of darkness
daub it over at the best; but the ground is a bright
ground. It is a positive and not a negative thing. It
has many diseases and pains, but it is in its nature
a life, and not a death. It flies to God, not from him.
It is not a slave's struggle to escape from divine ven-
geance: it is a dear child's confidence in a Father's love.
Christ is the way; but it is unto the Father that the pro-
digal returns. The only method of reconciliation is the
looking unto Jesus, and looking on until confiding faith
spring up; but the religious act of a soul saved is a trust
in God.
This is an unseen thing, and it is misunderstood by
those who look toward it from without. The reason why
those who are wedded to their pleasures count religion to
be dull and painful seems to be this. They see religious
people really renouncing the pleasures of sin and sense
TRUST. 117
They know, they feel what that renunciation would be to
themselves; but they do not know, they cannot conceive
the consolation which the peace of God gives even now to
a human heart. They see what a religious man lets go;
but they do not see in that other region the worth of the
equivalent which a religious man gets; for it is spiritually
discerned, and they are not spiritual. In their conception
religion is a grim tyrant, who snatches every delight from
the grasp of a youth, and gives him nothing in return.
The servant of the man of God sees on the one side an
host of enemies pressing round, and on the other side no
help at hand. "Alas, my master!" he cried, "how shall
we do?" (2 Kings vi. 16, 17). "Fear not," said Elisha,
but it was not until the young man's eyes were opened to
see the mountain full of horses and chariots of fire round
about Elisha that he could be confident, or even composed.
We need the same re-creating Spirit to open the blind eyes
of the carnal, ere they can see that the joys which God in
grace gives are more than the pleasures of sin, which his
presence drives away. The green apple does not like to
be twisted and torn from the tree; but the ripened fruit,
that has no more need for the root's sap, drops easily off.
Trust in the Lord, when a soul attains it, loosens every
other bond, and makes it easy to let go all which the
world gives. When you feel your footing firm in the
peace of God, you will not be afraid though the very earth
should sink away from beneath you.
Trust is natural to the creature, although trust in the
Lord be against the grain to the guilty. It is our nature
to be dependent. It is our instinct to lean. In regard
118 TRUST.
to the unseen, man has an innate consciousness of his own
frailty, and in general it is not difficult to persuade him
to lean on something beyond himself. Ever since sin
began, gods many and lords many have invited men's
confidence, and offered them aid. It is easy to persuade
Papists to lean on priests and saints, on old rags and
painted pictures—on any idol; but it is hard to get a
Protestant really to trust in the living God. It is a com-
mon remark that Papists have more devotion in their way
than we have in ours. The fact is obvious: the reason
of it is not always seen. Popery sails with the stream
when it bids men trust, for this falls in with a tendency
of nature; but it puts forward to receive the confiding
soul a dead idol, whose presence is no rebuke to indulged
sin. Among Papists you will find real devotion in all who
are conscious of nature's weakness, and willing to trust;
but among Protestants you can find real devotion only in
those who are prepared to crucify the flesh--who, at
enmity with their own sins, bound forward to meet the
offered embrace of "our God," and so plunge their bosom
lusts into a consuming fire.
"With all thine heart." God complains as much of a
divided allegiance as of none. A double-minded man is
unstable in all his ways. In cleaving to Christ the effort
to reserve a little spoils all. It endangers ultimate safety,
and destroys present peace. The soul should grow into
Christ, as grows the branch on the vine; but the reserved
part is dead matter lying between the two liven prevent-
ing them from coalescing into one. The somewhat which.
the soul refuses to surrender sticks in between, so that you
TRUST. 119
cannot have your life hid in Christ; Christ cannot live in
you. Your hope cannot find way into his heart, his peace
cannot flow into yours. "Except ye be converted and
become as a little child, ye cannot enter into the kingdom."
"In all thy ways acknowledge him, and he shall
direct thy paths." Observe the universality of the com-
mand. There is no hardship in this. The commandment
is holy and just and good. If we keep back any of the
conditions, we lose all the promised return. This injunc-
tion is aimed, not at the speculative atheism which
denies that there is a God, but at the much more common
practical ungodliness which keeps Him at a distance
from human affairs. Few will refuse to acknowledge
a superintending Providence at certain times, and in
certain operations that are counted great. If the com-
mandment had been, "Acknowledge God in the uncertain
and difficult ways of life," it would have met with a more
ready compliance. To uphold the world and direct its
movements, to appoint the birth and the death of men,
to provide redemption from sin, and open the way into
glory—in these grand and all comprehensive operations
men would be content to acknowledge God, provided
they were allowed to retain all minor matters under their
own management. They will treat God as subjects treat
a king, but not as a wife treats her husband. The large,
and the formal, and the public, they will submit to his
decision; but the little, and close, and kindly, they will
keep to themselves. Let Him compass you about, as
the atmosphere embraces the earth, going into every
interstice, and taking the measure of every movement
120 TRUST.
"Trust in the Lord at all times; pour ye out your
hearts before him:"
The command is encouraging as well as reproving. It,
is not merely the promise that is encouraging, but also
the command which precedes it. Does God claim to be
acknowledged in all my ways? May I trouble the Master
about everything, great or small, that troubles me?
May I lay before the Almighty Ruler every care of my
heart, every step of my path? Yes, everything. The
great and glorious sun shines down from heaven upon
the daisy; and the feeble daisy sweetly opens its breast?
and looks up from earth upon the sun. God is the
maker of them both. Both equally enjoy His care, and
equally speak His praise. The genuine spirit of adoption
may be best observed in little things. The distant and
unconflding will come on occasion of state formalities to
the sovereign; but the dear child will leap forward with
everything. The Queen of England is the mother of a
family. At one time her ministers of state come gravely
into her presence to converse on the policy of nations;
at another her infant runs into her arms for protection,
frightened at the buzzing of a fly. Will she love less
this last appeal, because it is a little thing? We have
had fathers of our flesh who delighted when we came to
them with our minutest ailments: How much more should
we bring all our, ways to the Father of our spirits, and
live by simple faith on Him?
THE HEALTH OF HOLINESS. 121
XVII.
THE HEALTH OF HOLINESS.
"Fear the Lord, and depart from evil. It shall he health to thy navel, and
marrow to thy bones."—iii. 7, 8.
By a striking and strongly figurative expression, which
can be perfectly comprehended by readers of any age or
clime, it is intimated that a religious rectitude preserves
mental and physical health, and gives fullest play to
all the human faculties. All God's laws come from one
source, and conspire for one end. They favour righte-
ousness and frown on sin. The law set in nature runs
parallel, as far as it goes, to the law written in the word.
It is glory to God in the highest, as governor of the world.
Vice saps the health both of body and mind. Every
one of us has seen monuments of this awful law, almost
as deeply blighted as the warning pillar on the plain of
Sodom, only they stalk about, and so publish their lesson
more widely. When the brain has been dried, and the
eye dimmed, and the countenance bleared, and the limbs
palsied, and the tongue thickened by drunkenness, and
other vices that march in its company or follow in its
train, what remains of the man should be to us as dread
a warning against his course, as if he had been turned
into a salt statue, and stood upon the wayside to scare
the solitary passenger. It behoves us to walk circum-
spectly, and not as fools. All around us, sin is withering
122 THE HEALTH OF HOLINESS.
the bloom of youth, and wasting manhood's strength--
is shrivelling the skin upon the surface, and drying up
the marrow in the heart of the bones. Verily we are in
the hands of the living God. In Him we live, and move,
and have our being. We cannot elude His observation,
or break from His grasp.
Dreadful though its results be, I rejoice in these provi-
dential arrangements. The law by which disease and
imbecility closely track the path of lust, is of God's own
making, and behold it is very good. It is righteous, and
merciful too. The link which connects the suffering with
the sin, I would not break though I could. Even so,
Father! for so it seemed good in thy sight. These wast-
ings of the marrow are the terrors of the Lord set in
array against evil. If they were awanting„ human govern-
ments could not withstand the tide of universal anarchy.
These providential arrangements clog the wheels of evil,
and so secure for the world a course of probation. If the
Creator had not fixed in nature these make-weights on
the side of good, the tide of evil that set in with sin
would have soon wrought the extinction of the race. It
is especially those sins that human governments cannot
or will not touch, that God takes into his own hands,
and checks by the stroke of his judgment He has
bowed his heavens and come down. He concerns Him-
self with the details of human history. He who does
the great things, neglects not the less. He who makes
holiness happy in heaven, makes holiness healthful on
earth. Gather up the fragments of his, goodness, that
none of them be lost. Set them all in the song of praise.
CAPITAL AND PROFIT. 123
XVIII.
CAPITAL AND PROFIT.
"Honour the Lord with thy substance,
and with the first fruits of all thine increase."—iii. 9.
THE two terms, substance and increase, exist, and are
understood in all nations and all times. They correspond
to capital and profit in a commercial community, or land
and crop in an agricultural district. Although the direct
and chief lesson of this verse be another thing, we take
occasion, from the occurrence of these terms, first of all,
to indicate and estimate a grievous malady that infests
mercantile life in the present day. It manifests itself in
in these two kindred features: (1), A morbid forwardness
to commence business without capital; that is an effort
to reap an increase while you have no substance to reap
it from; and (2), A morbid forwardness to prosecute
business to an enormous extent, upon a very limited
capital; that is an effort to reap more increase than your
substance can fairly bear.
In former, and, commercially speaking, healthier times,
those who had no money were content to work for wages
until they had saved some, and then they laid out to the
best advantage the money which they had. This practice
is honourable to the individual, and safe to society. An
unfair and unsafe standard of estimating men has been
surreptitiously foisted upon this community. Practically
124 CAPITAL AND PROFIT.
by all classes, the chief honour should be given, not to
the great merchant, but to the honest man. A man who
has only five pounds in the world, and carries all his
merchandise in a pack on his shoulder, is more worthy of
honour than the man who, having as little money of his
own, drives his carriage, and drinks champagne at the
risk of other people. A full discussion of mercantile
morality under this text would be unsuitable, and there-
fore we now refrain; but a note of warning was demanded
here on the one point which has been brought up. We
must have truth and righteousness at the bottom as a
foundation, if we would have a permanently successful
commerce. Let men exert all their ingenuity in extracting
the largest possible increase from their substance; but let
them beware of galvanic efforts to extract annual returns
at other people's risk, from shadows which have no body
of substance behind. This is the epidemic disease of
commerce. This is the chief cause of its disastrous fluctua-
tions. This is the foul humour in its veins that bursts
out periodically in wide spread bankruptcy. If all
merchants would conscientiously, as in God's sight, confine
their gains to a legitimate increase of their realized sub-
stance, the commerce of the nation would circulate in
perennial health.
When the increase is honestly obtained, honour the
Lord with its first fruits. To devote a portion of our
substance directly to the worship of God, and the good of
men, is a duty strictly binding, and plainly enjoined in
the Scriptures. It is not a thing that a man may do or
not do as he pleases. There is this difference, however,
CAPITAL AND PROFIT. 125
between it and the common relative duties of life, that
whereas for these we are under law to man, for that we
are accountable to God only. For the neglect of it no
infliction comes from a human hand. God will not have
the dregs that are squeezed out by pressure poured into
his treasury. He depends not, like earthly rulers; on the
magnitude of the tribute. He loveth a cheerful giver.
He can work without our wealth, but He does not work
without our willing service. The silver and the gold are
His already; what He claims and cares for is the cheer-
fulness of the giver's heart.
126 A FATHERLY WORD ON FATHERLY CORRECTION.
XIX.
A FATHERLY WORD ON FATHERLY
CORRECTION.
"My son, despise not thou the chastening of the Lord; neither be weary of his
correction: for whom the Lord loveth He correcteth; even as a father the son
in whom he delighteth."--iii. 11, 12.
This passage is taken entire out of the Old Testament,
and inserted in the New (Heb. xii, 5, 6).
I have seen the crown of our present sovereign. It is
studded all over with jewels, bright jewels of various hue.
The eye can scarcely rest upon it for radiance. Some of
these jewels have been found and fashioned in our own
day; others have been taken from the crowns which
English monarchs wore in ancient times. But the gems
that have been taken from an ancient crown, and inserted
in the newest, are as bright and as precious as those that
were never used before. Jewels are neither dimmed by,
time, nor superseded by fashion. A prince will wear an
old one as proudly as a new.
Such are these words, these tried and pure words,
spoken of old by the Spirit in Solomon, and recalled for
use by the same Spirit in Paul. This word of God liveth
and abideth for ever. The king who uttered it at first
has passed away with all his glory like the grass. The
kingdom which he swayed is blotted out from the map of
the nations. The temple where they may have been read
A FATHERLY WORD ON FATHERLY CORRECTION. 127
to the great congregation has been cast down. Jerusalem
became a heap. But these words of Solomon remain at
this day bright and pure like the jewels on the crown he
wore. The very gems that sparkled in the diadem of
David's son, appear again reset in a circlet of glory round
the head of David's Lord. Heaven and earth shall pass
away, but none of these precious words shall fail.
In quoting the words from the Old Testament, Paul
perceived, and pointed out a tender meaning in the form
of the expression, "my son." That formula occurs often
in the Proverbs, and a careless reader would pass it as a
thing of course. Not so this inspired student of the
Scripture. He gathers a meaning from the form of the
word before he begins to deal with its substance. The
exhortation, he says, "speaketh unto you as unto
children." Incidentally we obtain here a lesson on the
interpretation of Scripture. Some would confine them-
selves to the leading facts and principles, setting aside, as
unimportant, whatever pertains merely to the manner of
the communication. By this method much is lost. It
is not a thrifty way of managing the bread that cometh
down from heaven. Gather up the fragments that none
of them be lost. We give no license to the practice of
building precious doctrines upon conceits and fancies,
while there are solid foundations at hand laid there for
the purpose of bearing them. We do not want any of
your word; but we must have all that is the Lord's, great
and small alike. We need every word that proceedeth
out of the mouth of God to live upon. Take and use all
that is in the word, but nothing more.
128 A FATHERLY WORD ON FATHERLY CORRECTION.
"My son." The Spirit in Paul recognised this as a
mark of God's paternal tenderness, and used it as a ground
of glad encouragement to desponding believers. Of de-
sign, and not by accident, was the word thrown into that
form, as it issued at first from the lips of Solomon. God
intended thereby to reveal Himself as a Father, and to
grave that view of his character in the Scripture as with
a pen of iron and the point of a diamond, that the most
distant nations and the latest times might know that as
a Father pitieth his children, so the Lord pitieth them
that fear Him.
Some men raise a debate about inspiration, whether
every word be inspired, or only some. There was no
such idea in Paul's mind. Not only the main propositions,
but the incidental tone and cast of the language is under-
stood to express the mind of God. We should not allow
one jot or tittle of this word to pass away through our
hands as we are using it
Turning now to the matter of this text; understand by
chastening in the meantime, any affliction, whatever its
form or measure may be. The stroke may fall upon your
own person, your body, your spirit, or your good name;
it may fall on those who are dearest to you, and so wound
you in the tenderest spot; it may fall upon your sub-
stance to sweep it away, or on your country to waste it.
Whatever the Providence may be that turns your joy
into grief, it is a chastening from the Lord. Taking, in
the first place, this more general view of chastening or re-
buke, the command regarding it is twofold: 1. Do not
despise it; 2. Do not faint under it. There are two
A FATHERLY WORD ON FATHERLY CORRECTION. 129
opposite extremes of error in this thing, as in most others;
and these two commands are set like hedges, one on the
right hand, and another on the left, to keep the traveller
from wandering out of the way. The Lord from heaven
beholds all the children of men. He sees that some, when
afflicted, err on this side, and some on that. The stroke
affects those too little, and these too much.
1. "Despise not." It means to make light of any-
thing; to cast it aside as if it had no meaning and no
power. The affliction comes on, and the sufferer looks
to the immediate cause only. He refuses to look up to
the higher links of the chain; he refuses to make it the
occasion of communion with God. The disease comes
upon him; it is a cold or a bruise; it has been neglected,
and so aggravated; but the doctor has prescribed such
a remedy, and he expects it will soon give way. The
loss in business comes: he feels the uneasiness—it may
be, the affront. He has grief for his own loss, and
indignation against others. But he was in a fair way,
and might have succeeded, if such an article had not sud-
denly fallen, or such a man had not become bankrupt.
The bereavement comes; nature sheds bitter tears a while,
and nature by degrees grows easy again. All this, what
is it, and what is the degree of its guilt? It is specifi-
cally atheism. It is to be "without God in the world."
The Father of our spirits touches us by certain instru-
ments which are at his command; and we refuse to look
up and learn from the signs on his countenance.
We forbid not the consideration of instruments and
secondary causes. Let them be observed, and the reme-
30 A FATHERLY WORD ON FATHERLY CORRECTION.
dies which they suggest applied; but do not stop there.
Do not finish off with these dumb messengers whom the
Lord sends. They are sent for the very purpose of in-
viting you to a conference, secret and personal, with Him-
self. When you smart under the chastening, acknow-
ledge the Lord. He is not far from every one of us.
He speaks to us as to children. He means thereby to
represent Himself as a Father. In that character he
alternately visits us with mercy and judgment. He gives
us life, and breath, and all things; He also at other times
rebukes and bereaves. He takes it ill to be overlooked
in either capacity. He is a jealous God. He will not
allow idols to intercept the homage of his creatures; so
also he is jealous, and his jealousy will burn like fire, if
you give to his servants, whether diseases, or stormy
winds, or mercantile convulsions, the regard which is due
to Himself—your regard when success makes you happy,
or when grief weighs you down: Do not meet sorrow by
a mere hardihood of nature. Let your heart flow down
under trouble, for this is human: let it rise up also to
God, for this is divine.
2. "Faint not." This is the opposite extreme. Do
not be dissolved, as it were—taken down and taken to
pieces by the stroke. Do not sink into despondency and
despair. You should retain presence of mind, and exer-
cise all your faculties. Both extremes, when traced to
their fountain-head, spring from the same cause—a want
of looking to God in the time of trouble. If the bold
would see God in his afflictions, he would not despise; if
the timid would see God in them, he would not faint
A FATHERLY WORD ON FATHERLY CORRECTION. 131
As in other cases, the two opposite errors branch off
originally from the same path, and converge upon it
again. Truth goes straight over the hill Difficulty be-
tween. Godliness is profitable unto all things: it humbles
the proud, and lifts up the lowly. It softens the hard,
and gives firmness to the feeble.
The middle way is the path of safety. Be impressed
by the stroke of the Lord's hand, but not crushed under
it. Let your own confidence go, but lay hold on the arm
of the Lord, that you may be kept from falling. Let the
affliction shut you out from other helps, and up to the
help that is laid on the Mighty One.
"Whom the Lord loveth he chasteneth." We must
not suppose from this that the trouble which a man endures
on earth is the mark and measure of God's love. It is
not a law of the kingdom of heaven that those who suffer
most from God's hand are farthest advanced in his favour.
Hitherto we have considered the afflictive stroke simply
as a suffering; but it is specifically in "chastening" that
the love lies, and all suffering is not chastening. It means
fatherly correction for the child's good. The word indeed
signifies "education."
God, the ruler of the universe, permits suffering to fall
on all men indiscriminately: But the God of mercy stands
by to make the suffering love's instrument in training
every dear child. The same stroke may fall on two men,
and be in the one case judgment, in the other love. "In
vain have I smitten your children: they received no cor-
rection" (Jer. ii. 30). All were "smitten," but they only
obtained paternal correction who in the spirit of adoption
132 A FATHERLY WORD ON FATHERLY CORRECTION.
"received" it as such. You may prune branches lying
withered on the ground, and also branches living in the
vine. In the two cases the operation and instrument are
precisely alike; but the operation on this branch has no re-
sult, and the operation on that branch produces fruitful-
ness, because of a difference in the place and condition of
the branches operated on.
In his comment on this text, Paul charges the Hebrew
Christians with having "forgotten" it. He lays it ex-
pressly at their door as a fault, that this word of God
was not hidden in their hearts, and ready in their
memories. It is expected of Christians, in New Testa-
ment times, that they know, and remember, and apply the
Old Testament Scriptures. When they forgot it, He who
spoke it at first, repeated it again, accompanied with a
complaint that their forgetfulness made the repetition
necessary.
The warning has often been given, and it is needed
yet, that terror in time of trouble may be no true repent-
ance. The profligate, the vain, or the worldly has been
laid low on a sick bed. So near has death come, that
the very shadow of the judgment seat fell cold and dark
over his heart, and took all the light out of his former
joys. He grieves now that he has sinned so much. He
resolves that if he recover he will fear God, and seek a
Saviour. After quivering for a time, between death and
life, he gets the turn toward the side of time, and enters
on another lease of life. The breezes of slimmer, and the
exercise of returning strength, refresh again his pallid
cheek, and rekindle his sunken eye. The affliction is
A FATHERLY WORD ON FATHERLY CORRECTION. 133
over. The fear of death departs, and with it the repent-
ance which it had brought. He returns to his pleasures
again. He brings disgrace upon the holy name of Jesus,
and provokes God to give him over. He deals by the
Almighty as little children do by ghosts—cower down in
breathless terror of them at night, and laugh at them
when the daylight returns. He "will mock when their
fear cometh!"
But unspeakably precious to dear children are the
corrections of a Father's love, all these abuses notwith-
standing. It is one of the finest triumphs of faith, when,
in time of affliction, a Christian gets fresh confidence in a
Saviour's love. How sweet, it is to lay your besetting sins
and characteristic shortcomings beneath the descending
stroke, and count it so much gain when they are crushed!
It may well encourage a believer to be patient in the
furnace, to see that some of the dross is separating, and
coming away. Not a drop too much will fall into the
cup of the redeemed, and it will all be over soon. Lord,
pity our weakness! Lord, increase our faith!
134 TREASURES FOR THE TAKING.
XX.
TREASURES FOR THE TAKING.
"Happy
is the man that findeth wisdom,
and the man that getteth understanding."—iii. 13.
WISDOM and understanding are to be received here in the
same sense as that in which they occurred and were ex-
pounded in the second chapter. It is wisdom in its
highest view; wisdom in regard to all the parts of man's
being, and all the periods of his destiny. This wisdom
is embodied in the person of Christ, as light is treasured
in the sun, but thence it streams forth in all directions,
and glances back from every object that it falls upon.
He is the Wisdom of God, and by the Spirit in the Scrip-
tures, He is made unto us wisdom. In Him the glory
that excelleth is, and when our eyes are opened we shall
behold it there, as the glory of the only-begotten of the
Father, full of grace and truth.
Saving wisdom is to be "found" and "gotten." It is
not required of us that we create it. We could not plan,
we could not execute a way of righteous redemption for
sinners. We could, not bring God's favour down to com-
pass men about, and yet leave His holiness untainted as
it is in heaven. This is all His own doing; and it is all
done. All things are now ready. When we are saved,
it is by "finding" a salvation, already complete, and
being ourselves "complete in him." But while we are
TREASURES FOR THE TAKING. 135
not required to make a salvation, we are expected to
seek the salvation which has been provided and brought
near. The command of God is attached to his promise,
and together they constitute his blessed invitation, "seek
and ye shall find." It will be a fearful thing to come
short of eternal life, thus completed and offered, from
sheer want of willingness to seek. "How shall we
escape if we neglect so great salvation?"
Understanding is a thing to be gotten. It comes not
in sparks from our own intellect in collision with other
human minds. It is a light from heaven, above the
brightness of this world's sun. The gift is free, and an
unspeakable gift it is. Bear in mind that religion is not
all and only an anxious fearful seeking: it is a getting
too, and a glad enjoying. It is blessed even to hunger
for righteousness; but a greater blessing awaits the hun-
gerer, he shall be filled. The seeker may be anxious,
but the finder is glad. "Happy is the man that find-
eth." It is a great glory to God, and a great benefit to
a careless world, when a follower of Christ so finds salva-
tion, as to rejoice in the treasure. When the new song
comes from the mouth of the delighted possessor, many
shall observe the change, and shall fear, and trust in
the Lord (Psalm xl. 3). The joy of the Lord becomes a
disciple's strength, both to resist evil and to do good.
Those who, by finding a Saviour, have been themselves
delivered from fear and let into joy, have the firmest
foothold, and the strongest arm, to "save with fear"
when it becomes needful to pull a neighbour out of the
very fire (Jude 23).
136 A GAINFUL MERCHANDISE.
XXI.
A GAINFUL MERCHANDISE.
"For the merchandise of it is better than the merchandise of silver, and the gain
thereof than fine gold. She is more precious than rubies: and all the things
thou canst desire are not to be compared unto her."—iii. 14, 15.
WISDOM is compared and contrasted with other posses-
sions. It is merchandise. There is a most pleasant ex-
citement in the prosecution of mercantile enterprise. It
gives full play to all the faculties. Those who prosecute
it as a class have their wits more sharpened than other
sections of the community. The plans are contrived,
and the calculations made. The goods are selected,
purchased, loaded, and dispatched. Then there is a
watching for favourable winds. After all is clear at the
custom-house, and the ship beyond his view, the owner
left on shore, may be seen to turn frequently round as he
walks leisurely in the evening from his counting-house to
his dwelling. He is looking at the vane on the steeple,
or the smoke from the chimneys, or any object that will
indicate the direction of the wind. His mind is fixed on
the probable position of the ship, and his imagination
vividly pictures its progress down the channel. He
strains mentally at it, as if he could thereby aid its
speed. If a photograph of his soul could be taken at the
moment, it would be found that his spirit bent after the
distant ship, as the keen curler seems by his attitude to
A GAINFUL MERCHANDISE. 137
direct the course of the stone that he has launched until
it reach the mark. Next day he scans the newspapers to
learn whether similar exports are flowing to the same
market. Every succeeding day some new aspect of the
object presents itself, until the result of the adventure is
known. He makes much of it, and so he should; what-
ever a man does, he should do well.
But meantime, what of the merchandise for a more
distant country than that to which his goods are going—
what of the traffic for eternity? Are there no careful
calculations, no instinctive longings, no vivid imaginings,
as to its condition and progress? Are your minds never
filled with glad anticipations of its success, or anxious
fear of its miscarriage! Do you watch those symptoms
which indicate its prosperity or decay? This merchan-
dise is better and more gainful than any other. The
world contains not any such promising field for specula-
tion. It opens up a richer and surer market than any
port of Time. In that region there is never any glut.
He to whom you make consignment is ever faithful.
What you commit to Him He will keep until that day.
He is wise that winneth souls; his own first, and then
others. There is no gain to be compared with this. It
is a treasure that cannot be taken away. Thieves can-
not penetrate its storehouse; moth and rust do not cor-
rupt the goods of those who are rich towards God.
It often happens that a merchant amasses a large for-
tune by the labour of many years, and then loses all by
a single unfortunate speculation. Some dark tales hang
on these catastrophes—too dark for telling here. When
138 A GAINFUL MERCHANDISE.
such a crash comes, the wonder of the neighbourhood,
passing from mouth to mouth, is, why did he not lay up
his fortune, when it was realized, in some place of safety?
But, alas, where is that place? It lies not within the
horizon of time. All the riches that can be laid up here
will soon take wings and fly away. If we do not invest
in heaven, we shall soon be poor; for the earth, and the
things therein, will be burnt up. The prosperous mer-
chant must soon put on "the robe which is made without
pockets;" and he is destitute indeed, if he have not the
true riches in eternity before him, for all the others will
be left behind.
By our own lips, and our own deeds shall we be con-
demned; if, being all energy for time, we be all indolence
for eternity—if we fill our memory with mammon, and
forget God.
LENGTH OF DAYS IN THE HAND OF WISDOM. 139
XXII.
LENGTH OF DAYS IN THE HAND OF WISDOM.
"Length of days is in her right hand."—iii. 16.
IT is certainly not a uniform experience, that a man lives
long, in proportion as he lives well. Such a rule would
obviously not be suitable to the present dispensation. It
is true that all wickedness acts as a shortener of life, and
all goodness as its lengthener; but other elements enter,
and complicate the result, and slightly veil the interior
law. If the law were according to a simple calculation
in arithmetic, "the holiest liver, the longest liver," and
conversely, "the more wicked the life the earlier its
close;" if this, unmixed, unmodified were the law, the
moral government of God would be greatly impeded, if
not altogether subverted. Wickedness shortens life; but
God's government is moral; it is not a lump of mere
materialism. He will have men to choose goodness, for
His sake and its own; therefore, a slight veil is cast
over its present profitableness. Some power is allowed
to the devil, whereby to try them that are upon the
earth. Here is one way in which it is used. A stray
drunkard lives to a great age. All the neighbourhood
know it. It is trumpeted at every carousal. The hoary
debauchee, who has survived all the saints of a parish, is
triumphantly pointed to by younger bacchanals, as evi-
dence that a merry life will keep death long at bay. On
140 LENGTH OF DAYS IN THE HAND OF WISDOM.
the supposition that a certain measure of power were
conceded to Satan, he could not lay it out in any way
that would secure a greater revenue to his kingdom, than
to give a long term of life to one profligate in every
county. By means of that one decoy, he might lure a
hundred youths to an early grave and a lost eternity.
Individual cases of long life in wickedness are observed,
and fastened on, and exaggerated by the vicious, to prove
to themselves that their course is not a shorter road to
the grave; and yet it is a law—a law of God, in con-
stant operation, that every violation of moral law saps, so
far, the foundations of the natural life.
It is most interesting, and at the same time unspeak-
ably sad, to observe how much more easily satisfied men
are with evidence when they are about to risk their souls,
than when they propose to risk their money. Investiga-
tions have been made of late years into the effect of in-
temperate habits on the length of life, not with a view to
moral lessons at all, but simply in search of material for
pecuniary transactions. It is expressly intimated that
occasional drinkers are included in the calculations as
well as habitual drunkards, and the tables exhibit among
them a frightfully high rate of mortality. Out of a given
number of persons, and in a given number of years, where
110 of the general population would have died, there died
of the drinkers 357. Of persons between the ages of
twenty-one and thirty, the mortality among drinkers was
five times greater than that of the general community.*
These views are acted on by Life Assurance Societies. A
_____________________________________________
* Paper by Mr. Nelson, in " Athenaeum."
LENGTH OF DAYS IN THE HAND OF WISDOM. 141
young man will lean his life and his soul on the lie that
his fast life is consistent with a long life; but let him try
to effect a life assurance on himself, and he will find that
the capitalist will not entrust his money on such a frail
security.
Drunkenness is selected by the agents of assurance
societies for their calculations, and mentioned here for
illustration, not that it is more sinful before God, or more
hurtful to life than other vices, but simply because it is of
such a palpable character that, it can be more easily ob-
served and accurately estimated. Others, if human eyes
could trace them, would give the same result; but they
are trackless, like a serpent on the rock, or an eagle in
the air.
142 A PLEASANT PATH.
XXIII.
A PLEASANT PATH.
"Her ways are ways of pleasantness, and all her paths are peace."—iii. 17.
WE are accustomed to the idea that the end of a good
man's course is happy. We are well aware that when
the pilgrim gets home he will have no more sorrow. But
does not the journey lie through a wilderness from the
moment when the captive bursts his bonds till he reach
the overflowing Jordan, and, in the track of the High
Priest, passing through the parted flood, plant his foot finely
on the promised land? It does. It traverses the desert
all its length, and yet the path is pleasant notwithstand-
ing. To the honour of the Lord be it spoken, and for the
comfort of his people, not the home only, but also the way
thither, is pleasantness and peace. Those who have not
trod it count it dreary. Those who see what it wants,
and have not tasted what it is, naturally think that how-
ever safe the home to which it leads the traveller at last,
it must make him in the meantime of all men most miser-
able. Those who abide in Egypt, by its flesh-pots and its
river, may pity the host of Israel marching through a land
not sown; but Israel, in the desert though they be, get their
bread and their water sure from day to day; all the more
sweet to their taste that the water leaps in their sight at
the Father's bidding from a barren rock, and the bread is
rained from heaven around their tents. The pilgrim who
A PLEASANT PATH. 143
flees from Egypt at God's command, and closely follows
then the guiding pillar, will go safe and sweetly over.
The young lion may suffer hunger, but they who wait
upon the Lord shall not lack any good. In the keeping
of His commandments there is great reward, The path
is peace, although storms rage all around it, if there be
peace in the heart of the traveller. The peace of God
keeping the heart within will beam out on the untrodden
way, and gild its jagged sides with gladness. The path
of the justified is like the shining light: from the first
struggling twilight it grows in beauty until it culminate
in day. The path is peace: eye hath not seen, nor ear
heard, what the home will be.
144 WISDOM MAKING AND MANAGING WORLDS.
XXIV.
WISDOM MAKING AND MANAGING WORLDS.
"The Lord by wisdom hath founded the earth; by understanding hath he estab-
lished the heavens. By his knowledge the depths are broken up, and the clouds
drop down the dew."—iii. 19, 20.
THESE are specimens of Wisdom's mighty work on worlds.
These are the well known tracks of God's goings in crea-
tion. There is a closer connection between creation and
redemption than human philosophy is able to discover, or
unbelieving philosophy is willing to own. The breach
that sin has made in the moral hemisphere of the dupli-
cate universe hides from our view the grand unity of the
Creator's work. It is one plan from the beginning. The
physical and the moral departments are the constituent
parts of the completed whole. Throughout the present
week (a thousand years is with the Lord as one day,)
creation labours painfully, by reason of a rent that runs
through its spiritual side: provision has been made for
healing it; and even now the process is going on. These
labour days sprung from a preceding holy rest, and they
will issue in another Sabbath soon. Creation is groaning
now for its promised rest. When it comes, the material
world will again be a perfect platform for the display of
its Maker's goodness. When the earth is made new, it
will be the dwelling-place of righteousness. The material
and the spiritual, like body and soul, each fearfully made,
WISDOM MAKING AND MANAGING WORLDS. 145
and together wonderfully united, will be the perfect mani-
festation of divine wisdom and love.
A glance is gotten here into the circulation of the
world. "The depths are broken up, and the clouds drop
down dew!" He has instituted laws whereby the deep
is divided. One portion rises to the sky, and thence drops
down again to refresh the earth. "How wonderful, O
Lord, are thy works; in wisdom hast thou made them
all!"
By his knowledge, too, another depth is broken up.
The wicked, a whole worldful, lie outspread beneath his
eye, "like the troubled sea, when it cannot rest" (Isaiah
lvii. 20). What wisdom can separate the pure from the
impure, and draw from that unholy mass a multitude,
whom no man can number, to be fit inhabitants of hea-
ven? God's wisdom has done this. Christ, set in the
firmament of revelation, lets his beams of love fall upon
the lost, and thereby wins them out from their impurity,
and upward unto Himself. There is a double upbreaking
of these depths, and a double separation of the pure from
the vile; the one is personal, the other public.
In an individual there is a great sea of sin. When
the love of Christ comes in power, it dissolves the terrible
cementing by which the soul and sin were run into one.
Forthwith there is a breaking up and a separation. The
man throws off himself; the new man puts off the old,
and the old man lets on the new. The ransomed soul is
severed from what seemed its very being, sin, and tends
upward toward the Head. Sins trouble him still, and
keep him low, but he is delivered from the law of sin.
146 WISDOM MAKING AND MANAGING WORLDS.
In the whole community of the fallen there is a break-
ing up. The wisdom of God is rending asunder things
that sin had pressed into one. The word of invitation is,
"Come out of her my people," and there is power with
the word. A separating process is going on over all the
surface of sin's sea. This kingdom cometh not with
observation. It is now an unseen thing within the sepa-
rated; but a time is coming when the separation shall
be as manifest, and the distance as wide, as that which
now divides these raging waves of the sea from the white
sunlit clouds of glory that have been lifted up, and now
congregate and culminate in majestic beauty, as if around
the throne of God. The white-robed multitude that do
in very deed stand round it, were drawn from a sea of
sorrow and sin, for they came out of great tribulation,
and their robes were not white until they were washed
in the blood of the Lamb.
CONFIDENCE IN GOD, ETC. 147
XXV.
CONFIDENCE IN GOD THE TRUE SAFEGUARD
FROM TEMPTATION.
"The Lord shall be thy confidence, and shall keep thy foot from being taken."—
iii. 26.
BEWARE of mistakes here. Let us not deceive ourselves
by words without meaning. Do not say God is your
confidence, if he be only your dread. An appalling
amount of hypocrisy exists in Christendom, and passes
current for devotion. He who is in Himself most worthy,
and has done most for us, is often more disliked than any
other being; and, as if this ingratitude were not enough,
men double the sin by professing that they have their
confidence in Him.
I have observed that seagoing ships do not trust to
themselves in the windings of a river. Where they are
hemmed in between rock and quicksand, grazing now
the one and now the other, they take care to have a
steam-tug, both to bear them forward and guide them
aright. They hang implicitly upon its power. They
make no attempt at independent action. But I have
also observed, that as soon as they get clear of the nar-
rows—as soon as they have attained a good offing and
an open sea, they heave off, and hoist their own sails.
They never want a steamer until they come to narrow
waters again.
148 CONFIDENCE IN GOD
Such is the trust in God which the unreconciled expe-
rience. In distress they are fain to lean on the Almighty.
While they are in the narrows, death seeming near on
every side, conscious that they have no power and no
skill, they would hang on the help of a Deliverer. "My
God, we know thee" (Hosea viii. 2), is then their cry.
Most devout they are, and most earnest. At every hour
of their day and night they are exercised in spirit about
pleasing God, and gaining his help in their need. The
line of their dependence seems ever tight by their constant
leaning. But when they begin to creep out of these shoals
of life—when the path opens up wide and clear and safe
again, they heave off, and throw themselves on their own
resources. They become a God unto themselves, when-
ever dangers are out of sight. Forthwith and henceforth
they live without God in the world, until they are driven
into straits again. Then they remember God and pray,
as a distressed ship makes signals for help when she is
entering a tortuous channel (Isa. xxvi. 16; Ps. lxxviii.
34-37). This is not to have confidence in God. This
is to provoke Him to anger. He deserves a soul's con-
fidence, and desires it.
Confidence in God is not to be attained by a wish
whenever you please. You may, when you like, say,
"Lord, I trust in Thee," but to make the just Judge his
confidence, does not lie in the power of a sinner's will.
There is a way of reaching it; and the way is open, and all
are welcome, but no man can reach it except by that way.
Coming through Christ, and being accepted in the beloved,
you will indeed confide in God; but this is to be turned
THE TRUE SAFEGUARD FROM TEMPTATION. 149
from darkness to light, to pass from death unto life.
When any man enters by this way into grace, he will be
ready to confess that it is the Lord's doing, and marvel-
lous in his eyes.
It is this confidence that has power for good on the
life. It is not terror, but trust, that becomes a safeguard
from the dominion of sin. It is a peculiar and touching
promise that God, when He becomes your confidence,
"will keep your foot from being taken." Here inci-
dentally the terrible truth glances out, that snares are
laid for the traveller's feet in all the paths of life, in all
the haunts of men. Our adversary, like a roaring lion,
goeth about seeking whom he may devour. Alas, multi-
tudes are entrapped, like birds in the fowler's snare. Many
who set forth hopefully in the morning of life are caught ere
they have gone far in some of these pit-falls, and bound
over unto the second death. It is a fearful thing to pass
by and hear their screaming, and have no power to help.
In my childhood, I sometimes saw rabbits that damaged
the corn-fields, caught in snares. My first experience of
the process melted me, and the scene is not effaced from my
memory yet. The creature was caught by the foot. It
was a captive, but living. Oh the agonized look it cast on
us when we approached it! The scared, helpless, despair-
ing look of that living creature sank deep in the sensitive
powers of my nature. As a child, I could not conceive
of any more touching thrilling appeal than the soft roll-
ing eyes of that dumb captive; but "when I became a
man," and entered both on the experience of the world
and the ministry of the word, I met with scenes that cast
150 CONFIDENCE IN GOD
these earlier emotions down into the place of "childish
things." Soon after I began to go my rounds as a watch-
man on my allotted field, I fell upon a youth (and the same
experience has been several times repeated since) who but
lately was bounding hopefully along, bidding fair for the
better land, and seeming to lead others on, caught by the
foot in a snare. I went up to him, surprised to find him
halting so; but, ah, the look, the glare from his eyes, soon
told that the immortal was fast in the devil's toils. He
lived; but he was held. All his companions passed on,
and soon were out of sight, while he lay beating himself
on the ground. He lives; but it is in chains. The
chains have sunk into his flesh. They run through the
marrow of his bones, and are wrapped around his soul,
filthy as firm, firm as filthy. Oh, wretched man, who
shall deliver him? Not I; not any man. We must pass
on, and leave him. The same voice that wrenched from
Death his prisoner is needed to give liberty to this cap-
tive. Only one word can we utter in presence of such a
case: "Nothing is impossible with God." Having uttered
it, we pass on with a sigh.
Cure in such a case is difficult—is all but impossible.
Is there any method of prevention? Yes: the Lord thy
confidence will keep thy foot from being taken. The
Lord your dread will not do it, almighty though He be.
Many who have an agonizing fear of a just God in their
conscience, plunge deeper even than others into abominable
sins. It is the peace of God in the heart that has power
to keep the feet out of evil in the path of life. "He
that hath this hope in Him, purifieth himself even as
THE TRUE SAFEGUARD FROM TEMPTATION. 151
He is pure." "Sin shall not have dominion over you;"
and the reason is added—"for ye are not under the law,
but under grace" (Rom. vi. 14). A son has wantonly
offended an affectionate father, and fled from his face.
After many days of sullen distance, the prodigal returns,
and at nightfall approaches his father's dwelling. He is
standing outside, shivering in the blast, yet afraid to
enter, and meet the frown of an injured parent. Some
abandoned youths, companions of his guilt, pass by, and
hail him. By a little coaxing, they break his resolution
of repentance, and carry him off to their haunts of vice.
It was easy to sweep him off when they found him trem-
bling in terror outside. He was like chaff; and iniqui-
ties, like the wind, carried him away. But if the youth
had entered before the tempters came up, and the father,
instead of frowning or upbraiding, had fallen on his neck
and kissed him, setting him in the circle of brothers and
sisters, and showering on him the manifold affections of a
united family and a happy home and if the same god-
less band had been passing then, and had beckoned him
to join their revelry, they would not have succeeded so
easily. The soul of this youth is like a ship at anchor
now, and the current does not carry him away. Specifi-
cally, it is "the God of peace" who will bruise Satan
under our feet (Rom. xvi. 20). Those who stand outside,
with just as much religion as makes them afraid, are
easily taken in the tempter's snare: the reconciled whom
the Father has welcomed back with weeping, has now
another joy, and that joy becomes his strength: "his
heart is fixed, trusting in the Lord" (Ps. cxii. 7).
152 THE RIGHT THING DONE AT THE RIGHT TIME
XXVI.
THE RIGHT THING DONE AT THE RIGHT TIME.
"Withhold not good from them to whom it is due, when it is in the power of
thine hand to do it. Say not unto thy neighbour, Go, and come again, and to-
morrow I will give; when thou hast it by thee."—iii. 27, 28.
IT is in general the law of righteousness between man and
man. Do justly to all, and do so now. Pay your debts,
and pay them to-day, lest you should lack the means to-
morrow.
But it is probable that the precept has special reference
to the law of love. Every possessor of the good things,
either of this life or the next, is bound by the command
of the giver to distribute a portion to those who have none.
To withhold from any one that which is due to him, is
plainly dishonest. But here an interesting inquiry occurs;
how far and in what sense the poor have a right to main-
tenance out of the labour and wealth of the community?
The answer is, the really poor have a right to support by
the law of God, and the debt is binding on the conscience
of all who have the means; but it is not, and ought not
to be, a right which the poor as such can make good at
a human tribunal against the rich. The possessors of this
world's good are not at liberty to withhold the portion of
the poor. It is not left to their choice. It is a matter
settled by law. Disobedience is a direct offence against the
great Law-giver. But the poor have not a right which they
THE RIGHT THING DONE AT THE RIGHT TIME. 153
can plead and enforce at a human tribunal. The acknow-
ledgement of such a right would tend to anarchy. The
poor are placed in the power of the rich, and the rich are
under law to God. It is true that in heathen and other de-
graded countries the poor perish, but it does not follow that
any other principle would place them in a better condition.
Whatever may be the law, the possessors in every country
must administer it; and so there cannot in the nature of
things be any other law laid upon them than the law of
love. They are made answerable to God in their own
conscience for their conduct to the poor; and if that do
not prevail to secure kindness, nothing else will. If they
make light of a duty that may be pleaded at the judgment-
seat of God, much more will they make light of it as
against the poor who cannot enforce their own demands.
The assessment for the poor, in a highly artificial state of
society, is not the concession of their right to maintenance
exigible against the rich by the laws of men. It is a mere
expedient by those who give, to equalize and systematize
the disbursement of charity.
It seems to be the purpose of God in the present dis-
pensation to do good to his creatures, by the inequality of
their condition. The design of the providential arrange-
ment is to produce gentle, humble, contented thankfulness
on the one side, and open-hearted, open-handed liberality
on the other. If God had not intended to exercise these
graces, he probably would have made and kept men, as to
external comforts, all in a state of equality. But this
would not have been the best condition for human beings,
or for any portion of them. Absolute equality of condi-
154 THE RIGHT THING DONE AT THE RIGHT TIME.
tion may do for cattle, but not for men. It appears that
the same all-wise Disposer has arranged that there shall
be great and manifold diversities of elevation in the sur-
face of the material earth, and in the condition of its
intelligent inhabitants. For similar purposes of wisdom
and goodness have both classes of inequalities been intro-
duced and maintained. Levellers, who should propose to
improve upon this globe, by bringing down every high
place and exalting every low, so that no spot of all its sur-
face should remain higher than another, would certainly
destroy it as a habitation for man. The waters would
cover it. In attempting to make a level earth, they
would make a universal sea, The grand comfort is that
the mischief cannot be done. The mountains are too
firmly rooted to be removed by any power but that of the
world's Maker.
We suspect the other class of levellers aim at a change
as perilous; and our consolation is, that it is equally im-
possible. We believe that for the present dispensation,
the inequalities in the condition of individuals and fami-
lies is as needful to the general prosperity of the whole,
as the diversity of hill and valley in the surface of the
globe. We believe, also, that the arrangement is as firmly
fixed. It would be as easy to level the world as its in-
habitants. What may be in store for the earth and man
in the future we know not; there may be a time when
the globe shall be smooth like an ivory ball, but then
there must be no more sea: and if ever there come a
time when all men shall be and abide equal, it must be
that time when there shall be no more sea of sin to over-
THE RIGHT THING DONE AT THE RIGHT TIME. 155
flow them. If ever there come a time when there shall be
no more master and servants, it must be the time when all
shall serve one Lord.
In many ways society is consolidated and
strengthened by inequalities. He who made man, male
and female, receptive weakness on one side and protecting
strength on the other, welding both by the glow of love
into a completer one, has thereby made the mass of humanity
hold more firmly together. He has also provided diagonal
girders running in a different direction—the relations of
rich and poor, master and servant, in order to interlace the
several portions of humanity more firmly into each other,
and so make society as a whole strong enough to ride out
the hurricanes of a tempestuous time.
“When it is in the power of thine hand to do it;” a
touching memorial this. Many who have cherished
sound principles, and desired to do good, have permitted
the time irrevocably to pass. When they had it in their
power to do good they procrastinated, and now the means
have fled. This is a bitter reflection in old age. There is
only one way by which any man may make sure that such
a bitterness shall not be his, and that is by doing now
what his hand finds to do. If it is in the power of your
hand this year to do good, it may not be so next year.
The abundance may be taken from you, or you taken
from your abundance,. The secret of a happy life is
to set the house in order, and keep it in order. Above
all, keep as few good intentions hovering about as
possible. They are like ghosts haunting a dwelling. The
way to lay them is to find bodies for them. When they are
156 THE RIGHT THING DONE AT THE RIGHT TIME.
embodied in substantial deeds they are no longer dan-
gerous.
But there is yet another way in which it may be be-
yond the power of thine hand to do a duty to-morrow
which has been deferred to-day. The hand has much
power and skill, but it cannot move except at the com-
mand of the will. If the willingness of the heart were
conclusively frozen up within, the hand, which is merely
the heart's servant, can do nothing. When the rich re-
fuse to do the duties of the day with their means, they
are in danger of falling into the miser's madness. When
you have contracted a diseased love of money which
you do not use, it is not in the power of the hand to do
the plainest duty. The man who loves money cannot
part with it. He has let his opportunity pass. On the
one side, there may be lavishness without generosity—
the mere habit of letting money run out like water: on
the other hand, there may be close carefulness without
the virtue of frugality—the mere habit of holding the
grip. Both conditions are most dismal. There is a ten-
dency to fall into the one snare or the other, The way
in the midst is a strait way. It is not easy to walk in
it. It is necessary to exercise our faculties in that opera-
tion. If we begin early, and keep going, the work will
become easy at length.
Observe how remarkably specific is the command not
to postpone a gift. We ought to make up our minds,
and act. Those who have the means of doing good in the
community at the present day, are much tried, and should
look well to their path. There are many good objects
THE RIGHT THING DONE AT THE RIGHT TIME. 157
pressing, and as in all such cases, the very multitude of
the good notes suggests and makes room for the circula-
tion of bad ones, caution and discrimination are not only
permitted; they are peremptorily required.
The injunction of the text is a most useful rule in one
department of this difficulty. If we have not the means,
or if the object be unworthy, there ought to be a distinct
declinature. A clear unnmbiguous negative is, in many
transactions, of incalculable worth. It is no man's duty
to give to every one who asks, or to any all that he asks.
There is such a thing as giving when you should not, from
lack of courage to say No. Farther, when the object is
not worthy, and your mind is clear, and you determine to
do nothing, it would be profitable both to yourself and
others to say so at once. It is not altogether straight-
forward to another, or safe for yourself, to announce a
postponement if you have resolved on a refusal. Soft-
ness may lead to sin. But the worst of all is when the
cause is good, when you are convinced of its goodness,
when the means are in your power, and yet you put the
pleader off. Even though you should afterwards give,
you have lost the blessing. God loves a cheerful giver,
and though you have given, you gave with a grudge.
When the fruit needs a violent pulling to wrench it from
the tree, the tree itself is torn in the process.
158 THE CURSE AND THE BLESSING UPON THE HOUSE.
XXVII.
THE CURSE AND THE BLESSING UPON THE
HOUSE.
"The
curse of the Lord is in the house of the wicked:
but He blesseth the habitation of the just.—iii. 33.
WE have often, in the course of these expositions, had
occasion to point out the effects of sin upon the person
who sins. Here is yet another of its bitter fruits: it
brings a curse on the house. Our interests are more
closely connected with each other than we are able to
observe, or willing to allow. The welfare of one is largely
dependent on the well-doing of another. Let every wicked
man learn here, that over and above the ruin of his own
soul, his sins bring a curse on his wife and children, his
neighbours and friends. Such is God's government, that
you cannot live in sin, any more than in small pox or the
plague, without involving others in the danger. For wise
purposes, it has been so ordained. This law is calculated
to lay an additional restraint upon a wayward spirit. A
man, reckless of his own character and fate, might be
ready to act out the daring maxim, "Let us eat and
drink, for to-morrow we die." When pity for himself
did not arrest him, he might be arrested when he saw
that his own abandoned life would curse his dwelling.
Doubtless this law of the Lord has been bit and bridle to
hold in a man, who would have burst through all other
THE CURSE AND THE BLESSING UPON THE HOUSE. 159
restraints. In blind despairing rage, he might pull down
the pillars upon his own unhappy head. Yet when he
feels his little ones clinging to his knees, and his wife
leaning on his breast, he may stand in awe, and turn and
live. "Fear and sin not." The providence of God gives
terrible momentum to that sharp word. In addition to
the weight of divine authority upon the conscience, all
the force of nature's instincts is applied to drive it home.
When the fear of perdition to himself has not power
enough, the laws of Providence throw in all his house as
a make-weight to increase the motive. He is held back
from evil by all that he ever felt of tenderness in his
youth, or feels of compassion still. And if in the last
resort these weights avail not to keep him from sinning,
they will be effectual in adding to his punishment,
This dark curse hanging over the dwelling of the wicked,
is balanced by the blessing that falls on the habitation of
the just. Here is pleasant work, and plenty of wages.
Trust in Christ, and serve Him besides the saving of
your own soul, you will be a blessing to your habitation.
How sweet the privilege of being the parents of your chil-
dren both for this life and the life to come! And not
only the parents every one in the house may become the
channel of blessing from on high. If God has a child in
a family, he will have many an errand there. You who
are fathers know how frequently you find occasion to
visit the house where your own dear child is boarded out
for education. Our Father in heaven so visits his own,
in whatever habitation their education is going on, and
all the house will get the benefit. The disciples of Jesus
160 THE CURSE AND THE BLESSING UPON THE HOUSE.
are a preserving salt, even when the mass preserved by
their presence are unconscious of the boon. To be good
is the shortest and surest way to do good. Jonathan in
his lifetime was dear to David; and therefore Jonathan's
son, an orphan and a cripple, sat daily at the royal table.
If you be the king's friend, your children will get the
benefit in some hour of need. It is a noble position, and
should encourage one to bear trials with patience, to be
the channel between a house and heaven, bearing them up
to God, and getting down from Him the blessing.
PRECEPT AND EXAMPLE. 161
XXVIII.
PRECEPT AND EXAMPLE.
"Hear, O my son, and receive my sayings. . . . I have taught thee in the
way of wisdom: I have led thee in right paths."—iv. 10, 11.
IT is a great matter for a parent, if he is able to say to
his grown son, "I have taught thee in the way of wis-
dom; I have led thee in right paths." Teaching and
leading are closely allied, but not identical. It is pos-
sible, and common, to have the first in large measure,
where the second is wanting. They are two elements
which together make up a whole. With both, education
in a family will go prosperously on: where one is want-
ing, it will be halting and ineffectual. Many a parent
who acquits himself well in the department of teaching
his children, fails miserably in the department of leading
them in the right path. It is easier to tell another the
right way, than to walk in it yourself. To lead your
child in right paths implies that you go in them before
him. Here lies the reason why so many parents prac-
tically fail to give their children a good education. Only
a godly man can bring up his child for God. It is not
uncommon to find men who are themselves vicious, de-
siring to have their children educated in virtue. Infidels
sometimes take measures to have Christianity taught to
their children. Many will do evil; few dare to teach it
to their own offspring. This is the unwilling homage
which the evil are constrained to pay to goodness.
162 PRECEPT AND EXAMPLE
Great is the effect when parents consistently and stead-
fastly go before their children, giving them a daily ex-
ample of their daily precepts; but to teach the family
spiritual things, while the life of the teacher is carnal,
is both painful and fruitless. A man cannot walk with
one leg, although the limb be in robust health; more
especially if the other limb, instead of being altogether
wanting, is hanging on him, and trailing after him dead.
In this case it is impossible to get quit of the impediment
It will not off. The only way of getting relief from its
weight is to get it made alive. An example of some kind,
parents must exhibit in their families. If it be not such
as to help, it will certainly hinder the education of the
young, God, in the providential laws, permits no neu-
trality in the family. There, you must either be for or
against Him.
One of the broadest and best defined experiences that
passed under my observation, and was imprinted on my
memory in early youth, was that of a family whose father
stood high above all his neighbours in religious profession
and gifts, and yet returned from market drunk as often as
he had the means; and whose sons turned out graceless
vagabonds. Nothing is impossible with God; but it
would have been indeed a miracle of mercy if these young
men, who were accustomed from childhood to see in their
own father a lofty spiritual profession wedded to the vilest
vice, had themselves, as they grew up, lived soberly, and
righteously, and godly in the world.
HOLD FAST. 163
XXIX.
HOLD FAST.
"Take fast hold of instruction;
let her not go keep her, for she is thy life."—iv. 13.
OFTEN a ship's crew at sea are obliged suddenly to betake
themselves to their boats, and abandon the sinking ship.
Such a case was lately reported, of an American whale
ship in the South Seas. The huge leviathan of the deep,
wounded by the art of man, ran out the distance of a
mile by way of getting a run-race, and thence came on
with incredible velocity against the devoted ship. Such
was the shock that she instantly began to fill, and was
gradually settling down. The sea was calm: there was
opportunity for effort, but not time for delay. They
were not only far from land, but far from the usual track
of ships on the sea. In the dreary region of the antarctic
circle, they might wander a whole year, and see no sail
on the desolate horizon. There was little probability of
rescue until they should regain those latitudes through
which the thoroughfare of nations runs. The word was
given. All hands went to work, and soon all the sea-
worthy boats were loaded to the gunwale with the prime
necessaries of life. The deck was now nearly level with
the water, and the boats shoved off for safety. After
they had pulled a hundred yards away, two resolute men
leaped from one of the boats into the sea, and made
164 HOLD FAST.
towards the ship. They reached it while still afloat
They disappear down a hatchway. In a minute they
emerge again, bearing something in their hands. As
they leap into the water the ship goes, down; the men
are separated from each other and their burden, in the
whirlpool that gathers over the sinking hull. They do
not seem to consult their own safety. They remain in
that dangerous eddy, until they grasp again the object
which they had carried over the ship's side. Holding it
fast, they are seen at length bearing away to their com-
rades in the boat. What do these strong swimmers carry,
for they seem to value it more than life? It is the com-
pass! It had been left behind, and was remembered
almost too late. Now they have taken fast hold of it,
and will not let it go. Whatever they lose, they will at
all hazards keep it, for "it is their life."
When shall we see souls, shipwrecked on the sea of
time, take and keep such hold of the Truth as it is in
Jesus, because it is their life? When will men learn to
count that the soul's danger in the flood of wrath is as
real, as the body's danger on a material ocean? When
will men begin to make real effort for the Eternal life,
such as they make to preserve the present life when it is
in danger? There is not an atom of hypocrisy about a
man, when he is in instant danger of drowning or starva-
tion. He lays about him with an energy and a reality
that brook no delay, and regard no appearances. If we
could truly believe that the life of our souls is forfeited
by sin, that they must be saved now or lost for ever,
and that there is, none other name given under heaven
HOLD FAST. 165
among men to save them, than the name of Jesus; then
there would be a corresponding reality in our cleaving
to the Saviour. Although, in a sense, we seek the right
things, all may be lost by reversing the order in which,
by divine prescription, they should be sought. The rule
is, Seek first the kingdom of God, and then it is inti-
mated that other things may be innocently "added."
Those who seek first these other things as their heart's
portion, may also strive earnestly to attain the kingdom;
but their labour is lost, because they do not "strive law-
fully." "Lord, what wouldst thou have me to do," and
how wouldst thou have me to do it? "Send out thy
light and thy truth: let them lead me."
166 THE PATH OF THE JUST.
XXX.
THE PATH OF THE JUST.
"The path of the just is as the shining light, that shineth more and more unto
the perfect day. The way of the wicked is as darkness: they know not at
what they stumble."—iv. 18, 19.
THE essentials of a just man's character have been in all
ages the same. The just in every dispensation have
lived by faith, and walked with God: they have hoped
for his salvation, and done his commandments (Psalm cix,
166): they believe, and obey; they are bought with a
price, and glorify God.
The path, the life course of such a man, is like the
shining light. I do not think that the path of the jus-
tified is compared to the course of the sun, from the
period of his appearance in the morning to the time of
his meridian height. The sun is an emblem, not of the
justified, but of the Justifier. I have always felt uneasy
in hearing the life of a believer likened to the sun's
course from horizon to zenith. The comparison does not
fit. An effort to adjust the analogy either spoils its
beauty, or gives a glory to man which is not his due.
That grandest object in the visible creation is used as an
emblem of the Highest One, and for his service it should
be reserved. Christ alone is the Light of the world:
Christians are the enlightened. The just are those whom
the Sun of Righteousness shines upon. When they come
THE PATH OF THE JUST. 167
beneath his healing beams, their darkness flies away. They
who once were darkness are light now, but it is "in the
Lord."
The new life of the converted is like the morning light.
At first, it seems an uncertain struggle between the dark-
ness and the dawn. It quivers long in the balance. At
one moment the watcher thinks, surely yonder is a streak
of light: the next, he says with a sigh, it was an illusion:
night yet reigns over all. When the contest begins, how-
ever, the result is not doubtful, although it may for a
time appear so. The first and feeblest streaks of light
that come mingling with the darkness, have issued from
the sun; and the sun that sent these harbingers, though
distant yet, is steadily advancing. Ere long the doubt
will vanish, and morning will be unequivocally declared.
Once begun, it shineth more and more unto the perfect
day; and it is perfect day when the sun has risen, as
compared with the sweet but feeble tints of earliest
dawning. Sometimes there are irregularities and back-
goings. Clouds deep and dark creep in between the sun
and the world's surface. After the morning has so far
advanced, the darkness may increase again; but, even in
this case, the source of light is coming near without any
faltering. The impediment which has partially inter-
cepted his rays, is moveable, and will soon be taken out
of the way. There are similar irregularities in the pro-
gress of a just man's course. Sometimes he halts, or
even recedes. After experiencing the light of life, and
exulting in a blessed hope, he again comes under a cloud,
and complains of darkness. But the Source of his light
168 THE PATH OF THE JUST.
and life will not fail. He changeth not; and therefore
that seed of Jacob, though distressed, will not be con-
sumed (Malachi iii. 6). The breath of His Spirit will
drive the intercepting clouds away, and the law of the
kingdom, relieved from hindering exceptions, will yet
have free course: the path of the just will be like the
morning; it will increase until dawn break into day. If
a thousand years may in the Lord's sight be accounted
one day, much more may the life course of a disciple
from the first throes of the new birth, to the moment
when faith is lost in sight. That day is an high day in
the eternal life of the saved. It is a day much to be
remembered in the circle of victors that surround the
throne. Now that the Lord God and the Lamb are their
light, they will think of the time when the earliest dawn
began to struggle faintly in their breasts. The remem-
brance of its mysterious birth out of primeval darkness,
and its gradual growth into perfect light, will make them
say and sing of that day, in adoring wonder, What hath
the Lord wrought!
The analogy holds good more exactly still, if we take
into view the actually ascertained motions of the plane-
tary system. When any portion of the earth's surface
begins to experience a dawn diminishing its darkness, it
is because that portion is gradually turning round to-
ward the sun, the centre of light fixed in the heavens.
While any part of the earth lies away from the sun, and
in proportion to the measure of its aversion, it is dark
and cold: in proportion as it turns to him again, its
atmosphere grows clearer, until, in its gradual progress,
THE PATH OF THE JUST. 169
it comes in sight of the sun, and its day is perfect then.
The path of the just is precisely like this. Arrested in
his darkness by a love in Christ, which he does not un-
derstand as yet, he is secretly drawn toward Him in whom
that love in infinite measure is treasured up. As he is
drawn nearer, his light increases until at last he finds
himself in the presence of the Lord. Day is not perfect
here in a believer's heart, and yet the light of the know-
ledge of God from the face Jesus shines into a believer's
heart while he sojourns here. The dark get light, the
dead get life from the Lord—in the Lord before his glo-
rious appearing. They who thus get light from a Saviour
unseen, shall, at his appearing, be like Him, and see Him
as He is. The machinery of the everlasting covenant is
meantime going, softly and silently, as the motion of the
spheres; and they that are Christ's here, whatever clouds
may dim their present prospect, are wearing every mo-
ment farther from the night and nearer to the day.
There follows a counterpart intimation fitted to over-
awe the boldest heart "The way of the wicked is as
darkness; they know not at what they stumble" (iv,
19). "If the light that is in thee bh darkness, how
great is that darkness?" (Matthew vi. 23.) Its greatness
consists chiefly in this, that it is "in you." A dark place
on the path might be got over; but darkness in his own.
heart, the traveller carries with him wherever he goes.
To the blind, every place and every time is alike dark.
It is an evil heart of unbelief. Because of this they
stumble upon that very Rock which has been laid in Zion
to sustain a sinner's hope. He who is a sanctuary to
170 THE PATH OF THE JUST.
others, is a rock of offence to them. "He shall be for a
sanctuary: but for a stone of stumbling and for a rock of
offence to both the houses of Israel" (Isa viii. 14). Even
when they fall they know not at what they stumble.
Dreadful thought! to be crushed against Him, who has
been given as a Refuge and a Rest to weary souls escaping
from a sea of sin. The way to get light is to turn from
evil. The pure in heart shall see God."
THE FOUNTAIN AND ITS STREAMS. 171
XXXI.
THE FOUNTAIN AND ITS STREAMS.
"Keep thy heart with all diligence; for out of it are the issues of life. Put
away from thee a froward mouth, and perverse lips put far from thee. Let
thine eyes look right on, and let thine eyelids look straight before thee.
Ponder the path of thy feet, and let all thy ways be established. Turn not to
the right hand nor to the left: remove thy foot from evil."—iv. 23-27.
FIRST the fountain, then the streams: first the heart, and
then the life-coarse. The issues of life are manifold: three
of their main channels are mapped out here—the "lips,"
the "eyes," and the "feet."
The corruption of the heart, the pollution of the spring-
head, where all life's currents rise, is a very frequent topic
in the Scriptures. It occurs in many places, and in many
forms. In proportion to the opposition which it is fitted
to excite, is the doctrine reiterated and enforced. The
imaginations of man's heart are only evil, and that con-
tinually. The heart is deceitful above all things, and
desperately wicked. As a fountain casteth out her waters,
Jerusalem casteth out her wickedness. God foreknew
that a deceitful heart would be unwilling to own its
deceitfulness, and therefore the truth is fortified beyond
most others in the word.
"Keep thy heart with all diligence; for out of it are
the issues of life." This precept of the Proverbs sounds
very like some of the sayings of Jesus. His ear caught
prophetically before the time, what we have heard his-
172 THE FOUNTAIN AND ITS STREAMS
torically after it, as if the word had echoed either way.
You may stand in the morning on a height so great
that you see the sun's disc emerging from the eastern
horizon sometime before he has risen upon the plain.
Solomon, as a teacher of righteousness, was elevated far
above the common level of humanity. By special gift,
and by the Spirit's intervention, he was exalted much
above other men in all knowledge, and especially the
knowledge of divine truth. So high was the mountain-
top he stood upon, that, like Abraham, he saw Christ's
day afar off, and felt a beam from the Sun of Righteous-
ness long before he had personally arisen upon the world.
A greater than Solomon has said, "Out of the heart
proceed evil thoughts, murders, adulteries." Keep there-
fore according to Solomon's precept; keep with all dili-
gence that prolific spring. Here, as in all other cases,
prayer and pains must go together. We cry to God in
the words of David, Create in me a clean heart; and He
answers back by the mouth of David's son, Keep thy
heart. We must keep it, otherwise it will run wild.
The Almighty Lord will bruise Satan; but it is "under
your feet:" yourselves must tread on his writhing folds.
"Keep it with all keepings" is the word. Leave no
means untried. Out of our own conduct will we be con-
demned if we do not effectually keep our own hearts. We
keep other things with success as often as we set about it
in earnest—good things from getting, and bad things from
doing, harm. One who loves his garden, keeps it so well
that travellers pause as they pass and look admiring on.
You keep your family, your house, your money, and you
THE FOUNTAIN AND ITS STREAMS. 173
keep them well. Even your clothes are kept, so that no
stain shall be seen upon them. On the other side, dan-
gerous creatures are kept with a firm hand and a watch-
ful eye from doing evil. We keep in the horse or mule
with bit and bridle. Even the raging sea is kept back
by the skill of men, and ripening fields bask safely in the
autumn sun below the level of its waters, and within
hearing of its roar. In other keepings man is skilful and
powerful too; but in keeping his own heart, unstable as
water, he does not excel.
Keep it with all keepings. Keep it from getting evil,
as a garden is kept; keep it from doing evil, as the sea is
kept at bay from reclaimed netherlands. Keep it with
the keeping of heaven above, and of the earth beneath--
God's keeping bespoken in prayer, and man's keeping
applied in watchful effort. Keep it with all keepings, for
out of it are the issues of life. The true principle on which
an effectual' restraint can be put upon the issues of the
heart is indicated in the 21st verse—"Keep" my words
"in the midst of thine heart." The same prescription
for the same disease occurs in that great hymn of the He-
brews (Psalm cxix. 11)—"Thy word have I hid in mine
heart, that I might not sin against thee." The word of life,
—this is the salt that must be cast into these bitter springs
of Jericho, to save the surrounding land from barrenness,
1. The first of the three streams marked on this map
as issuing from an ill-kept heart is "a froward mouth."
The form of the precept, put it away, reveals a secret
of our birth. The evil is there at the first in every one:
He who is free of it was not born free. We have not a
174 THE FOUNTAIN AND ITS STREAMS.
clear ground to begin upon. When a man would erect a
temple to God within his own body, the first effort of the
builder is to clear the rubbish away. Of the things from
the heart that need to be put away, the first in the order
of nature is the froward mouth. Words offer the first
and readiest egress for evil.
The power of speech is one of the grand peculiarities
which distinguish man. It is a wonderful and precious
gift. Wanting it, and all that depends on it, man would
scarcely be man. While we use the gift, we should re-
member the Giver, and the purpose for which he bestowed
it. While we speak, we should never forget that God is one
of the listeners. Men sin in comfort when they forget God,
and forget God that they may sin in comfort. If the Queen
were present, hearing every word, on a given day, in a
given company, a restraint would be put upon every tongue;
gravity and gentleness would breathe in every sentence.
Yet that same company is not refined and sobered by the
presence of the Bing Eternal. Like Israel, in a backslid-
ing time (Mal. i. 8), we bring unto God the blind and the
lame, sacrifices that we would not offer to our sovereign
and that she would not accept at our hands. He who has
a tongue to speak should remember that the bestower of
the gift is listening, and keep back whatever would dis-
please Him. Take the principle of Hagar's simple and
sublime confession, accommodated in form to the case in
hand, "Thou God, hearest me." If our words were all
poured through that strainer, how much fewer and purer
they would be! If all the words of our week were
gathered and set before us at its close, the boldest head
THE FOUNTAIN AND ITS STREAM. 175
would hang down at the sight. When all the words this
tongue has uttered are written and opened in His sight
on that day, how shall I appear, if the dark record re-
mains still mine? While for that reckoning we must
trust all and only in the blood of Christ, that taketh sin
away, we should diligently set about the business of
watching and restraining the perverseness of our own lips.
The work is hopeful. They who try it in the right way
will be encouraged by seen progress. A vain, a biting, an
untruthful, a polluted, a profane tongue cannot be in the
family of God, when the family are at home in the Father's
presence. The evil must be put away; the tongue must
be cleansed; and now is the day for such exercises: that
which remaineth for the people of God is a Sabbath on
which no such work is done, in a heaven where no such
work is needed.
2. The next outlet from the fountain is by the "eyes."
The precept is quaint in its cast—"let thine eyes look
right on;" and yet its meaning is not difficult. Let the
heart's aim be simple and righteous. No secret longings
and side glances after forbidden things: no crooked bye-
ends and hypocritical pretences. Both in appearance and
reality let your path be a straightforward one. In a
mercantile community especially this is the quality that
should be chiefly in request. Much mischief is done when
men begin to look aside instead of straight before them.
A manufacturer glances to the side one day, and sees a
neighbour making as much by a lucky speculation in an
hour as he has won by the regular prosecution of his busi-
ness in a twelvemonth. He throws for a prize, and draws
176 THE FOUNTAIN AND ITS STREAMS.
a blank. In the speculation the capital which sustained
his business has disappeared: his legitimate creditors are
defrauded, and his family ruined.
Deviations from the straight line have become so many
and so great, that the deviators, keeping each other in
countenance, begin to defend their own course, and whis-
per a desire to establish a new code of laws which may
coincide with their practice. We have here and there
met with an appalling measure of obtuseness in compre-
hending the first principles of justice, which should regu-
late all commercial transactions. Men may be found
amongst us holding their heads high, and conducting
business on a large scale, who have not gotten the alpha-
bet of honesty yet. It is ground of thankfulness, indeed,
that these are the exceptions. The body politic of com-
merce is in a much sounder state than it appears to a
superficial observer, judging from instances whose abnor-
mal criminality has thrust them more prominently into
view. If the life were not on the whole robust, it could
not bear diseased tumours so many and so great; but the
body whose beauty they mar, and whose strength they
waste, should, for its own health's sake, be ashamed of
the deformities, and intolerant of their growth. With
this view, let every man, besides joining in the general
condemnation of full-grown detected dishonesties in other
people's transactions, search for and crush incipient secret
aberrations in his own.
When the eye is single, the whole body will be full of
light. Straightforwardness is the fairest jewel of our
commercial crown. Those who spend their life in traffic
THE FOUNTAIN AND ITS STREAM. 177
should be jealous of themselves, and lean hard over from
the side on which sly, sinister selfishness lies, Anything
on the right side; uprightness, even downrightness, if
you will; but let us keep far away from every form and
shade of duplicity. It is true that mercantile pursuits
tend to develop some noble qualities of humanity; but
let it not be forgotten that some noxious weeds can
thrive in the riches of its soil. Love and cultivate, by
all means, the generous plants; but carefully watch the
weeds, and resolutely cast them away.
3. The last of these issues is by the "feet." Ponder,
therefore, their path. The best time to ponder any path,
is not at the end, not even at the middle, but at the
beginning of it. The right place for weighing the worth
of any course, is on this side of its beginning. Those
who ponder after they have entered it, are not in a posi-
tion either to obtain the truth or to profit by it Those
who rush headlong into a path of conduct because they
like it, and then begin to consider whether it is a right
one, will probably either induce themselves to believe
a lie, or refuse to follow discovered truth.
The injunction applies to every step in life, great and
small. Ponder well what family you will be a servant
in, what trade you will learn, what business you will
engage in, what colony you will emigrate to. Every
step is great, because it affects the destiny of an immor-
tal soul More particularly, by way of example, ponder
your path at that great step which binds you for life to
another human being as one flesh. God has made mar-
riage a weighty matter—let not man make it a light
178 THE FOUNTAIN AND ITS STREAMS.
one. Weigh well itself and all its accessories. Those
who take this leap in the dark, may expect to find them-
selves in a miry pit. Those who weigh at it, until they
find the burden all too heavy for their strength, and cast
it therefore on the Lord, will be led out of their tempta-
tions, and through their difficulties. Most true it is that
"marriages are made in heaven;" for the dear children
refer the matter implicitly to their Father there, and he
undertakes for them.
But the value of weighing anything depends all on
the justness of the balance and the weights. Many
shamefully false balances are in use and in vogue for
weighing paths and actions. "Fashion," and "use and
wont," are the scales that most people cast their intentions
into, before carrying them out into fact. These are the
instruments which quacks supply, and fools employ. They
are mean and contemptible cheats; and yet the multi-
tude trust them. If nothing valuable were risked, one
might be content to smile at their silliness, and pass on;
but the path which these false balances induce their dupes
to take, leads to perdition. Although the acts be transpa-
rent folly, we cannot afford to turn them into mirth. We
dare not laugh at the stupidity of the entrance whose
issue is in woe. These false balances are ruin to men,
and abomination to the Lord! Cast them away. Here
is a standard weight stamped as true by the imperial seal
of heaven. By the word of God paths and actions will
be weighed in the judgment. By the word of God, there-
fore, let paths and actions, great and small, be pondered
now.
FAMILY JOYS. 179
X.XXII.
FAMILY JOYS.
"Drink
waters out of thine own cistern,
and running waters out of thine own well."—v. 15.
A PAINTER lays down a dark ground to lean his picture
on, and thereby bring its beauty out. Such is the method
adopted in this portion of the word. The pure delights
of the family are about to be represented in the sweetest
colours that nature yields,—wedded love mirrored in run-
ning waters; surely we have apples of gold in pictures of
silver here. And in all the earlier part of the chapter
the Spirit has stained the canvass deep with Satan's dark
antithesis, to the holy appointment of God. An instance
of the same high art you may see in the work of another
master. Paul sets forth, in Eph. v. 2, his favourite theme,
the love of Christ, in terms of even more than his usual
winsomeness; and you may see, in the verse that follows,
how dark a ground he filled in behind it. Such fearful
contrasts, under the immediate direction of the Spirit,
make the beauty of holiness come more visibly out. But
it is only at a great distance, and with extremest caution,
that we dare to imitate this style in our expositions. The
danger would be great, if the attempt were rashly made,
of staining the pure by an unskilful handling of the im-
pure. A reverent look towards the depths of Satan, as
they are unveiled in the word of God, may alarm the
180 FAMILY JOYS.
observer, and cause him to keep farther from the pit's
mouth; but we fear to touch them in detail, lest our
well-meant effort should be snatched, and used as another
fiery dart by the wicked one. All round, this region
seems infected. We have known some who, in venturing
near to rescue others, fell themselves; as miners, descend-
ing the pit to bring out a suffocated neighbour, have been
known to perish with him. It is meet that even those
who, from fear of God and love to men, run to the res-
cue, should hold in their breath, and pull hastily out of
the fire whatever brand they can lay their hands on, and
come back with all speed from the opening mouth of
those descending "steps that take hold on hell" Indeed
this is the substance of all these warnings which occur in
the fifth chapter, and are repeated in the seventh. The
key note of the whole is, "remove far from her." The
word assumes that men are weak, and warns them off
from the edge of the whirling stream that sucks the
unwary in. It is the same lesson that Jesus himself
gave, when he taught that in this matter a look is already
sin. In wise tenderness, He would keep the fluttering
bird clear beyond the reach of the vile charmer's fasci-
nating eye. "Hear ye Him," young men, as you love your
life, and value your souls. We protest that we are clear
from the blood of those that perish there, although we
stand no longer near the deadly spot to warn them
back.
The Lord condescends to bring his own Institute for-
ward in rivalry with the deceitful pleasures of sin. The
pure joys of a happy home are depicted in the fifteenth
FAMILY JOYS. 181
and subsequent verses. The saying of Cowper, "God
made the country, man made the town," although it con-
tains no poetic brilliance, has obtained a wide currency
for its pithy expression of a great and obvious truth.
We may be permitted to use the poet's mould in giving
form to our own conceptions, which we believe to be
equally true, and more urgent. "God made the family,
man made the casino, the theatre, the dramshop, the ball-
room." The list might be largely extended, of Satan-
suggested, man-made things, which compete with God's
institute the family, and drain off its support.
How beautiful and how true the imagery in which our
lesson is infolded! Pleasures such as God gives to his
creatures, and such as his creatures, with advantage to
all their interests, can enjoy—pleasures that are con-
sistent with holiness and heaven, are compared to a
stream of pure running water. And specifically the joys
of the family are "running waters out of thine own
well." This well is not exposed to every passenger. It
springs within, and has a fence around it. We should
make much of the family, and all that belongs to it. All
its accessories are the Father's gift, and He expects us
to observe and value them. It is no trifling to apply the
microscope to the petals of a flower, in order to magnify
and so multiply its beauties. In like manner, it is
worthy employment for the greatest to scan the minutest
objects that are the genuine parts of the household appa-
ratus: for, as the Lord's works, they are all very good.
But remember, although the stream is very pure—nay,
because it is so very pure, a small bulk of foreign matter
182 FAMILY JOYS.
will sensibly tinge it. You may have observed that if a
drop of coloured matter be poured into pure water, it
makes its polluting presence very widely felt. Had the
water been discoloured from the first, the effect of an-
other drop would not have been discernible. Thus the
very purity of the family joys in themselves magnifies
the effect of any infringement. Perhaps the drop that
discolours for days the waters of his own well, may fall
in an unguarded moment from the lips of the husband
and father himself. A biting word, reflecting on the
wife and mother in presence of the children, when some-
thing in her department is found out of order, will stir
the mud at the bottom, and make the stream run turbid
for many days. His absence, frequent or unnecessary, in
the evening, till the children have gone to bed, and the,
wife feels that much of her labour in making everything
neat has been thrown away, without an eye to see, or a
tongue to applaud it—this will soon change “your own
well” into the appearance of a river in flood. From the
other side also the disturbing element may come. Even.
little neglects on the wife's part will damp the joys of
the house, as a very small cloud may suffice to take all
the sunlight out of the landscape. A slovenly dress for
the husband's home-coming, made tidy only when
strangers are expected, may be sufficient to tinge the
whole current of conjugal intercourse. Something is felt
to be wrong, and yet neither may know what the ail-
ment is, or where it lies. Sharp, discontented words,
a continual dropping from a woman's lips, whether with
or without cause, will be a poisonous acid in the well,
FAMILY JOYS. 183
and all joy will die around its borders. The children,
too, have much in their power both for good and evil.
Heavy cares are strong temptations to the parents.
Their spirits are burdened, and the burdened spirit is apt
to give way. If the children, by ready obedience, and
mutual love, would contrive to sit light as a burden on
their parents' shoulders, the lightened parents might re-
joice together, and the beams of glad contentment on the
faces of father and mother would radiate through all the
house. Children are sometimes little peacemakers, bless-
ing their parents, and blessed by God.
But careful abstinence from evil is only one, and that,
the lower side of the case. There must be spontaneous
outgoing activity in this matter, like the springing of
flowers, and the leaping of a stream from the fountain.
The command is peremptory, v. 18, "Rejoice with the
wife of thy youth." It is not only feed and clothe her,
and refrain from injuring her by word or deed. All this
will not discharge a man's duty, nor satisfy a woman's
heart. All the allusions to this relation in Scripture
imply an ardent, joyful love. To it, though it lie far
beneath heaven, yet to it, as the highest earthly thing, is
compared the union of Christ and his redeemed Church.
Beware where you go for comfort in distress, and sym-
pathy in happiness. The Lord himself is the source of
all consolation to a soul that seeks Him; yet nature is
His, as well as redemption. He has constructed nether
springs on earth and supplied them from his own high
treasuries; and to these he bids a broken or a joyful
spirit go for either sympathy. "Drink waters out of
184 FAMILY JOYS.
thine own cistern," is the express command. "Rejoice
with the wife of thy youth"—this is not to put a creature
in the place of God. He will take care of His own hon-
our. He has hewn that cistern, and given it to you,
and filled it, and when you draw out of it what He has
put in, you get from Himself, and give Him the glory.
Husband and wife, if they are skilful to take advantage
of their privileges, may, by sharing, somewhat diminish
tbeir cares, and fully double their joys. They twain
shall be one flesh, and when the two are one, it will be a
robuster life, as two streams joined become a broader river.
But we must take care lest the enjoyments of home
become a snare. God is not pleased with indolence or
selfishness. When He gives that fountain, He expects
it will "be dispersed abroad." To keep all to yourself
will defeat your own end. To hold it in will make it
stagnate. The only way of keeping it sweet for our-
selves is to let it run over for the good of others. If the
family is well ordered, ourselves will get the chief benefit:
but we should let others share it. Those especially who are
in providence deprived of this inestimable blessing, a
home—those who have no parents, or whose parents are
far away, should be admitted to taste of, these pleasures.
This is a charity which God-fearing families might dis-
tribute without cost to a class who need no material
alms, and are therefore liable to be neglected in schemes
of ordinary benevolence.
THE METHOD OP PROVIDENCE. ETC. 185
XXXIII.
THE METHOD OF PROVIDENCE FOR RE-
STRAINING EVIL
"The ways of man are before the eyes of the Lord, and he pondereth all his
goings. His own iniquities shall take the wicked himself, and he shall be
holden with the cords of his sins."—v. 21, 22.
GOD announces Himself the witness and the judge of
man. The evil-doer can neither elude the all-seeing eye,
nor escape from the Almighty hand. Secrecy is the
study and the hope of the wicked. This word booms
forth like thunder out of heaven into every human heart
where evil thoughts are germinating into wickedness,
proclaiming that the ways of man are before the eyes of
the Lord. A sinner's chief labour is to hide his sin: and
his labour is all lost. Darkness hideth not from God.
The Maker of the night is not blinded by its covering.
He who knows evil in its secret source is able to limit
the range of its operation. There is a special method by
which this is done. It is a principle of the divine
government that sin becomes the instrument of punishing
sinners. Both for restraint in this life, and final judg-
ment at last, this is the method employed. It is not
only true in general that the wicked shall not escape, but
also in particular that his own sin is the snare that takes
the transgressor, and the scourge that lashes him. The
maker and Ruler of all things has set in the system of
186 THE METHOD OF PROVIDENCE
the universe a self-acting apparatus, which is constantly
going for the encouragement of good and the repression
of evil. The providential laws do not, indeed, supply a
sufficient remedy for sin and its fruits; another physician
undertakes the cure; but these laws, notwithstanding,
exert a constant force in opposition to moral evil The
wind may be blowing steadily up the river, and yet a
ship on the river's bosom, though her sails are spread
and filled, may not be moving up, but actually drop-
ping down the stream. Why? Because the stream flows
so rapidly down, that the breeze in the sails, though a
force in the opposite direction, cannot overcome it. The
wind does not, in spite of the current, give the ship mo-
mentum upward, but it makes the ship's progress down-
ward much more slow. That force does not make the
ship move upward, but it prevents the ship from rushing
down with such a headlong velocity as to dash itself in
pieces. The providential laws are directed against the
current of man's sinful propensities, and tell in force
thereon. They do not, however, overcome, and neu-
tralize, and reverse these propensities. They were not so
intended. They impede the stream's velocity, and re-
strain its fury. The providential laws prevent the pre-
sent system from clashing itself into chaos, but they do
not supersede the redemption by Christ, and the renew-
ing by the Spirit.
"His own iniquities shall take the wicked." This is
an evident and awful truth. Retribution in the system
of nature, set in motion by the act of sin, is like the
"Virgin's kiss" in the Romish Inquisition. The step of
FOR RESTRAINING EVIL. 187
him who goes forward to kiss the image touches a secret
spring, and the statue's marble arms enclose him in a
deadly embrace, piercing his body through with a hun-
dred hidden knives. Verily a man under law to God
would need to "ponder his path," for the ground he
stands on is mined beneath him, and the first step from
virtue's firm footing aside into the yielding slough of vice,
sets unseen swords in motion which will tear his flesh,
and enter the marrow of his bones. "The Lord reigneth,
let the earth rejoice." He is to be praised for the right-
eousness of his government. His judgments will go into
a song as well as his mercy.
188 SEVEN HATEFUL THINGS.
XXXIV.
SEVEN HATEFUL THINGS.
"These six things doth the Lord hate: yea, seven are an abomination unto
him: A proud look, a lying tongue, and hands that shed innocent blood, an
heart that deviseth wicked imaginations, feet that be swift in running to mis-
chief, a false witness that speaketh lies, and he that soweth discord among
brethren."—vi. 16-19.
SOME of these hateful things are characteristics of par-
titular members in the body, and some are character-
istics generally of the man. I do not perceive the prin-
ciple of arrangement in the nature of the things; perhaps
the order is modified by the exigencies of Hebrew
poetry.
It is a claim which the Lord puts forth as the Maker
and Giver of all our faculties. These are some of the
marks by which His wisdom is visibly manifested in crea-
tion. He is displeased when they are plunged into lusts,
and employed as tools in the service of Satan. These eyes,
this tongue, these hands and feet, are instruments of sur-
passing skill and beauty. They declare God's glory as
articulately as the stars of heaven or the flowers of earth.
Who shall dare to corrupt the allegiance of these tribu-
taries, and enrol them rebels against the King of kings?
The Maker cares for all his works. To pervert any part
of them provokes Him to anger. Every purpose to
which the members of our body are put is noticed by the
All-seeing. If we are in spirit his dear children, we have
SEVEN HATEFUL THINGS. 189
opportunity to please God as often as we exercise any
faculty of our mind, or member of our frame.
There is one parallel well worthy of notice between,
the seven cursed things here, and the seven blessed things
in the fifth chapter of Matthew. In the Old Testament
the things are set down in the sterner form of what the
Lord hates, like the "thou shalt not" of the Decalogue.
In the New Testament the form is in accordance with
the gentleness of Christ. There we learn the good things
that are blessed, and are left to gather thence the oppo-
site evils that are cursed. But, making allowance for
the difference in form, the first and the last of the seven
are identical in the two lists. "The Lord hates a proud
look," is precisely equivalent to "blessed are the poor in
spirit;" and "he that soweth discord among brethren,"
is the exact converse of the "peacemaker." This coinci-
dence must be designed. When Jesus was teaching his
disciples on the Mount, he seems to have had in view the
similar instructions that Solomon had formerly delivered,
and while the teaching is substantially new, there is as
much of allusion to the ancient Scripture as to make it
manifest that the Great Teacher kept his eye upon the
prophets, and sanctioned all their testimony.
190 MOTHER'S LAW.
XXXV.
MOTHER'S LAW.
"My son, keep thy father's commandment, and forsake not the law of thy
mother: Bind them continually upon thine heart, and tie them about thy
neck. When thou goest, it shall lead thee; when thou sleepest, it shall keep
thee; and when thou awakest, it shall talk with thee. For the commandment
is a lamp; and the law is light; and reproofs of instruction are the way of
life: To keep thee from the evil woman, from the flattery of the tongue of a
strange woman."—vi. 20-24.
A FATHER'S commandment is the generic form, and is
usually employed to signify parental authority; but here,
in addition to the general formula, "the law of a mo-
ther" is specifically singled out. The first feature that
arrests attention in this picture is, that effects are at-
tributed to the law of a mother which only God's law
can produce. The inference is obvious and sure; it is
assumed that the law which a mother instils is the word
of God dwelling richly in her own heart, and that she
acts as a channel to convey that word to the hearts of
her children. To assume it as actually done, is the most
impressive method of enjoining it. Parents are, by the
constitution of things, in an important sense mediators
between God and their children for a time. What you
give them they receive; what you tell them they believe.
This is their nature. You should weigh well what law,
and what practice you impress first upon their tender
hearts. First ideas and habits are to them most import-
MOTHER'S LAW. 191
ant. These give direction to their course, and tone to
their character through life. Your children are by nature
let into you, so as to drink in what you contain; the
only safety is that you be by grace let into Christ, so
that what they get from you, shall, be, not what springs
within you, but what flows into you from the Spring-head
of holiness. To the children, it is the law of their mother,
and therefore they receive it; but in substance it is the
truth from Jesus, and to receive it is life. It is the law
which converts the soul and makes wise the simple,
poured through a mother's lips into infants' ears.
It is a sweet employment, and an honourable place, to
be mediators for our own children, bearing up to God
their need, and bringing down to them God's will. This
is a kind of mediation not derogatory to Christ. It is
no presumptuous priesthood; it is a humble ministry,
appointed and accepted by himself. It belongs to the
structure, both of the kingdom of nature, and the cove-
nant of grace. There is in the spiritual department
something corresponding to the birth, when the parent
travails again until the child be born to the Lord; and
there is here also, something corresponding to the nurs-
ing. Great must be the delight of a mother, herself re-
newed, when she becomes the channel through which the
"milk of the word" flows into her child (I Peter ii. 2);
more especially when she feels the child desiring that milk,
and with appetite drawing it for the sustenance of a new
life.
The injunction is in form addressed to a grown son,
that he forsake not in manhood his mother's law. It has
192 MOTHER'S LAW.
often been repeated that mothers have much in their
power, in virtue of their position beside the nascent
streams of life, where they are easily touched and turned.
The observation is both true and important. It is this
weight, cast into woman's otherwise lighter scale, that
turns the balance, and brings her to equality with man,
as to influence on the world. In spite of man's tyranny
on one side, and her own weakness on the other, woman
has thus in all countries, and even in the most adverse
circumstances, vindicated her right to a place by her hus-
band's side, and silently leaves her own impress as deeply
stamped as his upon the character of the coming gene-
ration.
In the pliant time of childhood, the character is
moulded chiefly by the mother. Many melting stories
are told on earth, and, I suppose, many more in heaven,
about the struggle carried on through youth and man-
hood, between present temptations and the memory of a
mother's law. Almighty grace delights to manifest itself
in weakness; and oft the echo of a woman's voice, rising
up in the deep recesses of memory, has put a whole legion
of devils to flight. Oh, woman, if it cannot be said,
great is thy faith, even although it should be small as a
grain of mustard seed, yet great is thy opportunity!
The Spring season and the soft ground are thine; in with
the precious seed; sow in hope, even though it be also
sometimes in tears; a glad harvest will come, here or
yonder; now or many days hence.
If parents give to their children a law which they get
not from God, their influence will be great for evil. As
MOTHER'S LAW. 193
to form, the law of evil, like the law of good, distils
chiefly in small dew-drops through the temper and tone.
Few parents have the hardihood directly to teach wicked-
ness to their offspring.
The mother should be much with the children herself.
Wherever that is impracticable, it is either a calamity
through the visitation of Providence, or a great fault
on the part of the parents. The difficulties, the mis-
takes, and the transgressions of mothers are different
according to their position in society, and the charac-
ter of their employment. Working-men should take care
not to lay too much on their wives. The mother, as
a general rule in this country, undergoes not the out-
door labour whereby the bread is won; but her hours are
longer, and her task equally outwearing. Let the hus-
band and father do his utmost by every contrivance to
lighten her labour, and cheer her heart. The wounded
spirit of a neglected wife cannot bear its own weight, far
less sustain with buoyant, smiling countenance, the con-
tinual tension of several children hanging about her, with
all their wants and all their quarrels, from morning till
night. A father, whatever the effort might cost him,
would not permit his infant child to suck a fevered nurse;
he should beware, as far as it lies with him, lest the
child's spirit should sustain a greater damage, by drawing
its mental nourishment from a mother fretting, despond-
ing, despairing.
In the case of mothers who live in affluence, perhaps
trifling is the most pressing danger. Don't cram your
children with unreal forms, like blown bladders, which
194 MOTHER’S LAW.
occupy all the room, and collapse at the first rude rub on
real life. In pity to your children, put something into
them that will last, and wear. Don't expend all your
energies in tying ornaments on them, to attract the gaze
of the curious on the street; get into them, if you can,
some of that ornament which is in the sight of God of
great price (1 Peter iii. 4). Mothers, if your hearts have
been quickened by the Spirit, take your fashions from
the word of God. Occupy yourselves mainly in moulding
the heart and life of your children, after the pattern
which Jesus showed and taught This will give you
most enjoyment at the time, and most honour afterward.
Hitherto we have been sketching from the reflection a
parent's duty, but the command of this passage is directly
addressed to the child. Very graphic and memorable is
the advice here tendered to a son. Bind a mother's laws
continually upon thine heart, and tie them about thy
neck. The idea no doubt refers to the Mosaic precept
about binding the law of the Lord on the person, which
in practice degenerated into the phylacteries of the Phari-
sees. From this strong figure the moral meaning stands
out in bold relief. If a piece of dress or a bag of money
hangs loosely upon you, in the jolting of the journey it
may drop off and be lost. Life is a rough journey. The
traveller must crush through many a thicket, and bear
many a shake. If that law of truth, which you get in
childhood through a mother's lips, be loosely held, it may
slip away. "Therefore we ought to give the more ear-
nest heed to the things which we have heard, lest at any
time we should let them slip" (Heb. ii. 1).
MOTHER'S LAW. 195
It is intimated in the 22d verse that this law will be
a close and kind companion to you all your days, if you
treat it aright. It will be with you when you lie down
to rest, and when you awake it will be there still, ready
to talk with you. It is beyond expression valuable to
have this law, impressed with all the authority of God
who gave it, and all the tenderness of a mother who
taught it, adhering to the memory through all the changes
of life. A friend in need, it is a friend indeed. Although
it be neglected for flatterers at night, when you awake it
meets you at the moment, and talks over its saving truth
again. Several kind offices of that true friend are enu-
merated here, and a crowning one is recorded at the close.
Bound and kept in the heart as a friend, that law will
prevail to keep the youth "from the strange woman."
Observing a great swelling wave rolling forward to de-
vour him, this faithful teacher imparts to the young voy-
ager on life's troubled sea, a principle which will bear him
buoyant over it. A slender vessel floats alone upon the
ocean, contending with the storm. A huge wave ap-
proaches, towering high above her hull. All depends on
how the ship shall take it. If she go under it, she will
never rise again: if she is so trimmed that her bows rise
with its first approaches, she springs lightly over it, and
gets no harm. The threatening billow passes beneath her,
and breaks with a growl behind, but the ship is safe. The
law and love of the Lord, taught by his mother in child-
hood, and maintaining its place yet as the friend of his
bosom and the ruler of his conscience, will give the youth
a spring upward proportionate to the magnitude of the
196 MOTHER'S LAW.
temptation coming on. Saved as by fire, with reference
to the greatness of the danger, yet surely saved, the victor,
as he leaps over the last wave and enters into rest, will
cry out to the welcomers who line the shore, "I am more
than conqueror through Him that loved me."
There must be many joyful meetings in the better land;
but when a son, saved by the truth his mother taught
him, enters into rest, and meets his mother there, the
joy—oh, one would think that ministering angels must
reverently stand back from it, as one too deep for them
to intermeddle with!
THE WORTH OF WISDOM. 197
XXXVI.
THE WORTH OF WISDOM.
"Receive my instruction, and not silver;
and knowledge rather than choice gold."—viii. 10.
IT is not necessary to inquire whether the wisdom that
cries here be an attribute of God, or the person of Em-
manuel. We may safely take it for both, or either. The
wisdom of God is manifested in Christ, and Christ is the
wisdom of God manifested. The cry, concentrated in the
Scriptures, and issuing forth through manifold providential
ministries, is public, "She crieth at the gates, at the entry
of the city;" impartial, "Unto you, O men, I call, and
my voice is to the sons of men;" perspicuous, "They are
plain to him that understandeth."
The very first warning uttered by this wisdom from
above is the repetition of a former word, "Receive my
instruction, and not silver; and knowledge rather than
choice gold." The repetition is not vain. Another stroke
so soon on the same place indicates that He who strikes
feels a peculiar hardness there. The love of money is a
root of evil against which the Bible mercifully deals many
a blow. There lies one of our deepest sores: thanks be
to God for touching it with "line upon line" of his heal-
ing word. When a man is pursuing a favourite object
with his whole heart, it is irksome to hear a warner's
word continually dropping on his unwilling ear, telling
198 THE WORTH OF WISDOM.
that the choice is foolish. A father who is merely fond
will discontinue the warning, that he may not displease
his wilful child. Not so our Father in heaven. He is
wisdom as well as love. He wields the same sharp word
until it pierce the conscience and turn the course. It is
only while you kick against this warning that it pricks
you: when you obey it, you will find it very good.
A ship bearing a hundred emigrants has been driven
from her course, and wrecked on a desert island far from
the tracks of men. The passengers get safe ashore with
all their stores. There is no way of escape, but there are
the means of subsistence. An ocean unvisited by ordinary
voyagers circles round their prison, but they have seed,
with a rich soil to receive, and a genial climate to ripen
it. Ere any plan has been laid, or any operation begun,
an exploring party returns to head-quarters reporting the
discovery of a gold mine. Thither instantly the whole
company resort to dig. They labour successfully day by
day, and month after month. They acquire and accumu-
late heaps of gold. The people are quickly becoming
rich. But the spring is past, and not a field has been
cleared, not a grain of seed committed to the ground.
The summer comes, and their wealth increases, but the
store of food is small. In harvest they begin to discover
that their heaps of gold are worthless. A cart-load of it
cannot satisfy a hungry child. When famine stares them
in the face, a suspicion shoots across their fainting hearts
that the gold has cheated them. They loathe the bright
betrayer. They rush to the woods, fell the trees, dig out
the roots, till the ground, and sow the seed. Alas, it is
THE WORTH OF WISDOM. 199
too late! Winter has come, and their seed rots in the
soil. They die of want in the midst of their treasures.
This earth is the little isle--eternity the ocean round
it. On this shore we have been cast, like shipwrecked
sailors. There is a living seed; there is an auspicious
spring-time: the sower may eat and live. But gold mines
attract us: we spend our spring there--our summer there:
winter overtakes us toiling there, with heaps of hoarded
dust, but destitute of the bread of life. Oh, that they
were wise, that they understood this, that they would con-
sider their latter end! Seek first the kingdom of God,
and let wealth come or go in its wake. He who, in the
market of a busy world, gains money and loses his soul,
will rue his bargain where he cannot cast it.
200 HATE EVIL.
XXXVII.
HATE EVIL.
"The fear of the Lord is to hate evil."—viii. 13.
HE formally defines here the fear of the Lord. The defi-
nition is needful, for the subject is often grievously mis-
understood. I know not an emotion more general among
men than terror of future retribution under a present sense
of guilt. To vast multitudes of men, this life is embit-
tered by the fear of wrath in the next. To dread the
punishment of sin seems to be the main feature in that
religion which under many forms springs native in the
human heart. This is the mainspring which sets and
keeps all the machinery of superstition agoing. It was a
maxim of heathen antiquity that "Fear made God." It
is chiefly by the dread of punishment that an alienated
human heart is compelled in any measure to realize the
existence of the Divine Being. In proportion as that
terror is diminished by a process of spiritual induration,
the very, idea of God fades away from the mind.
To fear retribution is not to hate sin. In most cases
it is to love it with the whole heart. It is a solemn sug-
gestion that even the religion of dark, unrenewed men is
in its essence a love of their own sins. Instead of hating
sin themselves, their grand regret is that God hates it.
If they could be convinced that the Judge would regard
it as lightly as the culprit, the fear would collapse like
HATE EVIL. 201
steam under cold water, and all the religious machinery
which it drove would stand still.
All the false religions that have ever desolated the
earth are sparks from the collision of these two hard
opposites—God's hate of sin, and man's love of it. As
they strike in the varied evolutions of life, strange fires
flash from the point of contact—fires that consume costly
and cruel sacrifices. In Christ only may this sore derange-
ment be healed. It is when sin is forgiven that a sinner
can hate it. Then is he on God's side. The two are
agreed, and "He is our peace" who hath taken away sin
by one sacrifice. Instead of hating God for his holiness,
the forgiven man instinctively loathes the evil of his own
heart, and looks with longing for the day when all things
in it shall be made new. Such is the blessed fruit of
pardon when it comes to a sinner through the blood of
Christ.
202 RANK AND RICHES.
XXXVIII.
RANK AND RICHES.
"Riches and honour are with me; yea, durable riches and righteousness. . . .
That I may cause those that love me to inherit substance; and I will fill their
treasures."—viii. 18, 21.
WISDOM from above cries in the gate, and enters into com-
petition with the world's most powerful attractions. In
the matters of rank and riches, the two strong cords by
which the ambitious are led, the two reciprocally support-
ing rails on which the train of ambition ever runs,—
even in these matters that seem the peculiar province of
an earthly crown, the Prince of Peace comes forth with
loud challenge and conspicuous rivalry. Titles of honour!
their real glory depends on the height and purity of the
fountain whence they flow. They have often been the
gift of profligate princes, and the rewards of successful
crime. At the best the fountain is low and muddy: the
streams, if looked at in the light of day, are tinged and
sluggish. Thus saith the Lord, "Honour is with me."
He who saith it is the King of glory. To be adopted into
the family of God,—to be the son or daughter of the Lord
Almighty,—this is honour. High born! we are all low
born, until we are born again, and then we are the chil-
dren of a King.
The riches which this King gives to support the dignity
of his nobles are expressly called "durable riches." This
is spoken to place them in specific contrast with those riches
RANK AND RICHES. 203
that make themselves wings and fly away. They are also
said to be coupled with righteousness for company. Surely
the Spirit who dictates this word knows what is in man,
and the wealth which man toils for. Its two grand de-
fects—the two worms that gnaw its yet living body—are
the unrighteousness that tinges the most of it, and the
uncertainty that cleaves to it all. The riches which the
King of saints imparts along with the patent of nobility
to support its dignity withal, are linked to righteousness,
and last for ever. Anointed by the Spirit, they are secure
from both the rust spots that eat into the heart of the
world's wealth. Pure and imperishable, they have been
by a double metaphor called "the silver springs of grace,
and the golden springs of glory."
The Lord will cause those that love him to "inherit
substance." Here is a withering glance from the coun-
tenance of the Truth himself at the cheat which the world
practises upon its dupes. Those who are rich in grace in-
herit substance; this is obliquely to say that those who
give themselves to the pursuit of wealth are chasing a
shadow. They are ever grasping at it; and it is ever
gliding from their grasp. Such is the dance through
which Mammon leads his misers. It is kept up through-
out all life's vain show, until the dancers drop into the
grave, and disappear in its darkness. They who seek the
substance shall find it; and as to the amount of their gain,
the promise is precise—"I will fill their treasures." This
is a great promise. It is made in a kingly style. There
is no limit. It will take much to fill these treasures;
for the capacity of the human spirit is very large. God
204 RANK AND RICHES.
moulded man after his own image, and when the creature
is empty, nothing short of his Maker will fill him again.
Although a man should gain the whole world, his appetite
would not be perceptibly diminished. The void would
be as great and the craving as keen as ever. Handfuls
are gotten on the ground, but a soulful is not to be had
except in Christ. "In him dwelleth all the fullness of the
Godhead bodily, and ye are complete (that is full) in him."
Hear ye him: "I will fill their treasures." "Even so,
come, Lord Jesus."
THE REDEEMER ANTICIPATING REDEMPTION. 205
XXXIX.
THE REDEEMER ANTICIPATING REDEMPTION.
"The Lord possessed me in the beginning of his way, before his works of old. I
was set up from everlasting, from the beginning, or ever the earth was. When
there were no depths, I was brought forth; when there were no fountains
abounding with water. Before the mountains were settled, before the hills
was I brought forth: while as yet he had not made the earth, nor the fields,
nor the highest part of the dust of the world. When he prepared the heavens,
I was there: when he set a compass upon the face of the depth when he
established the clouds above: when he strengthened the fountains of the deep:
when he gave to the sea his decree, that the waters should not pass his com-
mandment: when he appointed the foundations of the earth: then I was
by him, as one brought up with him: and I was daily his delight, rejoicing
always before him; rejoicing in the habitable part of his earth; and my
delights were with the sons of men."—viii. 22-31.
HITHERTO, in this chapter, we have found it possible to
speak of wisdom alternately as a property and a person.
Henceforth the terms compel us to keep by the personal
view. Towards the beginning something may be under-
stood as applying to divine wisdom in general; but
toward the close, the wisdom incarnate, in the person of
Emmanuel, stands singly and boldly out. If the terms
are not applied to Christ, they must be strained at every
turn. On this subject, we who enjoy the fuller releva-
tion, should remember that the Old Testament institutes
were necessarily shadows. Before Christ came in the
flesh, He could not be so clearly declared as now. Of
design He was presented to faith under a vail. More
could not have been done in consistency with the pur-
206 THE REDEEMER ANTICIPATING REDEMPTION.
pose of God, and the nature of things. In the book
of Proverbs by Solomon, it could not be written that
Jesus was born in Bethlehem, and died upon the cross.
One might profitably put the question to himself, if the
Spirit designed to make known something of the personal
history of Christ before His coming, how could He have
done so in plainer terms than this chapter contains
Regarding this divine person, we learn here, that being
with God before creation, He looked with special interest
upon the preparation of this world as the habitation of
men, and the scene of redemption. This gives us a
sketch of cosmogony, with the Eternal Word as spectator,
and for view-point the throne of God. Here is the
genesis of the world, as it appeared to Him, who even
then longed to redeem it from sin. Out of previous inde-
finite water-depths the mountains were lifted up and
settled. Out of a moving chaos the solid earth arose,
one grand step in the process of providing a domicile for
man. The heavens were prepared as a circle, by setting
a compass on the face of the deep. The clouds were
established above, and the home of the sea beneath was
strengthened to keep its raging inmate. By the same
law He established the clouds in the upper air, and fixed
the ocean in the nether caverns of the earth. If a heap
of solid water were poised on pillars over our heads, how
dangerous would our position be, and how uneasy our
life! But no such precarious propping is needed, when
the Omniscient would construct a habitation for man.
By heat, portions of the water are made lighter than air,
and forthwith the same law which keeps one part beneath
THE REDEEMER ANTICIPATING REDEMPTION. 207
the atmosphere raises another into its higher strata.
During this process of creation, the Son was with the
Father, and already taking his place as Mediator between
God and man. In verses 30th and 31st, these three things
are set in the order of the everlasting covenant (1.)
The Father well pleased with His Beloved, "I was daily
His delight" (2.) The Son delighting in the Father's
presence, "rejoicing always before him." (3.) That same
Son also looking with prospective delight to the scene
and subjects of his Redemption work, rejoicing in the
habitable parts of his earth, and my delights were with
the sons of men." On that early morning of time, you
see on the one side the High and Holy one, and on the
other the sons of men, with Jesus already in the midst,
laying his hand upon both.
It is a touching view of the Saviour's love. When
He saw the earth undergoing the process whereby it was
furnished as a habitation for man—the mountains up-
heaving, the valleys subsiding, the vapour arising, and
the clouds moving in the sky—He rejoiced in the pro-
spect of being man, for behoof of the fallen, on that
emerging world, nor letting go His hold until He had
borne back many sons and daughters into glory.
The exhortation which follows could not come from
any other lips than His own. None but Christ is able
to say, "whoso findeth me findeth life." From the New
Testament we know that He only is the Light, and that
the Light is the life of men. The counterpart, terror, is
equally His own:—"he that sinneth against me wrong-
eth his own soul; and all they that hate me love death."
208 THE REDEEMER ANTICIPATING REDEMPTION.
There is no, salvation in any other, and they who refuse
or neglect Him cast themselves away. The perdition of
the lost is their own doing, for redemption is nigh. "Ye
have kindled a fire in mine anger," said the prophet
(Jer. vii. 4), "which shall burn for ever." A child
or an idiot may kindle a fire which all the city cannot
quench. In spite of their utmost efforts; it might destroy
both the homes of the poor and the palaces of majesty.
So a sinner, though he cannot do the least good, can do
the greatest evil. The Almighty only can save him, but
he can destroy himself.
THE MARRIAGE SUPPER FOR THE KING'S SON. 209
XL.
THE MARRIAGE SUPPER FOR THE KING'S SON.
"Wisdom hath builded her house, she hath hewn out her seven pillars; she
hath killed her beasts; she hath mingled her wine; she hath also furnished
her table. She hath sent forth her maidens: she crieth upon the highest
places of the city, Whoso is simple, let him turn in hither: as for him that
wanteth understanding, she saith to him, Come, eat of my bread, and drink
of the wine which I have mingled. Forsake the foolish, and live; and go in
the way of understanding."—ix. 1-6.
IN the preceding chapter, Wisdom appears, forming
worlds, and peopling them; anticipating the need of
man, and covenanting a sufficient remedy. There Wis-
dom stood, and spoke from the high stage of the heavens;
here we get a nearer view. The Word has come nigh.
His habitation is among men. The colours for the pio-
ture here are taken from things that we know. The
head of her own family, sovereign of her own realm,
builds her house, provides her feast, sends out the invita-
tion, and presses the invited guests to come. From the
same materials, and with the same design, the Word of
God framed similar parables, when He "was made flesh,
and dwelt among men."
1. The house.—The frame is set up from everlasting,
well ordered in all things and sure. The tried foundation
is the Lord our righteousness. The temple which Solo-
mon built, and the altar within it, whereon he sacrificed,
were emblems of this house eternal. The seven pillars
210. THE MARRIAGE SUPPER FOR THE KING’S SON
indicate, in oriental form, that its supports and ornaments
are perfect in strength and beauty. The seven things
(vi. 17-19) which the Lord hates seem to be the clearing
of the rubbish away from the foundations; and the seven
beatitudes (Matt. v.) the pillars of positive truth which
the great master builder erected there. He removeth the
first, that He may establish the second. He takes the
curse away, and brings the blessing in its stead, seven-
fold each. Both the curse which Jesus bears away, and
the blessing which He brings, are measureless.
2. The feast prepared.—The provisions of God's house
are wholesome, various, plentiful. Whatever the covenant
provides, the true church diligently sets forth in the ordi-
nances before the people. The word, preaching, prayer,
the sacraments, the service of song: a feast of fat things
is provided. "Blessed are they that hunger, for they
shall be filled." In the Father's house there is enough
and to spare, in the Father's bosom a weeping welcome:
prodigals perishing, arise and go.
3. The inviting messengers—These correspond to the
servants sent forth by the King in the New Testament
parable. To keep up the idea of a matron householder,
the messengers are here called maidens, but obviously in
both cases they are the ambassadors whom Christ em-
ploys to carry the message of his mercy to their brethren.
They have no strength, and no authority. All the power
they wield lies in the Spirit that moves them, and the
good news which they bring. Gentleness and purity are
the qualifications most in request for those who bear the
invitation from Divine Wisdom to a thoughtless world.
THE MARRIAGE. SUPPER. FOR THE KING'S SON. 211
4. The invited guests.—The message is specially ad-
dressed to the simple. Those who are conscious of igno-
rance are ever most ready to learn the wisdom from above.
Empty vessels fill best when plunged into the fountain.
Those who are filled already, with their marrying and
giving in marriage, their cattle markets, and their landed
estates, send their excuse for absence, and do not them-
selves come to wisdom's feast. From hedges and lanes
of conscious nakedness and need, the marriage festival is
furnished with guests. To the poor the Gospel is preached,
and the poor in spirit gladly listen, whether they are
clothed in purple or in rags.
5. The argument by which the invitation is supported
is positive, "Come, eat of my bread, and drink of the
wine which I have mingled;" and negative, "Forsake
the foolish and live."—The bread and the wine are the
provisions of our Father's house, the plenty on a Father's
board, every word of God for the prodigal to feed on
when he returns; but the grand turning point is to get
the prodigal to break off from that which destroys him.
Forsake the foolish,—the foolish place, and the foolish
company, and the foolish employments; and what strong
reason do you employ to induce the slave of lust to
wrench himself away, although he should leave his
right arm behind him? Reason! It is his life. Life
and death eternal hang in the balance of this decision.
The Lord by his prophet in the time of old, uttered in
the ears of men the brief command, "Turn ye," and fol-
lowed it up with the awful argument, "Why will ye die?"
The same Lord, in his own person breathed from his
212 THE MARRIAGE SUPPER FOR THE KING'S SON.
breaking heart the tender plaint, "Ye will not come unto
me that ye might have life." There, from His own lips,
you have a command to come, and a reason for coming.
The argument to enforce his invitation is life—from Him-
self in Himself life that will never die. This Scripture,
too, speaks from Him and like Him. It is the resound
of his own words, afar on these heights of ancient pro-
phecy, "Forsake the foolish and live." By line upon
line throughout all the Bible He is saying, Ye must be
separate from them, or Me.
REPROOF. 213
XLI.
REPROOF.
"He that reproveth a scorner getteth to himself shame: and he that rebuketh a
wicked man getteth himself a blot. Reprove not a scorner, lest he hate thee:
rebuke a wise man, and he will love thee. Give instruction to a wise man,
and he will be yet wiser: teach a just man, and he will increase in learning."
—ix. 7-9.
THE subject is obvious, interesting, important, urgent.
The supposed case is of frequent occurrence. It is seldom
well met. We need wise counsel to guide us in this
difficult step of the daily life-course. The lesson here is
about Reproof; how to give it, and how to take it. Re-
proofs are like sharp knives, very needful and very useful;
but they should not be in the hands of children. Those
who handle them rashly will wound both themselves and
their neighbours. We are all, by the constitution of
nature, much in contact with others. We see their faults:
they see ours. Reproofs are often needed and often
given. Sometimes they are unskilfully administered, and
sometimes unfaithfully withheld. This is a matter that
bulks largely in life. Great practical difficulties surround
it. It is a subject on which we need to be instructed.
Some of its chief regulating principles are concisely given
here.
It is not difficult to realize the character of the scorner,
who is the principal figure in the scene. The man is in
a state of nature. He has no spiritual life or light. He
14 REPROOF.
is ignorant, but thinks himself knowing, and is proud of
his skill. He has no modesty, and no tenderness for
others. He is a blusterer. He is hollow sounding brass:
a tinkling cymbal. He is surrounded by a knot of com-
panions who ignorantly applaud, or at least silently listen
to him. Thus encouraged, he speaks great swelling words
of vanity. He magnifies himself. As he proceeds with
his display, he affects a superiority to scruples of con-
science. He laughs at the good, and at goodness. He
boasts of evil. Accustomed to exaggerate everything, he
exaggerates even his own wickedness. He scatters blas-
phemies, and is intoxicated by the wonder wherewith the
circle regards his boldness. He rejoiceth in iniquity. He
glories in his shame. You are a spectator of the scene:
you have heard the blasphemer. You fear God, and are
jealous for his honour. You observe, moreover, that some
youths are there, ignorantly wondering after this beast,
and in danger of learning to count such conduct manly.
You grow warm—indignant. At last, after some daring
and foulmouthed sally from the scorner, you break silence,
and interpose a reproof. In God's name, and out of
God's word, you charge him with his sin, and challenge
him to the judgment. You have reproved a scorner, and
you will probably then and there get to yourself shame.
You have trampled on a snake, and it is his nature to
spurt forth his venom on you. But the circumstances
are even more formidable than the nature of the man.
His place as ringleader is at stake. Unless he retrieve
his honour in their presence, the ring of ruffians will melt
away. He is a god among them; but if his thunders
REPROOF. 215
are silent now, they will lay no more incense on his altar.
Your stroke has stirred up every motive within the
scorner, to redouble his blasphemy. He is shut up either
to submit, to you as a conqueror, or to assault you as a
foe. The first he will not, and therefore the second he
must do. He raises the laugh against you, and against
that blessed name which you invoked. Such is the filthi-
ness of the weapons employed, that you cannot maintain
the combat. To reply would be to defile your own
tongue. You are obliged to be silent, because, if you
should follow him, you could not maintain your footing
on the slimy path. Truth is silent before falsehood and
filth, not from her weakness or their strength, but from
the place and circumstances in which the challenge was
given and the battle accepted. His pride is touched:
he knows that his chieftainship is conclusively forfeited,
if he is seen to quail before a saint. Expressly, he will
"hate thee." You have struck a piece of wood while it
is lying hollow, and instead of cutting it, yourself will be
injured by the rebounding blow. There is a possibility
of approaching it carefully and turning it skilfully, and
getting it laid solid before you strike. Then both you
will sever it, and it will not rebound on you.
If you could find the scorner alone, his courage would
not be so great. Conscience makes cowards of us all.
Whisper softly into his ear your solemn reproof. Tell
him that he is trampling under foot that blood of the
covenant which alone can wash his sin away; and if you
tell him this weeping, your word will go the deeper in.
There are many arts by which a wise reprover might
216 REPROOF.
approach the man on the unguarded side. Find a soft
spot about him, or make one by deeds of kindness. Touch
him so as not to stir the evil spirit at the first, and per-
haps the evil spirit may not be stirred at all. If you
gain a brother thus, it is a bloodless victory. The joy is
of the purest kind that lies within our reach on earth.
It brings you as closely into sympathy as a creature can
be, with the satisfaction of the Redeemer when He sees
of the travail of his soul.
But in all this we have in view chiefly the scorner him-
self. A witness for Christ may be so situated, that he ought
to reprove the scorner, although he knows that the scorn-
ing will be redoubled by the reproof. It may be more
important, for the sake of others, to strike in, although
the evil doer should in judgment be more hardened.
These principles regarding the blasphemer's tendency are
most important. We should be aware of the laws that
regulate all cases, and the circumstances that modify them
in each; but no absolute rule can be laid down. We
must get daily direction, as well as daily bread. Two
things are needful—the swelling spring, and the well-
directed channel for the stream to flow in. There should
be jealousy for the Lord's honour, and compassion for
men's souls like a well-spring ever in the heart; and then
the outgoing effort should be with all the wisdom of the
serpent, and the harmlessness of the dove; and "if any
lack wisdom, let him ask of God."
Hitherto we have handled only the half of the lesson,
and that the harsher half. Its complement is a kindlier
thing: "rebuke a wise man, and he will love thee."
REPROOF. 217
There is a double blessing; one to him who gets reproof,
and one to him who gives it. Is it, then, the mark of a
wise man that he loves the reprover who tells him his
fault? Judging by this test, we are forced into the con-
clusion that there are not many wise men amongst us.
To tell a friend his fault is too often the signal for a
breach of friendship. On both sides, error is frequent,
and wisdom rare. But wisdom here is precious in pro-
portion to its rarity. It will repay all the labour of
seeking and striving for it. The wisdom may be possessed
on either side alone, or on both together. The Lord's meek
and poor afflicted ones may get good from a reproof, al-
though the reprover sinned in giving it: on the other
hand, the witness of evil may rightly reprove it, and so
keep his own conscience clear, although the evil doer have
not grace to profit by the reproof. On both sides the
wisdom is difficult; but when it is found, it is very gain-
ful. “Harmless as doves;" that is the word of Him who
knows what is in man. The froth of human passion
swells and spurts out, and impudently calls itself faithful-
ness. When Samuel was instructed to reprove Saul for
his sin, "he cried unto the Lord all night," and uttered
his faithful reproof in the morning (1 Sam xv. 11). Such
a preparation would take none of its strength away, and
greatly add to its softness. For rightly receiving reproof,
the short and simple rule is, be more concerned to get
the benefit of the reproof, than to wreak vengeance on
the reprover. He who should habitually act on this plain
maxim, would grow rich by gathering the gold which
other people trample under their feet.
218 REPROOF.
"Give instruction to a wise man, and he will be yet
wiser," is an interesting fact under the great gospel law,
“to him that hath shall be given, and he shall have more
abundance.” Some of the true wisdom is a nucleus round
which more will gather. A little island once formed in
the bed of a great river, tends continually to increase.
Everything adds to its bulk. The floods of winter de-
posit soil on it. The sun of summer covers it with
herbage, and consolidates its surface. Such is wisdom
from above, once settled in a soul. It makes all things
work together for good to its possessor.
THE TALENT AND ITS PRODUCE. 219
XLII.
THE TALENT AND ITS PRODUCT.
"If thou be wise, thou shalt be wise for thyself:
but if thou scornest, thou alone shalt bear it."—ix. 12.
THE principle involved in the parable of the Talents (Mat
xxv.) is embodied in the intimation, "If thou be wise,
thou shalt be wise for thyself." The talents are in the
first instance not won by the servant, but given by the
master. So wisdom is specifically the gift of God (James
i. 5). Those servants who use the talents well, are per-
mitted to retain for their own use both the original capi-
tal, and all the profit that has sprung from it: whereas
he who made no profit is not allowed to retain the capi-
tal. Thus the Giver acts in regard to the wisdom which
is His own to bestow. The wisdom, with all the benefit it
brings, is your own. Every instance of wise acting is an
accummulation made sure for your own benefit. It can-
not be lost. It is like water to the earth. The drop of
water that trembled on the green leaf, and glittered in
the morning sun, seems to be lost when it exhales in the
air unseen; but it is all in safe keeping. It is held in
trust by the faithful atmosphere, and will distil as dew
upon the ground again, when and where it is needed
most. Thus will every exercise of wisdom, although fools
think it is thrown away, return into your own bosom,
when the day of need comes round.
220 THE TALENT AND ITS PRODUCT.
Equally sure is the law that the evil which you do
survives and comes back upon yourself: "If thou scornest,
thou alone shalt bear it." The profane word, the impure
thought, the unjust transaction—they are gone like the
wind that whistled past, and you seem to have nothing
more to do with them. Nay, but they have more to do
with you. Nothing is lost out of God's world, physical
or moral. When a piece of paper is consumed in the
fire, and vanishes in smoke, it seems to have returned to
nothing. If it bore the only evidence of your guilt, you
would be glad to see its last corner disappear ere the
officers of justice came in. All the world cannot restore
that paper, and read those dreaded lines again. The
criminal breathes freely now; no human tribunal can
bring home his crime. But as the material of the paper
remains undiminished, in the mundane system, so the
guilt which it recorded abides, held in solution, as it were,
by the moral atmosphere which encircles the judgment-
seat of God. Uniting with all of kindred essence that
has been generated in your soul, it will be precipitated by
a law; and when it falls, it will not miss the mark.
Thou alone shalt bear it. Those who have not found
refuge in the Sin-Bearer, must bear their own sin. Sins,
like water, are not annihilated, although they go out of
our sight. They fall with all their weight either on the
sin-doer, or on the Almighty Substitute. Alas for the
man who is "alone" when the reckoning comes!
THE PLEASURES OF SIN. 221
XLIII.
THE PLEASURES OF SIN.
"A foolish woman is clamorous; she is simple, and knoweth nothing. For
she sitteth at the door of her house, on a seat in the high places of the city,
to call passengers who go right on their ways: whoso is simple, let him turn
in hither: and as for him that wanteth understanding, she saith to him, Stolen
waters are sweet, and bread eaten in secret is pleasant. But he knoweth
not that the dead are there; and that her guests are in the depths of hell."—
ix. 13-18.
WE have heard Wisdom's cry, and learned what are his
offers to men: the next scene exhibits Wisdom's great
rival standing in the same wide thoroughfare of the
world, and bidding for the youth who throng it. The
evil is personified, that it may be set more visibly
forth, in all its deformity, over against the loveliness of
truth. All that is contrary to Christ, and dangerous to
souls, is gathered up and individualized, as an abandoned
woman lying in wait for unwary passengers, baiting her
barbed hook with the pleasures of sin, and dragging her
victims down the steep incline to hell. One of the foul.
spirits that assail and possess men is singled out and
delineated, and this one represents a legion in the back-
ground.
The portrait is easily recognized. We have met with
it before, both in the pages of this book, and in other
places of the Scripture. It is no fancy picture,—it is
drawn from life. Neither is it a peculiarity of Eastern
222 THE PLEASURES OF SIN.
manners, or of ancient times. It concerns us, otherwise
it would not have met us here. The plague is as ram-
pant in our streets, as it is represented to be in the Pro-
verbs. Mankind have sat for the picture: there is no
mistake in the outline; there is no exaggeration in the
colouring. It is a glass held up for the world to see it-
self in. Dark as the lines are in which the importunate,
shameless solicitations of a wanton woman are drawn on
this page, they are not darker than the reality, as seen in
our crowded thoroughfares by day and by night. The
vulture, with unerring instinct, scents the carrion, and
flutters round the place where it lies, until an oppor-
tunity occur of alighting upon it and satiating her appe-
tite on the loathsome food. These vultures would not
hover around our exchanges, and banks, and warehouses,
and manufactories, unless the carrion that feeds them
were scented there. While we have cause to thank God
for the measure of truth, and love, and purity, that His
word and Spirit have transfused through our families, we
have cause also to weep in secret that so many whited
sepulchres glitter pharisaically in the sun of the world's
prosperity, while rankest corruption revels within. We
again cry, "with a great and exceeding bitter cry," to all
that is morally sound in society, resolutely to withdraw their
countenance from the impure, however great their wealth
may be, and however high their position in the world.
The specific occupation of the foolish woman is "to
call passengers who go right on their ways," and per-
suade them to turn aside for her "stolen waters." A
multitude of the young, issuing from their parents' homes,
THE PLEASURES OF SIN. 223
where they have been trained in virtue, start in life's
wide path, with the intention of going "right on;" and
of these, alas, how many are suddenly enticed aside,
entangled in the net, and lost! Beware of the turning
aside. Let not a youth ever once or for a moment go
where he would be ashamed to be found by his father
and his mother. "Forsake the foolish and live." Go not
at her bidding aside; "the dead are there."
But although the argument that stolen waters are
sweet is, for the sake of vivid representation, put into
the mouth of a "foolish woman," we must understand by
the figure all evil—the devil, the world, and the flesh,
whatever form they may assume, and whatever weapons
they may employ. The one evil spirit dragged forth
from the legion, and exposed, is intended not to conceal
but to open up the generic character of the company.
From above, Divine Wisdom cries (v. 4), "Whoso is
simple, let him turn in hither;" from beneath, a multi-
form lust, that is earthly, sensual, devilish, cries, "Whoso
is simple, let him turn in hither." There they are, con-
spicuously pitted against each other, the two great rivals
for possession of a human heart. No man can serve two
masters. No heart can follow both of these drawings.
No man can choose both death and life, both darkness
and light Every one must go this way or that. Every
sinner must turn his back either upon his Saviour or
upon his sin. In this life every human being is placed
between these two rival invitations, and every human
being in this life yields to the one or to the other.
The power of sin lies in its pleasure. If stolen waters
224 THE PLEASURES OF SIN.
were not sweet, none would steal the waters. This in
part of the mystery in which our being is involved by
the fall. It is one of the most fearful features of our
case. Our appetite is diseased. If our bodily appetite
were so perverted that it should crave for what is poison-
ous, and loathe wholesome food, we would not give our-
selves up to each random inclination. The risk of death
would be great, and, valuing life, we would set a guard
on the side of danger. But in man fallen, there is a dis-
eased relish for that which destroys. Sin, which is the
death of a man's soul, is yet sweet to the man's taste.
There is much to appal us, in this state of things. It
should make us walk circumspectly, not as fools. When
the redeemed of the Lord shall have come to Zion, with
songs of joy, they may indulge to the full unexamined,
unrestricted, all their tastes. There will be no sinful
things to taste there, and no taste for sinful things.
There will neither be the appetite nor its food. Nothing
shall enter that defileth. But here, and now, it should
make us tremble to know that there is an appetite in our
nature which finds sweetness in sin. Oh wretched man
that I am, who shall deliver me from myself? God's
children, while in the body, watch their sinful appetites,
and endeavour to weaken and wither them by starvation.
They who give rein to the appetite are daily more brought
under its power. It grows by what it feeds on. If sin
had no sweetness, it might be easier to keep from sinning.
Satan might fish in vain, even in this sea of time, if he
had no bait on his hook that is pleasant to nature. Beware
of the bait, for the barb is beneath.
THE PLEASURES OF SIN. 225
It is only in the mouth that the stolen water is sweet:
afterwards it is bitter. Sin has pleasures, but they last
only for a season, and that a short one. On the side of
sin that lies next a sinner, Satan has plastered a thin
coating of pleasure: a deceived soul licks that sweetness,
deaf to the warning that behind it an eternal bitterness
begins. If a grand bazaar were erected, filled from end
to end with sweetmeats of every form, and laid out in
the most fascinating aspects, but all poisoned so that to
swallow one were death; and if it were a necessity laid
on you to introduce your little child by a door at one
end, and let him traverse the enticing avenues of death
alone, till from without you should receive him at the
other; you would warn your child with a voice of agony
that would thrill through his frame, not to touch, not to
taste, until, beyond the precincts of the pest house, he
should be safe in your arms again. Notwithstanding all
your warning, you would stand trembling, perhaps de-
spairing, as you waited at the appointed door till your
child emerged. You would scarcely expect that your
little one would, all the way through, resist the attrac-
tions of the poisoned sweets. Such are the world's sweet-
ened death-drops to us; and such, as to infantile thought-
lessness, are we in the world. Oh, for the new tastes of
the new nature! "Blessed are they that hunger and
thirst after righteousness." When a soul has tasted and
seen that the Lord is gracious, the foolish woman beckons
you toward her stolen waters, and praises their sweets in
vain. The new appetite drives out the old.
One part of the youth's danger lies in his ignorance.
226 THE PLEASURES OF SIN.
He knoweth not, when he is invited to the place of
pleasure, "he knoweth not that the dead are there, and
that her guests are in the depths of hell." What he
knows not, Divine wisdom tells. He can tell us what is
there, and He only. Who knoweth the power of God's
anger? Only Christ. None other can warn us what
the guests of the strange woman suffer in the depths.
The saved cannot tell, for thither they never go. The
lost cannot, for they never return thence. Only He who
bowed under wrath, and rose again in righteousness, can
give warning as to the bitterness that lies behind the
momentary sweet of sin.
That section of the Proverbs which closes here is cha-
racterized throughout by varied, pointed, unsparing re-
buke of prevailing sins. We have gathered some lessons
from this page of the Bible, and plied our lever to press
them in. We desire humbly to cast the effort, so far as
it has hitherto proceeded, on the quickening Spirit for
power. Those who have escaped these corruptions,
through the power of grace, will have their gratitude
stirred anew by a backward glance on the bondage; the
young and inexperienced may, by the forewarnings, be
better forearmed ere the heat of their battle come; but
the objects of chief interest, while these reproofs are re-
sounding from the word, are those who have been snared
and taken—who have sunk, and are lying yet in the
deep mire. Sins are sweet, and therefore men take
them; they are soporific, and therefore those who have
taken them are inclined to lie still.
A man has fallen into the sea and sunk: he soon
THE PLEASURES OF SIN. 227
becomes unconscious. He is living yet, but locked in a
mysterious sleep. Meantime, some earnest neighbours
have hastily made preparations, and come to the rescue.
From above, not distinguishing objects on the bottom,
they throw down their creeper at a venture, and draw.
The crooked tooth of the iron instrument comes over the
face of the drowning man, and sticks fast in the dress of
his neck, It disturbs the sleeper, but it brings him up.
It scratches his skin, but saves his life. The saved, when
he comes to himself, lavishes thanks on his saviours,
mentioning not, observing not, the hardness of their in-
strument, or the roughness of its grasp. Beneath the
surface of society, sunk unseen in a sea of sin, lie many
helpless men. Slumbering unconscious, they know not
where they are. They dream that they are safe and
well. They have lost the sense of danger, and the power
of crying for help. Help comes, however, without their
cry. Over the place where we know the drowning lie,
we have thrown these sharp instruments down. We
have been raking the bottom with them in all directions.
If the case had been less serious, we might have operated
more gently. If any be drawn up, they will not find
fault with the hardness of the instrument that reached
and rescued them. The slumbering may wish it were
soft to slip over them, but the saved are glad that it
was sharp to go in.
When a world of human kind lay senseless in a sea of
sin, one wakeful eye pitied them, and one Almighty arm
was stretched out to save. The Highest bowed down to
man's low estate. He sent His word, and healed them;
228 THE PLEASURES OF SIN.
but the word was quick and powerful. The sleepers cry
out when first they feel it in their joints and marrow.
The evil spirit in them still resists the coming of Jesus
as a torment; but when they are restored to their right
mind, they sit at that Saviour's feet, and love Him for
His faithfulness.
THE PLACE AND POWER OF A SON. 229
XLIV.
THE PLACE AND POWER OF A SON.
"The Proverbs of Solomon. A wise son maketh a glad father:
but a foolish son is the heaviness of his mother."—x. 1
"THE Proverbs of Solomon." Hitherto, although the
style has been in the main proverbial, there has been a
large measure of connection and continuity in the argu-
ment. At this stage we enter a new section of the book.
Here we touch the edge of a vast miscellaneous treasure,
contrived or collected by Solomon, and transmitted in
safe keeping down to our own day. It is like a heap of
wheat; the grains are small, but they are many; they lie
close together, and yet each is a separate whole; they
are fair to look upon, and good for food.
The first proverb is a characteristic specimen of its
kind. Every reader may see at a glance how its words
and clauses are poised upon each other, so as both to con-
dense and reiterate the sentiment—both to retain it on
the memory and impress it on the mind. "A wise son
maketh a glad father." Do you hear this, young man?
It is in your power to make your father glad, and God
expects you to do it. Here is au object for your ambi-
tion; here is an investment that will ensure an imme-
diate return. Come now, make your choice. Whether
will you try, to please these fools who banter you here,
or to gladden your father's heart that is yearning for you
230 THE PLACE AND POWER OF A SON.
there? He loved you in your childhood, and toiled for
you all the best of his days. He was proud of you when
you promised well, and clings fondly to the hope that
you will be something yet. These companions that come
between you and him—what have they done for you,
and what would they do for you to-morrow, if you were
in distress? They would desert you, and mind their
own pleasures. They have never lost a night's rest by
watching at your sick bed, and never will. But your
father—what has he done, and yet will do? The com-
mand of God to you is that you gladden that father, and
not grieve him. Your conscience countersigns that com-
mand now. Obey.
In former lessons we found out where the root of wis-
dom lies—in the fear of the Lord: here is one of its
sweetest fruits—A son's wisdom is a father's joy! Alas,
how often do we see a son in manhood becoming a bur-
den which a father must bear, instead of a support that
his weary heart may lean upon! A heavier burden this
than was the helpless child.
"A foolish son is the heaviness of his mother." It is
difficult to deal with this word. The conception is easy,
and the examples manifold; but though it is easy to
comprehend, it is hard to express it. It is an almost un-
utterable thing. A son who breaks his mother's heart—
can this earth have any more irksome load to bear!
Foolish son, do you ever allow yourself to think that you
are bruising the bosom which you lay upon when you
were a helpless infant? It is not your mother only with
whom you have to deal. God put it into her heart to
THE PLACE AND POWER OF A SON. 231
love you, to watch over you night and day, to bear
with all your waywardness, to labour for you to the
wasting of her own life. All this is God's law in her
being. Her Maker and yours knew that by putting
these instincts into her nature for your good, he was lay-
ing on her a heavy burden. But He is just. He in-
tended that she should be repaid. His system provides
compensation for outlay. There are two frailties—a
frailty of infancy, and a frailty of age. God has under-
taken, in the constitution of his creatures, to provide for
both. Where are his laws of compensation written?
The counterpart laws answer each other from two cor-
responding tablets, His own hand-work both, as the curse
and blessing echoed and re-echoed alternate from the
sides of Ebal and Gerizim, when first the Hebrews en-
tered the promised land. One is written on the fleshly
table of the heart, and the other on the table of the ten
commandments—both, and both alike by the finger of
God. A mother's love! You do not read in the Deca-
logue, "mother, take care of your infant." So deeply is
that law graven on a mother's heart, that God our Savi-
our compares to it His own everlasting love to His re-
deemed (Isaiah xlix. 15). To that law the safety of in-
fancy has been intrusted by the author of our being.
The bed provided for the child is its mother's breast.
There is the provision for humanity's first period of feeble-
ness, and where lies the security for the next? It is
partly in nature too; but it would appear that He who
knows what is in man, would not confide to that instinct
the care of an aged parent. He spoke the command
232 THE PLACE AND POWER OF A SON.
from the mountain that burned with fire; He engraved
that command on the tables of the covenant, "Honour
thy father and thy mother, that thy days may be long."
There, foolish son, there is thy mother's title to her turn
of cherishing. You dare not dispute her right, and you
cannot withstand her Avenger. There will be compen-
sation. All God's laws re-adjust themselves, and woe to
the atoms of dust that are caught resisting, and crushed
between their dreadful wheels. How much more per-
fect and uniform is the parent's instinctive love than the
child's commanded obedience, may be seen in all the
experience of life, and is well embodied in the Spanish
proverb, "One father can support ten sons, but ten sons
cannot support one father."
I never knew a mother. I have been an orphan,
almost from the first opening of my eyes. If at any
time my mind breaks loose from sober submission to my
lot, and wanders into wishes for what cannot be, the
keenest longing of my heart is that I had a mother.
One of the fountains of affection within me has been
sealed up from my birth; I would fain have an object to
let it flow upon. Oh, how sweet it must be to a son in
his manhood strength to be the gladness of his mother!
Foolish sons are compassing sea and land to obtain plea-
sure, and trampling under their feet untasted a pleasure
stronger, sweeter far, even to nature, than that which
they vainly chase.
Let sons who are not prodigal—who seem to be fairly
doing their filial duty, remember that their time for that
duty is short and uncertain. Let those who now love
THE PLACE AND POWER OF A SON. 233
and cherish a mother much, love and cherish her more.
Occupy the talent, lest it be taken. Be yet more tender
of your mother while you have her, lest you suffer by
unavailing regret when it is too late—lest there should
be thorns in your pillow the first night you lie down,
after her voice is silent, and her eyes closed.
234 DILIGENT IN BUSINESS.
XLV.
DILIGENT IN BUSINESS.
"He becometh poor that dealeth with a slack hand:
but the hand of the diligent maketh rich."—x. 4.
THIS rule applies alike to the business of life, and the
concerns of the soul. Diligence is necessary to the lay-
ing up of treasures, either within or beyond the reach of
rust. Debts will rise above the gains, corruptions will
gain ground on the graces, unless there be a watchful
heart and a diligent hand.
The law holds good in common things. The earth
brings forth thorns, instead of grapes, unless it be culti-
vated by the labour of man. This is an infliction because
of sin, and yet it has been turned into a blessing. Even
human governments have learned so to frame the neces-
sary punishment as to make it a benefit to the culprit.
The Governor of the nations did this before them. A
world bringing forth food spontaneously might have
suited a sinless race, but it would be unsuitable for man-
kind as they now are. If all men had plenty without
labour, the world would not be fit for living in. The
fallen cannot be left idle with safety to themselves. In
every country, and under every kind of government, the
unemployed are the most dangerous classes. Thus the
necessity of labour has become a blessing to man. It is
better for us that diligent application is necessary to suc-
DILIGENT IN BUSINESS. 235
cess, than if success had been independent of care and
toil. The maxim has passed into a proverb among our-
selves, "If you do not wait on your business, your busi-
ness will not wait on you."
That diligence is necessary to progress in holiness, is
witnessed by all the word of God, and all the experi-
ence of His people. Indeed, it would be a libel on the
character of the Divine economy to imagine that the ten-
der plant of grace would thrive in a sluggard's garden.
The work is difficult; the times are bad. He who
would gain in godliness, must put his soul into the
business. But he who puts his soul into the business will
grow rich. Labour laid out here is not lost. Those who
strive, and strive lawfully, will win a kingdom. When
all counts are closed, he who is rich in faith is the richest
man.
236 POSTHUMOUS FAME.
XLVI.
POSTHUMOUS FAME.
"The memory of the just is blessed:
but the name of the wicked shall rot."—x. 7.
SOME are remembered for good, some are remembered for
evil, and some are forgotten soon. This is a feature
which is set in the machinery of God's moral government,
as a power impelling to righteousness. How many mo-
tives good doing are in providence brought to bear
upon man! Besides all that pertain to our own life on
earth, and the higher hopes that look up to heaven, a
power from the future of this present world is directed
now upon a human heart to aid in keeping it from
wickedness. It seems an instinct of humanity to desire
honour and dread disgrace to the memory after death.
Like other good things, it may be overlaid and smothered
by a great excess of vice; but its operation is very general,
and all in some measure are sensible of it. Few are en-
tirely indifferent to the reputation in which they shall be
held among men after their departure. The desire to
diminish the depth of the stigma on their name, is found
in the greatest criminals when their end is near. To
observe the memory of a bad man execrated by the
people is, as far as it goes, in favour of goodness. "Je-
roboam the son of Nebat, who made Israel to sin," is
an expression that occurs frequently in the Old Testa-
POSTHUMOUS FAME. 237
ment, but the repetition is not vain. By many strokes
on the same place the Spirit in the word at last stamped
very deep upon the heart of Israel a detestation of the
idolatry which Jeroboam introduced.
As it is not pleasant to the living to think that their
bodies after death shall be torn by dogs, so it is not
pleasant to the living to anticipate that their names shall
be infamous in the generation following. Although
David's sins are faithfully recorded, David's name, was
savoury in Israel for the good that predominated in his
history. This memory of the just must have stimulated
many an Israelite to emulate the spirit and the deeds of
the Shepherd King.
As skilful men, finding wind, and water, and steam
powers existing in nature, have combined and directed
them so as to make them all help in propelling useful
machinery; so the Supreme Ruler has directed many
streams from different quarters, and made them converge
upon the wayward will of man, to impel it in the direc-
tion of righteousness. This curious appetite for a good
name to abide in the world behind us, is not left like a
mountain stream to waste its power. It is let into the
system of Providence, and plays its own part in pal-
liating the results of the fall. No man would like his
name to "rot" among posterity. This motive is not
strong enough to make a bad man good; but, along with
others, it contributes to diminish the force of wickedness,
and so to avert the absolute extinction of the race.
238 THE WISE TAKE ADVICE:
XLVII.
THE WISE TAKE ADVICE: FOOLS ONLY
GIVE IT.
"The wise in heart will receive commandments:
but a prating fool shall fall.”—x. 8.
WE have already learned what wisdom is, and where it
comes from. Here is one of its most valuable results.
It is not what it gives, but what it receives. It receives
commandments. This receptiveness is a prime charac-
teristic of the new heart. The new-born babe desires
the sincere milk of the word, that it may grow thereby.
The good well-broken ground took in the seed, while
other portions kept it lying on the surface. This was
the chief cause of the great difference in the result.
As the thirsty ground drinks in the rain, so the wise
in heart long for and live upon God's word. They are
glad to get commandments. "It is not in man that
walketh to direct his steps." "O send out thy light
and thy truth: let them lead me." "What I know not
teach thou me." This is a wise man, and he will soon
be wiser. To him that hath shall be given. This re-
ceptiveness is a most precious feature of character. Blessed
are they that hunger, for they shall be filled,
“A prating fool shall fall.” All his folly comes out.
Every one sees through him. The fool, being empty,
busies himself giving out, instead of taking in, and he
FOOLS ONLY GIVE IT. 239
becomes more empty. From hint that path not
shall be taken. He is known, by the noise he makes, to
be a tinkling cymbal. People would not have known
that his head was so hollow if he had not been constantly
ringing on it. If ever he become wise, he will begin to
receive commandments; and when he receives them, he
will grow wiser thereby. To receive a lesson and put it
in practice implies a measure of humility; whereas to lay
down the law to others is grateful incense to a man's
pride and self-importance. The Lord himself pointed to
the unsuspecting receptiveness of a little child, and said
that this is the way to enter the kingdom.
240 THE CENTRE OF GRAVITY.
XLVIII.
THE CENTRE OF GRAVITY.
"He that walketh uprightly walketh surely;
but he that perverteth his ways shall be known."—x. 9.
THE term upright, as applied to character, seems emi-
nently direct and simple; yet, in its origin, it is as
thoroughly figurative as any word can be. It is a phy-
sical law declared applicable to a moral subject. When
a man's position is physically upright, he can stand easily
or bear much. He is not soon wearied; he is not easily
broken down. But if his limbs are uneven, or his pos-
ture bent, he is readily crushed by the weight of another;
he is soon exhausted even by his own. There is a simi-
lar law in the moral department. There is an attitude
of soul which corresponds to the erect position of the
body, and is called uprightness. The least deviation from
the line of righteousness will take your strength away,
and leave you at the mercy of the meanest foe. How
many difficulties a man will go through, whose spirit
stands erect on earth, and points straight up to heaven!
How many burdens such a man will bear!
There is evidence enough around us that righteousness
presides over the government of the world. Although
men are not righteous, yet righteousness is in the long
run the surest way to success even among men. As an
upright pillar can bear a greater weight than a leaning
THE CENTRE OF GRAVITY. 241
one, so moral rectitude is strong, and obliquity weak.
The world itself has observed this truth, and graven it in
a memorable proverb of its own—"Honesty is the best
policy."
A true witness will bear an amount of cross-questioning
which is sufficient to weigh twenty false witnesses down.
Truth stands longer, and bears more among men than
falsehood. This law, operating in the world, is a glory to
God in the highest. It visibly identifies the moral Gover-
nor of mankind with the Maker of the world. A lofty
spire bears its own weight, and withstands the force of
the tempest, chiefly because it stands upright. If it did
not point plumb to the sky, it could not stand—it could
not even have been erected. Wonderful likeness be-
tween material and moral laws! Like body and soul,
they are joined for parallel and united action. In trying
times, the safety of a man or a tower lies mainly in up-
rightness. For want of it, many mighty are falling in
our day, and great is the fall of them. Many confiding
families are crushed under the ruins of one huge specula-
tion that has been reared without the plummet of right-
eousness.
242 THE WELL OF LIFE.
XLIX.
WELL OF LIFE.
"The mouth of a righteous man is a well of life."—x. 11.
SEE what the Lord expects, and the world needs, from
Christians. The mouth is taken as the principal channel
by which the issues of life flow out for good or evil. It,
is a well. If it be full, it flows over; and if the over-
flow be sweet water, the border will be fresh and green.
The well's supply falls in rain from heaven, and secret-
ly finds its way by hidden veins to the appointed open-
ing. The overflow fringes the well's brim with green,
although the surrounding soil be barren. As the world
is a wilderness, and the righteous are wells in it, there is
urgent need that they should get supply for themselves in
secret from above, and that the outcome of their conver-
sation should be the means of reviving to all around.
In a hot summer day, some years ago, I was sailing
with a friend in a tiny boat, on a miniature lake, en-
closed like a cup within a circle of steep bare Scottish
hills. On the shoulder of the brown sun-burnt moun-
tain, and full in sight, was a well, with a crystal stream
trickling over its lip, and making its way down toward
the lake. Around the well's mouth, and along the course
of the rivulet, a belt of green stood out in strong contrast
with the iron surface of the rock all around. "What do
you make of that?" said my friend, who had both an
THE WELL OF LIFE. 243
open eye to read the book of nature, and a heart all
aglow with its lessons of love. We soon agreed as to
what should be made of it. It did not need us to make
it into anything. There it was, a legend clearly printed
by the finger of God on the side of these silent hills,
teaching the passer-by how needful a good man is, and
how useful he may be in a desert world.
Let your heart take in by its secret veins what comes
pure from heaven in showers of blessing; so shall itself
be full, and so shall its issues, as far as your influence ex-
tends, contribute to fertilize the wilderness. The Lord
looks down, and men look up, expecting to see a fringe
of living green around the lip of a Christian's life-course.
If we get good, we shall be good: if we be good, we shall
do good. This by a law of the new nature. Every
creature after its kind, and the new creature too.
The wicked have a power similarly exerted, but in an
opposite direction, and with an opposite effect. The
wicked are like the sea—the troubled sea. It is always
heaving from its depths, and casting up refuse and salt
spray upon the shore. A belt of barrenness runs all
round. It scalds the life out of every green thing with-
in its reach. The sea cannot rest, and herbs upon its
border cannot grow. Thus the ungodly act, constantly,
inevitably by a law. The evil get evil, and do evil. Sin
propagates sin, and produces death.
In our great cities there are many such restless salt
seas. There are many clubs of corrupt men who, by the
law of their nature, corrupt their neighbours. There are
men of false principles, of foul tongues, of callous hearts,
244 THE WELL OF LIFE.
of vicious lives. These cannot lie still. They swing to
and fro, and clash upon each other, and fling their own
bitterness all round. Alas for unsuspecting youths who
saunter careless on the edge! Each tender shoot of grace
that may, in kindlier exposures, have begun to spring, is
scorched out by these corrosive drops. All the borders of
that sea are barrenness. Linger not within its tide-mark.
Escape for your life.
EXPERIENCE KEPT FOR USE. 245
L.
EXPERIENCE KEPT FOR USE.
"Wise men lay up knowledge."—x. 14.
ANOTHER brief definition of true wisdom. Many get
knowledge, and let it go as fast as they get it. They
put their winnings into a bag with holes. They are
ever learning, and never wiser. The part of wisdom is
to treasure up experience, and hold it ready for use in
the time and place of need. Everything may be turned
to account. In the process of accumulating this species
of wealth, the wonders of the philosopher's stone may be
more than realized. Even losses can be converted into
gains. Every mistake or disappointment is a new lesson.
Every fault you commit, and every glow of shame which
suffuses your face because of it, may be changed into a
most valuable piece of wisdom. Let nothing trickle out,
and flow away useless. After one has bought wit at a
heavy price, it is a double misfortune to throw it away.
As a general rule, the dearer it is the more useful it will
be. The wisdom which God gives his creatures through
the laws of nature is of this sort. The burnt child has,
at a great price, obtained a salutary dread of the fire.
None of the wisdom comes for nothing, either to old or
young. Our Father in heaven gives us the best kind:
and the best kind is that which is bought. The saddest
thing is when people are always paying, and never pos-
246 EXPERIENCE KEPT FOR USE.
sessing. Some men gain very large sums of money, and
yet are always poor, because they have not the art of
keeping it: and some learn much, yet never become wise,
because they know not how to lay up the treasure.
The cleverest people are in many cases the least success-
ful. A man of moderate gifts, but steadfast acquisitive-
ness, lays up more than a man of the brightest genius,
whether the treasure sought be earthly substance or
heavenly wisdom. It is often found that the meek and
quiet spirit, whose life casts no glare around him, has a
supply of oil in his vessel which will keep his lamp from
going out in seasons of sudden surprisal, or long continued
strain. Men, looking on the outward appearance, make
great mistakes in judging of men. Those who give out
little noise may have laid up much wisdom. There is
great encouragement. In the Fountain Head is exhaust-
less supply, and "He giveth liberally." It is a form of
wealth that lies in little bulk; one contrite heart will hold
more than the world's balances are able to weigh.
THE MONEY POWER. 247
LI.
THE MONEY POWER
"The rich man's wealth is his strong city:
the destruction of the poor is their poverty."—x. 15.
HERE he is describing what is, rather than prescribing what
ought to be. The verse acknowledges and proclaims a
prominent feature in the condition of the world. It is
not a command from the law of God, but a fact from the
history of men. In all ages and in all lands money has
been a mighty power; and its relative importance in-
creases with the advance of civilization. Money is one
of the principal instruments by which the affairs of the
world are turned; and the man who holds that instru-
ment in his grasp, can make himself felt in his age and
neighbourhood. It does not reach the divine purpose;
but it controls human action. It is constrained to be-
come God's servant; but it makes itself the master of
man.
It is an interesting and remarkable fact, that the Jews
wield this power in a greater degree than any other
people. Other channels of effort have been shut up from
them, and consequently the main stream of the nation's
energies has turned in the direction of money. This cir-
cumstance explains at once how their position has been
acquired; but the ultimate design of Providence in the
riches of the Jews cannot be seen as yet. Already the
248 THE MONEY POWER.
germs of vast power are in possession of the Jews, but in
the meantime, the want of a country of their own effec-
tually checks its exercise. The mighty lever is in their
hands, but they are comparatively powerless for want of a
fulcrum to lean it on. The proposal to buy the land of
Canaan has often been mooted among them. They could
easily produce the price; but other difficulties interpose.
The power that "letteth" may soon be taken out of the
way. In those eastern countries in our own day the angel
of the Lord is doing wondrously; it is our part, like
Manoah and his wife, reverently to look on. All powers,
and the money power among them, are in the hands of our
Father; nothing can happen amiss to his dear child.
Over against this formidable power stands the counter-
part weakness,—"the destruction of the poor is their
poverty." This feebleness of the body politic is as diffi-
cult to deal with as its active diseases. If pauperism be
not so acute an affection as crime, it is more widely
spread, and requires as much of the doctor's care. Be-
sides being an ailment itself, it is a predisposition to
other and more dangerous evils. All questions have two
sides, and so has this. On one side the rich ought to
help the poor: on the other, the poor ought to help
themselves. By both efforts, simultaneous and propor-
tionate, pauperism may easily be managed: under either
alone it is utterly unmanageable. It is the part of those
who have strength without wealth, to labour diligently
for daily bread, that those only who have neither strength
nor wealth may be cast for support upon the rich. If
the community are obliged to support the poor only,
THE MONEY POWER. 249
the exertion will be healthful; but if they are compelled
to bear also the profligate, they will sink oppressed
themselves beneath the load. The poor we have always
with us. This is the appointment of the Lord. To
support them will do us good. It is more blessed to
give than to receive. The vicious we have also with us,
but to support them is pernicious both to them and us.
We should correct and train them. But let it be known
and reverenced as a providential law, that no possible
amount of rates or contributions can relieve the poverty
that is caused by idleness and intemperance among the
population. The disease is in its own nature incurable
by that species of appliance. All such appliances feed
the disease, and nourish it into strength. Though all the
wealth of the nation were thrown into the jaws of this
monster, it would not be satisfied. The lean kine would
eat up all the fat ones, and be themselves no fatter. A
poor-rate increased to supply the children, while every
enticement is offered to the wretched parents to spend
their wages in dissipation, is like pouring water into a
cistern which has not a bottom, and wondering why it is
never filled: When you have poured in all your sub-
stance, it will be as empty as when you began.
We are under law to God. The wheels of his provi-
dence are high and dreadful. If we presumptuously or
ignorantly stand in their way, they will crush us by their
mighty movements. We must set ourselves, by social
arrangements, to diminish temptations, and by moral ap-
pliances to reclaim the vicious, if we expect to thrive, or
even to exist as a community. Vice, positively cherished
250 THE MONEY POWER.
by erroneous legislation, and neglected by a lukewarm
religion, threatens to produce a poverty, such in magni-
tude and kind as will involve rich and poor in one common
destruction. Money answereth all things in its own legi-
timate province of material supply; but when beyond its
province you ask it to stop the gaps which vice is making,
it is a dumb idol—it has no answer to give at all.
The struggle between manufacturers and mechanics in
the form of strikes, a kind of intermittent fever to which
this country is eminently subject, offers a luminous com-
mentary on this text. In these conflicts, the rich man's
wealth is his strong city, and the destruction of the poor
is their poverty. The masters have most money, and
fewest mouths to fill. They hold longer out, and gene-
rally gain the victory, as the Russian army captured
Kars, by starving the garrison. The men have little
capital, and many thousand hungry wives and children.
Poverty makes them weak, and the weak go to the wall.
Their defeat is a great calamity: perhaps their victory
would have been a greater.
I would fain see the men in a position of greater inde-
pendence; but it would not be good for any class of the
community if they had power, by numbers and combina-
tion, to stop the channels of trade and overturn the rela-
tions of society. The method is dangerous, and the
measure of its success is fixed within narrow limits. In
some instances and to some extent it may succeed, but as
a general rule it must fail.
A large proportion of the penniless are in a greater or
less degree reckless. Partly their recklessness has made
THE MONEY POWER. 251
them poor; and partly their poverty has made them reck-
less. There is a reciprocal action in the process which
enhances the result. When a multitude, who are all poor,
combine for united action, rash and regardless spirits gain
influence and direct the course. Such a spirit, powerful by
the numbers whom it wields, is dangerous to every interest
of the community. In this country, working men might
take possession of the strong city as well as their masters.
They might make this "unrighteous mammon" their own
friend. Money, though a bad master, is a good servant.
Money to the working men would answer all the ends
which the strike contemplates, if each, by patient industry
and temperance, would save a portion for himself. If a
thousand men, in a particular town, or of a particular
trade, possessed on an average a free capital of fifty
pounds each, the fruit of their own savings, they could
maintain their own ground in a conflict with employers.
Their success would be sure, as far as their claim might be
legitimate; and their success would be salutary, both to
themselves and their neighbours.
Any great community of men is like a body. All
members have not the same office, but each is useful—
each is necessary in its own place. In virtue of their
union, if one member suffer, all the members suffer with
it. Thus, by the constitution of things, each has an in-
terest in the welfare of all. In arranging the laws of his
universe, the Creator has given a bounty on the exer-
cise of charity, and imposed heavy taxes for the discourage-
ment of quarrels between man and man, or between class
and class.
252 THE MONEY POWER.
The whole community of rich and poor, linked together
in their various relations, may be likened to a living body.
Suppose it to be the body of a swimmer in the water.
The limbs and arms are underneath, toiling incessant to
keep the head above the surface; and the head, so sup-
ported, keeps a look-out for the interests of the whole.
If the head be kept comfortably above the water, and no
more, the labour of the limbs will not be oppressive. But
if a disagreement occur, and one member plot against
another, damage will accrue to all.
If the head thoughtlessly and proudly attempt to lift
itself too high, thereby and immediately a double effort is
entailed upon the labouring limbs—such an effort as they
cannot long sustain. Wearied with the unnatural exer-
tion, they soon begin to slacken their strokes, and, as a
consequence, the head that unwisely sought to tower above
its proper height sinks down beneath it. On the other
hand, if the limbs beneath, jealous of the easy and honour-
able and elevated position of the head, should intermit
their strokes of set purpose to bring it down to their own
level, they would certainly accomplish their object. When
the limbs beneath cease to strike out, the head helplessly
sinks beneath the water. The head would indeed suffer,
but the limbs which inflicted the suffering would have
nothing to boast of. When the head came down, the
breathing ceased and the blood got no renewing. The
heart no longer, by its strong pulsations, sent the life blood
through its secret channels to the distant limbs, and a cold
cramp came creeping over them. Glad were they there-
fore, if it were not too late, to strike forth again in order
THE MONEY POWER. 253
to raise, the head above the surface, is the only means of
preserving their own life.
The promiscuous mass of human beings that are welded
together by their necessities and interests in this island is
like a strong swimmer in the sea; and alas! it is too often
like "a strong swimmer in his agony." Easily might the
huge but well-proportioned body lie on the water in a
calm, and successfully buffet the waves when a storm
comes on, if all the parts were willing to work in har-
mony. We have the knowledge and the power, and the
material means, sufficient to maintain in comfort the
whole population without turning any into slaves; but
half our productive capacity is lost by the want of concert
and co-operation. The head—and here we mean by that
term merely those who have wealth and superior position
—the head, in selfishness or silliness, unduly exalts
itself. There is a competition in costly luxuries which
throws heavier toil down on the labouring class. In
the shape of long hours, and night-work, and diminished
wages, it entails an agony in those members of the body
which minister to its demands. In some poor garret, or
in some dark cellar, the racking strain is felt, and the in-
mates know not whose weight has brought it on. In like
manner, when the derangement begins below, the hurt is
quickly thrown up to the head, and thence reverberates
down to its sources, working reduplicated sorrow there.
Head and members are all on the water. A great deep
yawns beneath. Moderate exertion, if it be steady and
uniform, will keep every part comfortably buoyant; but
mutual animosities work common ruin. The stoppage of
254 THE MONEY POWER.
labour which brings down the head will soon paralyze the
members: the inordinate uplifting of the head, which
overtasks the toiling limbs, will rebound from the suffer-
ings of the multitude a stroke of vengeance to lay the
lofty low.
Two truths stand conspicuously out from all this con-
fusion. The world has a righteous Ruler, and the Ruler
has a dislocated world to deal with. They speak of the
progress and the perfection of the species. We are far
from the goal as yet, even if we be in the way to it. The
sign from heaven that most surely marks its neighbour-
hood is, One is our Master, even Christ, and all we are
brethren. When we see that beauteous bud swelling and
bursting and blooming all over our land, we may safely
conclude that her millennial summer is nigh.
THE LIPS AND TONGUE. 255
LII.
THE LIPS AND TONGUE.
"He that hideth hatred with lying lips, and he that uttereth a slander, is a fool.
In the multitude of words there wanteth not sin: but he that refraineth his
lips is wise. The tongue of the just is as choice silver: the heart of the wicked
is little worth. The lips of the righteous feed many: but fools die for want of
wisdom.""—x. 18-21.
IT is not safe for a man or woman to open the lips and
permit the heart to pour itself forth by that channel with-
out selection or restraint. If the spring within were pure,
the stream could not be too constant or too strong. But
the heart is full of corruption; and from a corrupt foun-
tain sweet waters cannot flow. It is the part of a wise
man to set a watch upon his own lips. This is a more
profitable exercise, if it be less pleasant, than to set a
watch on the lips of our neighbours. If we fling the door
open, and allow the emotions to rush forth as they arise,
it is certain that many of our words will be evil, and do
evil. One who knows himself, if he cannot prevent evil
thoughts from swelling and swarming in his breast, will
at least lay a restraint upon his lips, and check their
outgo. Weigh the words: those of them that are allowed
to take wing should be few and chosen.
To refrain, that is, to bridle back the lips, is an exer-
cise hard and healthful to our spirits. It requires some
practice to make one skilful in it; but skill in that art
will be very profitable in the long-run. It is easier, and
256 THE LIPS AND TONGUE.
more natural, when one is full of emotions, to open the
sluices, and let the whole gush forth in an impetuous
stream of words. It is easy, but it is not right; it is
pleasant to nature, but it is offensive to God, and hurtful
to men. You must consider well, and pull the bridle
hard, and permit no false or proud words to pass the bar-
rier of the lips. Strangle the evil thoughts as they are
coming to the birth, that the spirits which troubled you
within may not go forth embodied to trouble also the
world.
"The tongue of the just," that is, the stream of words
that, flows from it, "is like choice silver." Silver is
bright, and pure, and not corrosive. It may safely be
applied to the body, whether on a sound place or on a
sore. Certain surgical instruments, that penetrate the
human body, and come in contact with the blood, must
be made of silver. Other materials would be liable to
contract rust, and thereby inflame the wound. Silver,
applied as a healing instrument, does not bite like an
adder, and leave a poison festering behind. Thus, when
an operation of faithfulness becomes necessary, the tongue
of the just is a safe instrument wherewith to probe the
sores of a brother's soul. Its soft, sweet answer turneth
away wrath. The truth spoken will perform the needful
operation; and spoken in love, it will not leave the seeds
of fever behind. A biting, corrosive tongue is a curse
alike to the serpent who wields it, and the victims whom
it strikes.
There is another object, which in common language is
constantly said, and in common understanding is instantly
THE LIPS AND TONGUE. 257
felt, to be like a belt of silver. It is a river, when it is
seen from a great height following its graceful windings
over the plain. All along its margin the watered ground
is fresh and green. So would it be if we could obtain a
heaven-high viewpoint, whence the eye could trace the
stream of love and truth which flows from a good man's
lips as he plods over the plain of human life from the
spring-head of his new birth to his point of disappearance
on the shore of eternity. Softly and sweetly it shines,
like a silver stream, on the dark ground of life, and like
it too is fringed on either side with a growth of good-
ness.
"The lips of the righteous feed many." Themselves
satisfied from the Lord's own hand, they will feed others.
This bread of life which the disciples distribute is not
like common bread. The more you give of it to the
needy, the more remains for your own use. It is the bread
which Jesus blesses in the wilderness—the bread from
heaven, which Jesus is; and when from his hand, and at
his bidding, you have fed three thousand on five loaves,
you will have more bread remaining in your baskets than
the stock you began with. Christ's miracles had a body
and a soul. The inner spirit was embodied in sensible
act, and the sensible act enclosed an inner spirit. In the
act of feeding hungry thousands, through the ministry of
the twelve, he was training them in the elements of their
apostolic work. As their hands then distributed bread to
the body, so their lips fed many souls, by the bread of
life which came down from heaven, and dwelt richly
within them. It is a high calling to be stewards of
258 THE LIPS AND TONGUE.
these mysteries. The Lord's disciples are made mediators
between the source of life and those that are perishing.
He blesses. He breaks, He is the bread of life, but all
the disciples stand round Him, getting from His hands,
and giving to those who will receive. A Christian's lips
should keep knowledge; in the heart a precious store,
through the lips a perennial flow for the feeding of
many.
Behold the mutual relations of faith and love—of trust
in Jesus the Saviour, and active effort for the good of
men. Getting much from Him, you will feel the neces-
sity of giving to others; giving much to others, you will
experience more the necessity of drawing ever fresh sup-
plies from the fountainhead. They who abide in Christ
will experience a sweet necessity of doing good to men;
they who really try to do good to men will be compelled
to abide in Christ, as a branch abides in the vine.
"Fools die for want of wisdom." So far from being
helpful to others, they have nothing for themselves. They
have taken no oil in their vessels, and the flame of their
lamp dies out.
THE BLESSING OF THE LORD MAKETH RICH. 259
LIII.
THE BLESSING OF THE LORD MAKETH RICH.
"The blessing of the Lord, it maketh rich, and he addeth no sorrow with it"—
x. 22.
THE truth here is twofold. The cord, as it lies, seems
single, but when you begin to handle it, you find it
divides easily into two. It means that God's blessing
gives material wealth; and also, that they are rich who
have that blessing, although they get nothing more.
(1.) The silver and the gold are his, and he gives them
to whomsoever he will. A business may prosper at one
time, and decay at another, while no one is able to detect
the cause. It is not by accident. He who rules in the
highest, reaches down to the minutest concerns of this
world, and controls them all. Long ago, a certain people
diligently plied their agricultural labours, and carefully
watched over their household affairs; and yet misfortune
succeeded misfortune, and general poverty was closing
round the commonwealth. They could not read on earth
the causes of their failure, but a voice from on high pro-
claimed it:—"Ye have sown much, and bring in little;
ye eat, but ye have not enough; ye drink, but ye are
not filled with drink; ye clothe you, but there is none
warm; and he that earneth wages, earneth wages to put
it into a bag with holes. Thus saith the Lord of hosts,
Consider your ways" (Hag. 1. 6, 7). They had forgotten
260 THE BLESSING OF THE LORD MAKETH RICH.
God, and he had withheld his blessing. There is the
religion of the case, and the philosophy of it too. Will a
poor, short-sighted creature prate about the causes of
things to the exclusion of God's displeasure against sin,
as if there were no causes of things which lie beyond our
view? There are causes of things, which we have never
seen yet. He is a sounder philosopher, as well as a better
Christian, who owns that the blessing of the Lord has
something to do with the prosperity of his business.
(2.) But his blessing makes rich—His blessing is
riches, although the wealth of the world should all flee
away. "Godliness, with contentment, is great gain." Here
is a nature prescribed by the All-wise, for satisfying a
soul, and attaining success in life.
"He addeth no sorrow with it." The word seems to
imply that there are two ways of acquiring wealth. Some
people grow rich without God's blessing, and some grow
rich by it. It would appear that the god of this world
gives riches to his subjects sometimes, when neither giver
nor getter owns the supremacy of the Almighty, and that
God himself gives riches to some who are his children.
Wherein lies the difference, since both the godless and
the godly have gotten wealth? It lies here: He addeth
no sorrow with it, but that other lord does.
When you are permitted to obtain wealth on which
you do not seek and do not get God's blessing, that
wealth becomes a sorrow. There is no more manifest
mark of a righteous providence now seen protruding
through into time, than the sorrow that comes with ill-
gotten wealth. It lies like a burning spark on the con-
THE BLESSING OF THE LORD MAKETH RICH. 261
science, which will not out all the rich man's days.
Sometimes the wealth is scattered by means that the
public, with one voice, pronounce judgment-like. Some-
times it becomes waters of strife, to desolate his family
after the winner has been laid in the dust. There are
many arrows of judgment in the Almighty's quiver. Men
may well tremble, when they find themselves growing
rich on a trade whose secrets they are obliged to hide in
their own hearts, and dare not pour out before the All-
seeing day by day. To heap up these treasures, is to
treasure up, wrath over their own head.
If you take God into your counsels, and so grow rich,
there will be no bitterness infused into your gains. It is
a common practice to constitute firms for trade, and exhi-
bit their titles to the public with a single name, "and
company." Most partnerships, indeed, appear to the
world in that form. Such a man, and company; this is
all about the business that the passing stranger learns
from the sign-board; but, under that indefinite and com-
prehensive addition, who are included? What deeds and
what doers does that mercantile formula conceal? Ah
what some do in the dark beneath that veil! Now and
then the world is startled by its accidental rending, and
the exposure of a nest of night-birds in the light of day;
but the full disclosure awaits another rending and another
light. Reverently take the All-seeing into your com-
mercial company and counsels. If you cast Him out,
there is no saying, there is no imagining whom you may
take in. When these counsels cease to be godly, they
are "earthly and sensual;" and a terrible experience tells
262 THE BLESSING OF THE LORD MAKETH RICH.
"that no effectual barrier lies between these and the next
step—"devilish." More especially those who have once
made a Christian profession, if they allow themselves
to engage in transactions on which they dare not ask
God to look—if they glide into a business, for its gain,
which is incongruous with prayer for a blessing, will
probably be left to go greater lengths in shame than other
men.
One peculiar excellence of the riches made in a com-
pany from whose councils God is not banished is, that the
wealth will not hurt its possessors, whether it abide with
them or take wings and fly away. A human soul is so
made that it cannot safely have riches next it. If they
come into direct contact, they will clasp it too closely;
if they remain, they wither the soul's life away; if they
are violently wrenched off, they tear the soul's life asun-
der. Whether, therefore, you keep them or lose them, if
you clasp them to your soul with nothing more spiritual
between, they will become its destroyer. Certain tor-
tures that savages have invented and applied to human
bodies, bear an analogy to the process by which his
money makes the miser miserable, alike when it abides
with him and when it departs. They wrap the body of
the living victim all round in a thick impermeable plas-
ter, and then set him free. If the covering remains, all
the pores of the body are clogged, the processes of nature
are impeded, and the life pines away; if it is torn off, it
tears the skin with it—the pain is sooner over, but it is
more severe. Thus the soul of a thorough worldling is
either choked by wealth possessed, or torn by wealth
THE BLESSING OF THE LORD MAKETH RICH. 263
taken away. Out of that dread dilemma he cannot
wriggle. The laws of God have shut him in.
Those who get riches should beware lest a sorrow be
added to them, more weighty than all their worth. The
Maker of the soul is its Portion; He made it for Himself.
When riches are clasped closest to the heart, He is slight-
ed and dishonoured. An idol has usurped his throne.
"Covetousness is idolatry." For this very end Christ has
come that a man might take the Holiest, into his bosom,
and yet not be consumed. Put on Christ. Seek first
the kingdom of God and his righteousness, and these
other things may be safely added outside. If riches be
added outside, while Christ is taken closest in, the riches
there will, not hurt their owner while they remain, nor tear
him asunder when they depart. When your "life is hid
with Christ in God," you will live there, whatever amount
of the world's possessions may be attached outside; and
though, in some social concussion, all the world's thick
clay should drop off, you will scarcely be sensible of a
change. If you be Christians, if you have put on Christ,
great riches may come and go; you will not be clogged
while you have them; you will not be naked when they
leave. But if the wealth be the first and inner wrapping
of the soul, how shall that soul ever get into contact with
the Saviour, that life from its fountain may flow into the
dead? Many disciples of Jesus prosper in the world:
few who have courted and won the world in their youth,
become disciples in their old age. It is easy for a Chris-
tian to be rich, but hard for a rich man to become a Chris-
tian.
264 A FOOL'S SPORT.
LIV.
A FOOL'S SPORT.
"It is as sport to a fool to do mischief."—x. 23.
"Fools make a mock at sin."—xiv. 9.
COSTLY sport this: We are wont to wonder at the stupid
despot who set fire to his capital that he might see the
blaze; but there are many greater fools in the world than
he. The fire that Nero kindled in Imperial Rome was
soon put out; the flame which sin for sport lights up can
never be quenched. "Ye have kindled a fire in mine
anger, which shall burn for ever" (Jer. xvii. 4).
To do mischief is one evil; to make sport of the mis-
chief which you have done is another and a worse. A
swearer frequently pours out a volume of filth and blas-
phemy in a fit of exuberant mirthfulness. "The Lord will
not hold him guiltless who taketh his name in vain." To
be held guilty by the Judge of men in that day, is a
heavy price for a moment's mirth. Besides offending
the Divine Majesty, an oath offends also the little ones
for whom our Father specially cares. The sounds fall
upon a tender conscience like drops of scalding fire upon
the flesh. The fool pays dear for his mirth, when he
incurs on account of it the anger of the orphan's Almighty
Friend. Another species of mischief often done in sport
is to make a neighbour drunk by practising upon the
A FOOL'S SPORT. 265
experience of the young, or the depraved tastes of the
aged. We have all seen some instances of this amuse-
ment, and heard of more. This is wickedness of the very
worst kind. The crime of a robber who maims your
body, is venial in comparison of his who by stealth lays
a paralysis at once upon your soul within, and your limbs
without. We often hear of those who deal in strong
drink giving it for money to children, until the children
are laid helpless in the gutter. To do this for gain is a
great crime, but to do it for sport is a greater. I can-
not find a name for the man who deliberately makes
amusement for himself by defacing God's image from a
brother's soul. If any of these occupy the position, they
have certainly forfeited the character of gentlemen. They
are destitute alike of godliness and manliness. Brutal
would be an improper designation; devilish, though in-
sufficient, is the most suitable that language can supply.
There is not so much of this in our day as there was
in the past generation. Of late there has been some faith-
fulness and earnestness in dragging these abominations to
the light. The light these deeds of darkness cannot bear.
Perhaps the arrow would more readily find a joint in
the harness to penetrate by, if I should name some sins
that seem really lighter, and more fit for sport. Some
people tell lies to children, with the view of enjoying a
laugh at their credulity. This is to make a mock at sin,
and they are fools who do it. The tendency in a child
to believe whatever it is told, is of God for good. It is
lovely. It seems a shadow of primeval innocence glancing
by. We should reverence a child's simplicity. Touch it
266 A FOOL'S SPORT.
only with truth. Be not the first to quench that lovely
trustfulness, by lies.
It is emphatically the part of a fool to mock at sin.
God, counted it serious, when, to deliver us from its
power, he covenanted to give his Son to die. Christ
counted it serious, when he suffered for it. All holy
beings stand in awe before it. Angels unfallen look on
in wonder, and converted men who have been delivered
from it, fear it with an exceeding great fear. Only the
victims who are under its benumbing power, and exposed
to its eternal curse, can make light of sin.
The laugh is a symptom of cowardice, rather than of
courage. It is not in the power of a human being to
laugh at sin, if he look in its face. The mirth of these
mockers is but a violent effort to shut their eyes or turn
round. Sin in its two grand alternative aspects—sin
putting Christ to grief, or casting men into hell—sin is
not a laughable thing at all. He who mocks at it, ex-
pecting thereby to gain a character for courage, is a
coward who dares not to confront its issues, and hysteri-
cally strives to stifle his fear.
To mock at sin now, is the way to the place of eternal
weeping. They who weep for sin now, will rejoice in a
Saviour yet. Blessed are they that so mourn, for they
shall be comforted.
Those who make a mock at sin are obliged also to
mock at holiness. This is the law of their condition.
"Evil men and seducers shall wax worse and worse." To
laugh at sin and to laugh at holiness are but two sides of
one thing. They cannot be separated. Those who make
A FOOL'S SPORT. 267
mirth of goodness persuade themselves that they are only
getting amusement from the weakness of a brother. Let
them take care. If that in a Christian which you make
sport of be a feature of his-Redeemer's likeness, He whose
likeness it is, is looking on, and will require it. Let
the merry-makers see to it, when they are raising a
laugh at the softness of a Christian, lest they be really
scorning the gentleness of Christ, reflected in the mirror
of a disciples life-course. God is not mocked.
268 FEARS REALIZED AND HOPES FULFILLED.
LV.
FEARS REALIZED AND HOPES FULFILLED.
“The fear of the wicked, it shall come upon him:
but the desire of the righteous shall be granted.”—x. 24.
WE are not to understand from this verse that the
wicked have only fear, and the righteous have only desire
or hope. The wicked have hope as well as fear: the
righteous have fear as well as hope. Both characters
experience both emotions. In this respect, one thing
happens to all. The dread of evil and the desire of
good tumultuate and struggle for the mastery in a human
breast all through this present life, whether the person
be a child of God or the servant of sin. The difference
between the righteous and the wicked lies not in the
existence of these emotions within them now, but in their
issue at last. In each character there are the same two
emotions now: in each, at the final reckoning, one of
these emotions will be realized and the other disap-
pointed. The wicked in life both hoped and feared; at
the issue of all things his fear will be embodied in fact,
and his hope will go out like a lamp when its oil is done.
The righteous in life both hoped and feared; at the issue
of all things his hope will be satisfied, and his fear will
vanish, as imaginary spectres that terrified the benighted
traveller disappear with the day. Fear and hope were
common to the two in time; at the border of eternity
FEARS REALIZED AND HOPES FULFILLED. 269
the one will be relieved from all his fear, the other will
be deprived of all his hope. The wicked will get what
he feared, and miss what he hoped; the righteous will
get what he hoped, and miss what he feared. Ah! how
deep this difference is! One has his hopes all realized,
and his fears all disappointed; the other has his fears all
fulfilled, and his hopes quenched in despair.
It is not very difficult to ascertain what are the chief
fears and desires of a wicked man. Cleaving to his sins,
he is in enmity against God. The terrors of the Lord
glance from time to time like lightning in his conscience,
and he trembles at every quiver of the light, lest it be a
bolt of wrath sent to strike him through. When one
flash has passed and not smitten him, he gathers breath
again, and is glad he has escaped; but ere he is aware, he
is wincing beneath another. He fears the wrath of God
and the punishment of sin. What does he desire or
hope? His desire for time is the indulgence of his appe-
tites; his desire for eternity is that there should be no
God, or, at least, that he should not be just to mark
iniquity. This desire shall not be gratified; for God is,
and is the rewarder of them that seek Him. It is a
desperate throw to risk your soul and its eternity on the
expectation that God will turn out to be untrue, and that
the wicked shall not be cast away. This is the desire of
every unrenewed, unreconciled man, whether he confess
it to himself or not; and this desire must be disappointed.
The hope of the sinner will perish when Christ shall, come
in the clouds of heaven and sit upon the throne of judg-
ment. But the fear of the wicked—what did he fear?
270 FEARS REALIZED AND HOPES FULFILLED.
In spite of all his hopes, he feared death, and judgment,
and eternity. His fear shall come upon him. All that a
sinner feared shall come upon the sinner—all that he feared,
and more. The fruits of good and of evil are equal as they
are opposite. Eye hath not seen, nor ear heard, neither
have entered into the heart of man the terrible things
which God hath prepared for them that hate Him. Those
who heard Noah preaching righteousness, and refused to
repent, would nevertheless sometimes be conscious of fear
under the patriarch's denunciations But even those of
them who feared the most had no conception of such a
flood as that which came and covered them. The terrors
of wrath that sometimes work in a sinner's conscience are
but drops from an ocean infinite. The fear of the wicked,
when it comes, will be greater than all that the wicked
feared—greater by the difference between time and
eternity. The expectation of the wicked shall perish.
If the master of a ship at sea should, through carelessness
or wilfulness, in spite of warnings, deviate from his course
and hold on, with all sail set, by a false reckoning; and
if he should expect and say, when told of his error, that
he would escape—that there would turn out to be no
rock to strike upon, that he would no doubt get safe into
the desired haven—what would become of his expecta-
tion? It would perish when his ship struck on a stormy
shore.
In the voyage over life to eternity there is, indeed, one
difference. No one has gone over the voyage and re-
turned to tell that the rocks are really there. And if
men persist in refusing to believe whatever they cannot
FEARS REALIZED AND HOPES FULFILLED. 271
see, they must even be left to themselves. But a message
has been sent out to us. We can make only one voyage
over this sea, and the Lord of that better land has sent out
directions and a chart to guide us in. Most certain it is,
if heaven and hell—if sin and salvation, be real, the ex-
pectation of the wicked shall perish.
The desire of the righteous shall be granted; what,
then, shall become of his fears? What becomes of the
darkness when the daylight shines? It is gone. Such
are the fears that agitate the bosoms of God's dear chil-
dren here in the body. When Christ comes, His coming
shall be like the morning. But, meantime, let it be care-
fully noted that the saints are subject to fears. The
promise to believers is not that they shall never fear; it
is that the thing feared will never come upon them.
What are their fears? They fear sometimes that God's
anger will lie upon them yet; and sometimes they fear
that, in time of temptation, they may fall away. But
though these terrors disturb them, the thing they dread
can never come. "There is now no condemnation to
them that are in Christ Jesus;" and "they are kept by
the power of God through faith unto salvation, ready to
be revealed." Their desire shall be granted; and what is
their desire? It is twofold: that they may be pardoned
through the blood of Christ, and renewed after his image.
When these are the desires of our souls, how safe we are!
If these desires were left unfulfilled, God our Saviour
would be disappointed in His plan, and stript of His
glory. These desires are the desires of the Almighty
Redeemer of men, and He will do all His pleasure.
272 FEARS REALIZED AND HOPES FULFILLED.
When I fear what He hates, my fears will be driven
away like smoke before the wind; when I desire what
He loves, all my desires will be gratified, even to the
whole of the kingdom. Behold the golden chain on
which a disciple's hope hangs down from heaven—"All
things are yours, and ye are Christ's and Christ is God's"
(1 Cor. iii. 22, 23).
THE PASSING WHIRLWIND AND THE SURE FOUNDATION. 273
LVI.
THE PASSING WHIRLWIND AND THE SURE
FOUNDATION.
"As the whirlwind passeth, so is the wicked no more:
but the righteous is an everlasting foundation."—x. 25.
THE course of the wicked through time is like the pea-
sage of a whirlwind over a continent. Life moves quickly,
like the wind. When seen from eternity it is as nothing.
A wicked life is like the wind in the violence and eccen-
tricity of its movements. The soul that has no hope in
Jesus is driven up and down like chaff in a tempest. It
is dashed from side to side a while, and at last thrown
into the sea or the flames. The righteous is an everlast-
ing foundation. He cannot be moved. Though the
mountains should be cast into the sea, the righteous man's
standing remains unshaken, untouched. The heavens
and the earth shall pass away, but he who has made the
Eternal God his refuge will never be removed. "Neither
death nor life, neither things present nor things to come,"
neither men nor devils, can ever drive or draw the feeblest
disciple from his confidence. The Lord will "lay a sure
foundation;" and "he that believeth shall not make haste"
(Isa. xxviii. 16). These two promises lie together in the
scripture. When your heart's hope is fixed on that pre-
cious corner stone, you need not be thrown into a flutter
by the fiercest onset of the world and its god.
274 THE GREATNESS OF LITTLE THINGS.
LVII.
THE GREATNESS OF LITTLE THINGS.
"As
vinegar to the teeth, and as smoke to the eyes,
so is the sluggard to them that send him.—x. 26.
THE minor morals are not neglected in the Scriptures.
Cleanliness and punctuality have their place in religion
as well as the weightier matters of the law. These lesser
features must be all filled in ere the beauty of the Lord
be seen upon us. There may be the main things that
constitute the backbone of Christianity, and yet the char-
acter may be imperfect and ungainly. There may be
faith, righteousness, and truth, and yet little of the love-
liness of the bride prepared to meet her husband. Even
a Christian has much need to pray that the Lord would
perfect that which concerneth him. Even when the sub-
stantial groundwork has been attained, you can do little
to honour the Lord, or to win a brother, until the minuter
features of the heavenly pattern be imprinted on your
life.
You would not select activity and punctuality as the
cardinal tests of a man's condition before God: and yet
these things are by no means of trifling importance. To
be a sluggard is a great blemish. Such a spot may
sometimes be on one who is a child of God, but it is not
the spot of God's children. "What thy hand finds to do,
do it with thy might." Sluggishness is a continual injury
THE GREATNESS OF LITTLE THINGS. 275
inflicted on others. It is a cutting, vexing thing. If
we are Christ's we should crucify this self-pleasing affec-
tion of the flesh. One of the Christian laws is to look,
not every man on his own things, but every man also on
the things of others. If we would adorn the doctrine of
Christ, we must be active, early, punctual. It is a sin to
waste another man's time, as much as to waste his pro-
perty. "Whatsoever ye do, do all to the glory of God."
No doubt it is the natural disposition of some people to
be slovenly, and unexact. But what is your religion
worth if it do not correct such a propensity? A person
who is nimbler in body and spirit than you may find it
an easier thing to fulfill, his appointments; but he has
some other weak side which he must watch. "Watch and
pray," each at his own weak side, "that ye enter not
into temptation." If any man be in Christ, he is a new
creature. If the new life is strong in the heart, it will
send its warm pulses down to the extremest member. It
should be the delight of a disciple, to be leaving the
things that are behind, and pressing forward to what lies
yet before. It should be like the meat and drink of a
disciple to be making progress in bringing unto captivity
to the obedience of Christ those thoughts that hitherto
have been allowed to run wild. Ye are God's husbandry.
Our effort should be to bring all the outspread field of
life under cultivation—to leave no corner lying waste.
In olden times when land in this country was not so
much valued, many portions, a strip by the roadside here,
and a corner beside a stream there, were allowed to
escape notice, and to lie unsown. But as its value in-
276 THE GREATNESS OF LITTLE THINGS.
creased, and became better known, useless roads were
broken up, and useless hedges pulled out, and every yard
of soil turned to account. A man's life is the field that
belongs to the great heavenly Husbandman. It is not
enough to cultivate its middle. Every corner should be
turned up and occupied. Those who are bent on making
rich, know well how much depends on taking care of
small fragments. If we were wisely ambitious of becom-
ing rich towards God, we would not cast anything away.
The farthest advanced Christian may be known by his
care to serve Christ in little things, which others leave to
chance—by his care to cultivate for Christ those little
corners of life, which others allow to be filled with weeds.
When any portions of the field, even outside edges and
corners, are left unsown, uncared for, the roots and seeds
which grow on these, spread widely and injure all. It is
sad to see the whole field damaged by the weeds that run
to seed on its borders. Do we not see a Christian life
marred and made almost useless by certain minor outside
parts of it not being Christianized. The smallest extre-
mity should be occupied for the Lord as well as the heart.
And remember, although the heart is the chief thing as
to acceptance with God, the smallest things of life often
become the most important for his service in the world.
It is precisely at the extremities of our life-course, those
parts that run out into diminutive points, that we come
into contact with others. If these little outside things
which they feel be not baptized in the spirit of Christ,
we have no means of letting them feel our Christianity
at all. A Christian in the city may be called to make a
THE GREATNESS OF LITTLE THINGS. 277
bargain with a man, or keep an appointment with him,
a hundred times for once that he is called to tell his
views of the Gospel, and the ground of his hope. There-
fore, unless in these common things, these little outside
points, we witness for Christ, we shall seldom have it in
our power to witness for him at all. Let every one
please his neighbour for his good to edification.
There is in your house a central cistern for containing
water, and it is supplied from the river or the spring. Out
from that cistern, at its lip, go many channels leading to
all parts of the house, for the use of all the inmates. If
the cistern be nearly full—filled in almost all its bulk,
and yet not filled to the lip, so as to cover the mouth of
the outgoing channels, all these channels will remain dry,
and none of the inmates will get any supply of water.
The cistern is almost full,—a little more would make it
overflow,—and yet to the household, in their several de-
partments of labour, it is very much the same as if it were
empty. They get none. There is not an overflow. It
is not so full as to go into these branching channels, and
appear at their farthest extremities, with constant pressure,
ready to burst out at a touch.
I think I see many a Christian useless to the world in
this way. He is almost full, but not overflowing. He is
concerned about the great things of eternity; but he is
not so completely possessed as to let the spirit of Christ
flow over into the smallest, commonest things of daily life.
These remain hard and dry like the world. But it is by
these that he touches others, and therefore, real Christian
though he be, he does little good to others; perhaps he
278 THE GREATNESS OF LITTLE THINGS.
does harm to others by misrepresenting Christ to them,
and even misrepresenting himself
He who is a Christian in little things, is not a little
Christian. He is the greatest Christian, and the most
useful. The baptism of these little outlying things shows
that he is full of grace, for these are grace's overflowings
and they are ever the overflowings of the full well that
refresh the desert. The great centre must be fully occu-
pied before the stream can reach that outer edge.
HONESTY IS THE BEST POLICY. 279
LVIII.
HONESTY IS THE BEST POLICY.
"A false balance is abomination to the Lord;
but a just weight is his delight." —xi. 1.
FROM my youth I have been better acquainted with this
verse than with any other in the book, because I was wont
to read it with much interest when I was a little boy,
engraved in antique characters on a mouldering stone over
the gateway of a market in the city of Perth. In the
times immediately after the Reformation, when the word
of God was new to the people, it was much valued.
Through the spread of that word the nation had been
emancipated from a bondage of many generations. After
the long darkness, men rejoiced in the light. They were
not ashamed of their deliverer. All classes felt and
acknowledged their obligations to the Bible. In this
respect our lot has fallen on worse times. Direct appeal
to the scriptures seems to be counted a violation of taste
in places of power. When that writing from the law of
the Lord mouldered away by age, the magistrates did not
engrave it again in their restored market-place. The
motto of another city, "Let Glasgow flourish by the
preaching of the word," has dwindled down to "Let Glas-
gow flourish." The legend became curt when the age
grew carnal. These straws show how the current has
been running; but there is reason to hope that the tide
280 HONESTY IS THE BEST POLICY.
has already turned. It is refreshing to observe how the
early reformers appealed to the scriptures as the supreme
arbiter in human affairs. It was an evil day for the
nation when rulers began to ignore the Bible, and govern
as if God had never spoken to men. Rulers and subjects,
buyers and sellers alike should love the Bible. Its law
only can keep the world right.
The precept is abundantly plain. It requires no ex-
position. One of the ways in which dishonest selfishness
strives to attain its ends is to use false weights and mea-
sures in the market As civilization advances, fewer
opportunities occur of successfully accomplishing this trick.
Other forms of deceit have crept in and cast into the shade
the old-fashioned dishonesty. The modern dealer finds it
more possible to cheat in the quality than in the quantity
of the article. Dishonesty of either kind, of every kind,
is abomination to the Lord. Justice is His delight, alike
in the weight of the goods and their worth. Though an
honest man should get no thanks from the world, he
ought to count it an abundant reward for all his self-
sacrifice that the world's Judge sees every righteous deed,
and delights in it. God claims to be in merchandise, and
to have his word circling through all its secret channels.
When this set is awanting, forthwith they become cor-
rupt. Many men would fain banish God from his world.
They are not Atheists. They are willing to meet Him
by appointment on the Sabbath, and in the church,
on condition that they shall be allowed to buy and sell
without Him all the rest of the week. You may as well
expect to escape from the air as from His presence. "In
HONESTY IS THE BEST POLICY. 281
Him we live and move and have our being." The only
man who in merchandise is happy or safe, is the man who,
while trying to please his customer over the counter, tries
also to please God. We ought, in this bustling commu-
nity, to be aware that unfair trickery in disposing of goods
is a sin that "doth most easily beset us." When a prac-
tice becomes common, it ceases to attract attention, and
if it be evil, it escapes reproof, by reason of its prevalence.
It would be our wisdom to suspect ourselves on our ex-
posed side. It is in a crowd that you are apt to lose your
money, or your good conscience. When you have cleverly
concluded a bargain by concealment and falsehood, the
loss is not all on one side. The seller suffers more by
that transaction than the buyer. He leaves the shop
with a damaged article, you remain with a defiled con-
science. It is more blessed to give than to receive; and
the counterpart is a terrible truth,—it is more cursed to
be an intake than to be taken in.
But there is much actual dishonesty where the parties
have not a deliberate intention to deceive. A man's
judgment leans sadly over to the side of his own interest.
He has a bias in his own favour, and unless he be both
watchful and prayerful, he will enter ere he is aware into
the temptation, and give a false tone to his statements
without admitting to himself the design of telling lies.
This kind of dishonesty is still dishonest. A man may
indeed innocently make a mistake, but the innocent mis-
takes will, on an average, as frequently favour your cus-
tomers as yourselves. If they are all on your own side,
they are not innocent There is a rule by which we may
282 HONESTY IS THE BEST POLICY.
escape this danger. I have seen a mechanic working with
the appropriate tools upon a piece of wood, in order to
bring its surface to a perfect level. After he had wrought
some time, he took a rule and laid it along his work,
bending his head and looking, to ascertain whether the
rule and the wood plied to each other along their whole
length, or whether daylight appeared anywhere between
them. When the work had so far advanced that the rule
and the wood touched each other throughout their length,
the workman, not yet satisfied, turned the rule round the
other way, and looked again. Why? He did not trust
the rule; there might, for aught he knew, be a slight
bend in it; and though the plank and it agreed, both
might be uneven. By reversing the rule, he removes all
chance of deception. His object is not that the plank
should appear, but that it should be straight. Go and do
likewise. You lay your rule along the transaction, and
the two agree. But one's heart is deceitful; perhaps it is
inclined to yourself a little. Reverse the rule. Put
yourself in the customer's place, and the customer in
yours. Would you then like the same representation to
be made, and the same price to be paid? This is a
method for detecting an unfair bias in our bargains, which
the Redeemer himself condescended to supply—"What-
soever ye would that men should do unto you, do ye even
so unto them."
If I speak plainly, even bluntly, against dishonest
shifts, it is not that I have any prejudice against trade.
I honour merchandise. I place merchants on equality
with princes in my esteem. I think the time is coming
HONESTY IS THE BEST POLICY. 283
when their position will be more honourable still. To a
greater extent every year, the surplus produce of one
country is required to supply the increasing wants of an-
other. This is a great providential arrangement for bring-
ing and binding the nations into one. Merchants are the
true ambassadors of nations, conducting their intercourse
and interlacing their interests. The longer the world
lasts, it will become more difficult for nation to go to
war with nation. They are undergoing a dovetailing
process, and every year interpenetrating each other with
deeper and deeper indentations. Merchants are the en-
gineers and artificers in that mighty process of Provi-
dence for binding the peoples of the earth together by
their interests, and perhaps for preparing among them the
way of the Lord. Between east and west, north and
south, barbarian and civilized, merchants are the me-
diators accredited and sent by the Supreme. As the
atmosphere touching both, mediates for blessed purposes
between the sea and the earth, relieving the sea of its
surplus water, and pouring it over the thirsty ground;
so the class of merchants mediate between the different
countries of the world, making the produce of all the pro-
perty of each, and the produce of each the property of all.
It is because I see the greatness of merchandise that I
strive for its purity. When the truth of God, as a pre-
serving salt, shall pervade the fountain in the merchants'
hearts, the outgoing streams of traffic will be pure, and
the whole landscape will wave with the blossoms of love
and the fruits of righteousness. Though dishonesty be
concealed, its effects cannot be diminished. The world is
284 HONESTY IS THE BEST POLICY.
under law to God. Falsehood, in proportion to its amount,
poisons and paralyses the whole mercantile system. It is
a bitterness in the spring which, according to its extent,
will infallibly tell in scorching the land with barrenness.
The system of nature is constructed so as to fit into truth.
The world has been made for honest men. The dishonest
rack and rend it, like gravel among the wheels of a
machine. But if lies impede the motions of the social
system, the social system in its slow and solemn revolu-
tions brings down heavy blows upon the liar's head.
ASSORTED PAIRS. 285
LIX.
ASSORTED PAIRS.
"When pride cometh, then cometh shame:
but with the lowly is wisdom." —xi. 2.
IN morals, things go in pairs as rigidly and regularly as
living creatures in nature. The Bible contains the his-
tory and the rules of God's government, and therefore
the unions that exist in Providence are written in the
word. Here is one of them. Pride and shame consti-
tute a pair. They must go together whether they will
or not. All the wriggling of the victims cannot break
the chain that binds them. For wise and righteous ends,
they have been made twins by the Author and Ruler of
the world. As well might you try to tear away the
shadow, so that it should not haunt the body, as to pre-
vent shame from dogging the steps of pride. The laws
of nature cannot be overturned by the power, or over-
reached by the cunning of men. It is not only that
shame will appear as the punishment of pride on some
future day, "Pride cometh; then cometh shame."
There is always something at hand to gall pride, where
there is pride to be galled. A proud man is never at
ease. He is always apprehensive of danger, and always
on the watch. It is certain that no man has good
ground for being proud; and to have ideas at variance
with your circumstances, is to steep your life in misery.
286 ASSORTED PAIRS.
A proud man, having nothing to be proud of, is like a
boy trespassing in a field not his own: the pleasure is
all embittered by the fear of being caught. In this life,
the condition of humanity at the best is one of suffering;
but pride adds other irritants of its own. Two men are
confined in cells of equal capacity: neither habitation can
be reckoned roomy; neither inhabitant can be altogether
content. But if one meekly submits, and makes the
best of it, his lot will be endurable; whereas the other,
if he dash himself continually on the sides of his prison,
will make his life miserable while it lasts, and soon
bring it to a close. Both the humble and the proud
man are in a low confined condition; but the one, by
bowing his head, escapes the blow; the other, by stretch-
ing aloft, brings his body into destructive collision
with the barriers which the Omnipotent has set round
the sinful.
Pride? what is the man proud of? Money? It will
not procure for him one night's sleep. It will not buy
back a lost friend. It will not bribe off approaching
death. Land? a very little bit of it will serve him soon.
Birth? what has he inherited, but sin and corruption.
Learning? If he is equal to Newton he has gathered one
little pebble on the ocean's shore, and even that one he
must soon lay down again. It would be better that
shame should come now on the proud like a flood to cover
them, that their hearts may melt in godly sorrow: for if
shame come first when mercy has finally passed away,
how dreadful will its coming be! Then it will be "shame
and everlasting contempt"
ASSORTED PAIRS. 287
With the lowly is wisdom,—the wisdom from above.
The lowest parts of the land are warm and fertile the
lofty mountains are cold and barren. The secret of the
Lord is with them that fear him. "Blessed are the poor
in spirit, for theirs is the kingdom of heaven."
288 DIPLOMACY.
LX.
DIPLOMACY.
"The
integrity of the upright shall guide them:
but the perverseness of transgressors shall destroy them."—xi. 8.
ALL obliquity and trick in the intercourse of men is a
libel on Providence. Every recourse to falsehood is a
direct distrust of God. Truth is both the shortest and
the surest road in every difficulty. How much labour is
lost by adopting tortuous paths. A great part of life's
labour consists in following a crooked course, and then
trying to make it appear a straight one. The crooked
line is far more difficult at the first, and the defence of it
afterwards doubles the labour. The intercourse of nations
with each other, designated by the general term diplomacy,
is proverbially a game of dexterity. We do not certainly
know what goes on, for we have never been admitted
into their secrets; but if diplomatists be not much
maligned, there is a great deal of double dealing in their
art. It seems to be understood that a man of transparent
and scrupulous truthfulness is not fitted to be a diplo-
matist. It is a prevalent idea among politicians, that
though truth is best in the abstract, yet in some cases it
is not safe to depend upon it, while others are endeavour-
ing to circumvent you. You are in difficulty and danger;
you must fortify to the uttermost; you must do the best;
therefore you will twist together a few lies in order there-
DIPLOMACY. 289
by to defend your position, and foil your adversary!
That is, when there is a stress you cast aside the straight
line of truth, and trust to the crooked course of hypocrisy.
The cripple, at a rocky part of the road, throws away his
sturdy oak-staff, and grasps a bruised reed, by way of
making sure that he will get safely over. Vain hope!
"Truth is great, and it will prevail" Truth is the most
potent weapon of attack, and the surest covering for the
head in the day of battle. Each party throws the blame
of lying on his adversary, and continues himself to lie.
The ever-recurring justification of diplomatic trick is,
though we were willing to be true, we have lying rogues
to deal with. What then? The question remains entire;
in dealing with them, what is your strongest weapon and
surest defence? Is it truth, or a lie? Meet them with
transparent truthfulness. Your truth will, in the long
run, be stronger than their lie, and you will overcome.
We are confident that if a nation, in all its intercourse
with neighbours, were transparent and true like sunlight,
that nation would soon be in the ascendant. Truth is
God's law, as well as gravitation. Those who conform
to these laws, in their several departments, are safe; those
who contravene them are crushed by their self-acting
vengeance-stroke. Their own act brings down the
retribution. "The perverseness of transgressors shall
destroy them."
290 THE DESTROYER OF A NEIGHBOUR
LXI.
THE DESTROYER OF A NEIGHBOUR.
"An hypocrite with his mouth, destroyeth his neighbour."—xi. 9.
AN untrue man is the moral murderer, his mouth the
lethal weapon, and his neighbour the victim. Horrid
employment! For what purpose have we been placed in
the world? Look unto Jesus, and learn in His life what
is your own errand here. He came to seek and save the
lost. He went about doing good. Let no man deceive
himself with words. Nothing in nature is surer and
truer than this, that Christians are like Christ; and they
who are not like Christ are not Christians. Let that
mind which was in Him be also found in you. He has
left us an example that we should follow His steps. The
destroyers of a neighbour are as far from the track of
Jesus as men in this life can be. Beware of carrying
deadly weapons. For what end did God give to man
and to man alone, a speaking mouth? The Maker of
that tongue meant it not to be a dart to pierce a brother
with. Remember every morning who gave you that
wonderful instrument, and how He intended it to be
used. When a kind parent sends to his distant child a
case of curious mechanical instruments, he takes care to
send along with them printed "directions for use." Even
such a set of directions has our Father in heaven sent to
us along with the ease of cunning instruments which our
THE DESTROYER OF A NEIGHBOUR. 291
living body contains. Look into the directions and see
what is written opposite the mouth and tongue; for
"speaking the truth in love" (Eph. iv. 15). Every dear
child will do what his Father bids him. He tries the
edge of the weapon on truth to honour the giver God,
and on love to soothe the sorrows of brother men. The
tongue is one, and that not the least, of the ten talents.
"Occupy till I come," is the condition of the loan; near,
though unseen, is the day of reckoning.
292 A TALEBEARER.
LXII.
A TALEBEARER
"A talebearer revealeth secrets:
but he that is of a faithful spirit concealeth the matter."—xi. 13.
A TALEBEARER [double tongued] is an odious character.
He takes in all your story, if you are weak enough to
give it to him, and then runs off to the next house, and
pours it into the greedy ears of jealous neighbours. His
character is a compound of weakness and wickedness.
He is feared less than bolder criminals, and despised
more. If he were not weak, he would not act so
wickedly; but if he were not wicked, he would not act
so weakly. He breeds hatred, and spreads it. He car-
ries the infection from house to house, like a traveller,
from city to city, bringing the plague in his garments.
Families soon begin to mark him as a dangerous man;
and, in the exercise of sovereign authority within their
own borders, they prescribe a rigid quarantine. They pre-
scribe for him an offing wide enough to ensure their own
safety. The true antithesis to the talebearer is a "faith-
ful spirit." Poets have often sung the sweetness of
true friendship, but they can never reach the bottom of
it. It is a spring in the desert. Without it the weary
pilgrim would not get forward at all. Beyond computa-
tion, precious is the friend who, instead of the weakness
and wickedness of a talebearer, possesses the opposite
A TALEBEARER. 293
qualities of strength and goodness,—who is soft enough
to take in your sorrows, and firm enough to keep them.
It is a substantial help to suffering humanity, when a
being of the same nature with yourself goes into your
very heart, and yet will not divulge the secrets which he
has witnessed there. The Lord, who knows what is in
man, takes notice of these things. He provides helps
meet to us in our griefs. He provides human sympathy
for human sorrow to lean upon. He approves when any
one, for his sake, and at his bidding, acts the part of a
friend to a needy brother. He gives, indeed, to his own
people such duties as these to exercise their graces on.
"Without spot or wrinkle, or any such thing," is their
ultimate, acquirement, and should be their present aim.
They are glad to be employed by Him, and like Him.
Apprentices learning a trade, they do not look for wages.
Rather they count themselves obliged, when subjects and
opportunities are afforded to try upon, that by exercise
they may grow more skilful in acting the part of faithful
friends.
294 DEBTS AND SURETIES.
LXIII.
DEBTS AND SURETIES.
"He that is surety for a stranger shall smart for it;
and he that hateth suretiship is sure."—xi. 15. See also ch. vi. 1-6.
RASH suretiship, and the ruin that follows it, seem to
have been common in those days, as well as our own.
The traffic of ancient times was small, in comparison with
the vast system of exchange which now compasses the
whole world, like network; but the same vices that we
lament marred it, and the same righteousness that we
desiderate would have healed its ailments. Neither the
law of gravitation nor the law of righteousness has
changed since the time of Solomon; both are as powerful
now as they were then, and as pervasive. The things
are different in form and bulk, but ancient and modern
merchandise are of the same nature, and subject to the
same laws. As to the laws, whether physical or moral,
there is nothing new under the sun.
In those primitive times, it seems, as in our own, some
men desired to get faster forward in the world than their
circumstances legitimately permitted. They were deter-
mined to get up, although they had nothing to stand
upon. Their ambition fretted at the slow and vulgar
method of climbing up by patient industry; they would
ascend by a bound. They must get a neighbour to
become security for them, that they may get the use of
DEBTS AND SURETIES. 295
money which is not their own. They will throw for a
fortune to themselves at another's risk. There were also
others, it appears, so simple as to become surety for the
adventurers, perhaps because they could not command
enough of courage to refuse a friend, although they
thereby cast into a lottery the home and the food of their
own families.
The warning does not of course discourage considerate
kindness in bearing a deserving man over a temporary
pressure. When you have ascertained the character of
the person, and measured the amount of his need; when
you have balanced your own affairs, and discovered that
they have buoyancy sufficient to bear both yourself and
your brother over the strait, then do a brother's turn,
and enjoy a brother's love. No precept of the Bible
demands that we should harden our hearts against the
claims of the needy. The Bible permits and requires
more of kindness to our brother than we have ever
shown him yet; but it does not allow us to do a cer-
tain substantial evil, for the sake of a distant shadowy
good. It condemns utterly the rash engagements which,
under pretence of doing a kindness to one, inflicts injus-
tice on a hundred. Righteousness, in all times, and all
circumstances, reclaims against the blind effort which, for
the sake of supporting a tottering fabric, incurs the risk
of bringing your own house down about your ears, and
crushing beneath its ruins many innocent victims.
We make no inquiry into the method of conducting
pecuniary transactions in the days of Solomon. Our
object is not antiquarian research, but the rebuke of pre-
296 DEBTS AND SURETIES.
sent wrong, and the establishment of righteousness. The
most convenient method will be to apply what we count
the straight line to a number of cases that are daily
occuring in business. We shall thread them on like
beads upon a string, and every one, with the Bible in his
hand, and a conscience in his breast, may judge for him-
self whether they hang fairly.
(1.) If a merchant, possessing unencumbered twenty
thousand pounds, desires to get the use of ten thousand
more, he may legitimately obtain it in money or goods
from bankers or brother merchants, if he do not mis-
represent the real state of his affairs. But although he
really possesses twenty thousand, and think himself safer
if he convey to others in any way the impression that
he has forty thousand, in order to obtain more credit, he
infringes the law of righteousness as certainly and sin-
fully as the trickster on a lower platform, and a smaller
scale.
(2.) A man who has not more than ten pounds may
legitimately borrow ten thousand, if he can get it, after
revealing the whole case to the capitalist as thoroughly
as it is known to himself. He may be such a man, that
his character and ten pounds in hand are a better guaran-
tee than another man can give who has ten thousand
pounds, but not a character. Let the whole truth be
known—make a clear breast, and if another choose to
take the risk, you may accept the money. The same
principles would of course bind you to be at least as care-
ful of the money so obtained as if it were your own.
(3.) A merchant is engaged in extensive business.
DEBTS AND SURETIES. 297
He began it with a large capital, and good credit. In
process of time he meets with heavy losses. He dis-
covers from his balance that his assets will not cover his
liabilities. What should he do? A common maxim in
such a case is—take care not to change your house; on
no account dismiss your coachman, or sell your horses;
invite dinner parties more frequently this winter than
you did the last, and see that the luxuriance be not in
aught diminished, all to keep up your credit. Measured
by the line of God's law, all this is unmitigated dis-
honesty. It is to fence your position all round with a
battery of lies. It is to keep money on false pretences.
When you have nothing, if you keep up a show for the
purpose of persuading your creditors that you are as rich
as ever, you are cheating your neighbours. When the
ground on which a man gave you credit has fallen away,
you must let him know it. If, after revelation and ex-
planation, he think it better on the whole that you
should make another effort, it is well; let the effort be
made, but concealment in these circumstances is sheer
dishonesty.
(4.) A man has lost on his business this year. He
hopes that he will make good the loss in another and
better season. He borrows from his friends, and pushes
forward. Again at the balance it is discovered that he
is still sinking. He is below the horizon of solvency.
He owes now more than all that he has. He borrows
again, not revealing to the creditors the state of the case.
Is he justified? No, verily. The act is dishonest, and
there is a loathsome selfishness in the dishonesty; he is
298 DEBTS AND SURETIES.
pushing forward, knowing that if he succeed the gain
will be his own, if he fail, the loss will lie on his neigh-
bours, for he has nothing to lose.
(5.) A man, honest and honourable, is conducting a
legitimate business in a legitimate way. He is indebted
to his customers, and his customers are indebted to him.
The whole process goes regularly and fairly on. He
gains a few hundreds every year for the support of his
family, and there is at all times a balance in his favour
over the transactions in the mass. A friend not con-
nected with him in business comes to this man, and re-
quests the favour of his name to a bill by which he may
obtain the use of ten thousand for a few months, to en-
able him to take advantage of a promising speculation
(speculations are always promising). He yields. In an
evil hour he writes his name on that paper. Now his
position in relation to his ordinary creditors is wholly
changed. They knew him only in the transactions of
business. They had, in the course of these transactions,
given him credit to a legitimate amount, and for a rea-
sonable time. When they gave it, he had the means of
repaying all. Now he has contracted, without telling
them, a liability which, if it become due, will swallow
up all his substance, and leave his lawful creditors unpaid.
To contract that liability was unjust.
(6.) One case more we shall adduce, connected like the
last immediately and directly with suretiship, and
selected as a specimen of the extravagant and dangerous
excesses to which speculation runs in this feverish age.
Suretiship, as distinct from money lending, has been
DEBTS AND SURETIES. 299
converted into a business, and prosecuted for profit. A
species of underwriters has sprung secretly up, who in-
sure against losses, not on the sea of water, but on the
more treacherous waves of gambling speculation. You
are engaged in business, with large assets and heavy lia-
bilities, but with the reputation in society of substan-
tial wealth. Another man is struggling against the tide,
and is no longer able to keep his head above water. He
applies to a neighbour as needy as himself. A bill with
both names attached is presented to the banker. The man
of money shakes his head, and requests time to consider.
But time is the very thing which the two adventurers can-
not spare. Money they must have, and they must have it
now. They present themselves with their bill in your
counting-house. They want your name; you will never
be troubled—all that they want is your name, to enable
them to clear a pressing difficulty. You have no interest
in them, and will not give them your name for love; but
you have an eye to your own interest, and will give it
for money. The terms are discussed—how much per
cent for your name; the terms are adjusted, and the
bargain struck. If the applicant is needy, he will offer
a large premium—not for the loan of money, be it ob-
served, for the poor borrower is obliged to pay the in-
terest to the bank besides, and you do not give him a
farthing, even in loan—he agrees to pay a large premium
to you for the use of your name, to enable him to borrow
in another quarter. If traffic becomes extensive, large
profits may come in for a time; but in the nature of
things the medicine aggravates the speculator's disease.
300 DEBTS AND SURETIES.
The traffic becomes more and more dangerous. The
hollow principals fail to meet their engagements. The
liability falls back on you. Your capital is swallowed
up, your family ruined, and your ordinary creditors de-
frauded.
Enough of these examples: now for the elucidation of
the principles of truth and righteousness as applied to
modern trade. We are met here by the old cry, that
business cannot be conducted at all if these principles
are closely insisted on. Let business perish if it must
needs rise on downcast and dishonoured Truth! Let
business creep on the ground, in isolated acts of exchange,
like the diminutive and simple transactions of children
and savages, if its vast and symmetrical structure can be
reared only upon the wreck of righteousness. But we
are not shut up to such a dire alternative. Business, in
all its extent, and through all its complications, will stand
more securely on a basis of perfect righteousness, and
move more sweetly when every wheel turns in a bedding of
transparent truth. The goodly machine needs no under-
hand dealing and false representation to keep it going.
These are the things that make it jerk and creak, and
break and rend those who handle it.
Specifically, as to sureties, the law of the Lord gives
no harsh recommendation, and countenances no selfish
neglect of a neighbour in need. Help him, if he is de-
serving and you are able; but help him out of your own
means, and do not mortgage for that object the money
that really belongs to another man. You have a right
to pledge your own money in the case, if you think the
DEBTS AND SURETIES 301
case is good; but you have no right to pledge mine also
in it, however good it may be: but you do pledge the
money of other people, the moment that you bind your-
self for more than you have of your own.
We are very far from saying or thinking that, in the
intricate avenues of modern merchandise, a strictly con-
scientious man will always see his way clearly, and never
meet with difficulties. We are well aware that, in the
evolution of circumstances, an honest man may suddenly
find himself in an inclosure where it is exceedingly diffi-
cult to determine in what direction righteousness leads.
Let it be supposed that he fears God and regards man;
that he would do justly at all hazards if he were sure
what course would, on the whole, be most just. We
grant readily that the line of duty may, in some cases,
be involved in great darkness, and that with a pure pur-
pose the man may sometimes take a step which involves
himself and others in the direst disasters. Flesh and
blood ourselves, and knowing that even when pure prin-
ciple reigns in the heart, the path of practical duty, in
any line of life, may be involved in many doubts, we
would not proudly dictate to a brother on difficulties
which beset his steps, and from which our different pro-
fession, not our superior probity, keeps us free. First, in
the name of the Lord and in the cause of righteousness,
we denounce all dishonesty and untruth, however large
and intricate the transactions in question may be. And
then, with human sympathy and in conscious weakness,
we counsel all good men engaged in business to be aware
of its dangers, and to watch and pray that they enter not
302 DEBTS AND SURETIES.
into temptation. In this line of life as in every other,
there are trials of faith and of other graces. All that we
demand, and all that is needed, is that Christian mer-
chants take their Christianity with them into merchan-
dise, and keep it with them all the way. In every case
seek the Lord's will and you will find it. Consult the
honour of Christ and the safety of your soul as to what
business you will go into, and how far in you will go.
You have not fulfilled your duty when you are able to
say that you did not of set purpose do any wrong.
The question is, where the path is slippery and many
falling, how painful and prayerful were you that you
might not stumble unconsciously into evil. A Christian
is not forbidden to go into business; but if he look
within and around, he will discover that his watchword
there should be "Fear, and sin not."
VIRTUE ITS OWN REWARD. 303
LXIV.
VIRTUE ITS OWN REWARD.
"The merciful man doeth good to his own soul;
but he that is cruel troubleth his own flesh."—xi. 17.
BLESSED are the merciful., All the good they do to
others returns with interest into their own bosoms. "It
is more blessed to give than to receive." In every act
that mercy prompts there are two parties who obtain a
benefit,—the person in need, who is the object of com-
passion, and the person not in need, who pities his suf-
fering brother. Both get good, but the giver gets the
larger share. In common life, the act of showing mercy
to the needy is very good for the man who shows it.
The good Samaritan who bathed the wounds and pro-
vided for the wants of a plundered Jew, obtained a
greater profit on the transaction than the sufferer who
was saved by his benevolence. It is like God to consti-
tute his world so. Even Christ himself, in the act of
showing mercy, has his reward. When He sees of the
travail of his soul He is satisfied.
Like other fixtures in nature, this principle has its
counterpart. When light departs, darkness comes in its
stead. When a human bosom is a stranger to the blessed-
ness of the merciful, it tastes the misery of the cruel or
the careless. As mercy blesses, cruelty torments both
the parties,—the one who bears and the one who inflicts
304 VIRTUE ITS OWN REWARD.
it. This is a law of God, set deep in the constitution of
things—a law that magnifies his mercy. A man cannot
hurt a neighbour, without hurting more deeply himself.
The rebound is heavier than the blow. The man who
chastises his brother with whips, will himself; by the
movements of providence, be chastised with scorpions.
Such is the fence which the Creator has set up to keep
man off his fellow. This dividing line is useful now to
check the ravages of sin; but when perfect love has
come, that divider, no longer needed, will be no longer
seen. It is like one of those black jagged ridges of rock
that at low water stretch across the sand from the edge
of the cultivated ground to the margin of the sea, an im-
passable, an unapproachable barrier: when the tide rises,
all is level and it is nowhere seen. This law of God,
rising as a rampart between man and man, is confined to
this narrow six thousand year strip of time. In the per-
fect state it will act no more, for want of material to act
upon.
EVERY SEED BEARS FRUIT OF ITS OWN KIND. 305
LXV.
EVERY SEED BEARS FRUIT OF ITS OWN KIND.
"The wicked worketh a deceitful work:
but to him that soweth righteousness shall be a sure reward."—xi. 18.
WICKEDNESS is a work that deceives its performer. It
may do the harm which he intended to a neighbour, but
it cannot procure the good which he expected for himself.
By necessity of his condition, every man's life, and every
moment of it, is a sowing. The machine is continually
moving over the field and shaking; it cannot, even for a
moment be made to stand still, so as not to sow. It is
not an open question at all whether I shall sow or
not to-day; the only question to be decided is, Shall I
sow good seed or bad? Every man always is sowing
for his own harvest in eternity either tares or wheat.
According as a man soweth, so shall he also reap. He
that sows the wind of vanity shall reap the whirlwind of
wrath. Suppose a man should collect a quantity of small
gravel and dye it carefully, so that it should resemble
wheat, and sow it in his field in spring, expecting that
he would reap a crop of wheat like his neighbours in
harvest. The man is mad; he is a fool to think that by
his silly trick he can evade the laws of nature, and mock
nature's God. Yet equally foolish is the conduct, and
far heavier the punishment, of the man who sows wicked-
ness now and expects to reap safety at last. Sin is not
306 EVERY SEED BEARS FRUIT OF ITS OWN KIND.
only profitless and disastrous; it is eminently a deceitful
work. Men do not of set purpose cast themselves away.
Sin cheats a sinner out of his soul. The devil, man's
great adversary, acts by deceiving. He is a liar from
the beginning.
The same law sparkles brightly and beauteously in the
counterpart: "To him that soweth righteousness shall be
a sure reward." The reward is mire, because it comes in
the way of natural law: The reward follows righteous-
ness as fruit follows the seed. The only righteous man.
that ever lived, the Righteous One, sowed in this desert
world--sowed in tears; but he sowed righteousness. Out
of that sowing a great increase, has already sprung, and
a greater coming. From that handful on the moun-
tain top a harvest shall wave like Lebanon. “Come ye
blessed of my. Father, inherit the kingdom.” Behold the
husbandman returning home with joy, bringing his
sheaves with him. To his members in their own place
the same law holds good. Sowing righteousness is never,
and nowhere, lost labour. Every act done by God's
grace, and at His bidding, is living and fruitful. It may
appear to go out of sight, like seed beneath the furrow
but will rise again. Sow on, Christians! Sight will
not follow the seed far; but when sight fails sow in faith,
and you will reap in joy soon. More of the word of
God is scattered over the world in our day than at any
previous period of the Christian dispensation. The re-
sult, though unseen, is not doubtful. In grace as in
nature, things proceed by law, and the ultimate result is
sure.
GOD'S PEOPLE ARE GOD’S DELIGHT. 307
LXVI.
GOD'S PEOPLE ARE GOD'S DELIGHT.
“They that are of a froward heart are abomination to the Lord:
but such as are upright in their way, are his delight."—xi. 20.
To think of God only as "angry with the wicked''
but half truth; and half a truth becomes practically a
falsehood. To picture our Father in heaven all in shade
is to hide half His loveliness, and keep His creatures
terrified away. There is another side of His character,
and the two together make up the divine perfection.
The righteous Lord loveth righteousness. It is an en-
couraging and not a presumptuous thought, that the
Holy One delights in every good, thing which grace has
wrought in His children. "Ye are God's husbandry."
That field He watches and waters night and day. Many
weeds grow there to grieve Him, and many spots lie
barren; but our "Father is the Husbandman;" the Hus-
bandman is a Father, and He suffers long. He bears
with the barrenness of His garden; and, in so far as it
thrives, he tastes the fruit and counts it pleasant. It
was a wilderness until. He, in sovereign mercy, took it in,
and many things mar its fruitfulness yet; but He does
not therefore despise or desert it. He loves all that He
recognises as His own there. That humble and broken
heart becomes His dwelling-place.
308 A JEWEL ILL SET.
LXVII.
A JEWEL ILL SET.
"As a jewel of gold in a swine's snout,
so is a fair woman which is without discretion."—xi. 22.
THE lines of this picture are few and bold. The details
are not elaborated; but by one stroke the likeness is
caught, and with unwavering hand it is held up to public
gaze. The conceptions and expressions here are peculiar
and memorable. They are remarkable alike for the un-
varnished homeliness of the allusion, and the permanent,
palpable truth of the picture. The very rudeness of the
imagery is designed, and serves a purpose. An analogy
might have been found fitted to convey a true sentiment
on the point, and steering clear of associations which
affect the mind with a measure of disgust. But that
very disgust is an essential part of the impression to be
conveyed. The words of the Lord are tried words. The
comparison is chosen for the purpose of setting before us
an outrageous incongruity—the conjunction of two things
whose union is palpably and monstrously inappropriate.
Both the judgment and the taste must be educated. It
is necessary that we should both see the thing to be
wrong, and feel it to be revolting. We need both to
have the understanding enlightened and the affections
exercised. Christian's affections should be trained to
strike out positive and strong in both directions; he
A JEWEL ILL SET. 309
should love the lovely and hate the hateful. Both emo-
tions should start quickly, like instincts, when their
objects appear; both should be hearty and effective. A
good man loathes evil as much as he loves good. The
law that action and reaction are equal and opposite holds
good in morals as well as in physics. The righteous
Lord loveth righteousness, and it is but the other side of
that same glory that glances in the rebuke of lukewarm
Laodicea, "I will spue thee out of my mouth" (Rev.
iii. 16.)
Personal beauty is not a thing to be despised. It is a
work of God, and none of his works are done in vain.
We do not count it a man's duty to be unimpressed by
the grandeur of a lofty mountain, or the loveliness of a
starry sky. It is obvious that human kind are the chief
of God's works on earth, and that in the human form is
displayed the highest beauty of creation. Beauty is a
talent, and has a power. Call it, if you will, a power
like that of a sharp knife, dangerous in the hands of the
weak or the wicked; but still it is a power the gift of
God, and capable of being ranked among the all things
that advance his glory. Like wealth or wisdom, or any
other talent, it may be possessed by the humble, and em-
ployed for good. If the heart be holy and the aim true,
personal beauty will enlarge the sphere and double the
resources of beneficence. The same spread full sail may
speed the ship on her course, or dash her on the rock of
doom. If the beautiful be not also good, beauty becomes
an object of disgust and a cause of ruin. For such a
spread of sail, and such a breeze as it is sure to catch, a
310 A JEWEL ILL SET.
greater than ordinary amount of solid deep ballast is
needed in the body of the character, not only for
tended usefulness; but even for simple preservation from
quick perdition.
The lesson on this subject appears in the word in
form of peculiar homeliness: we must beware, lest, in
straining after refinement, we let its, strength slip through
our fingers. If we would maintain congruity between
the comment and the text, we must go to our object, by
a straight short line. Let a man beware of being tricked
and caught and chained by a woman's beauty, so as to
be dragged through the mire by the bewitching bond.
When an impure character is clothed, in corporeal loveli-
ness, it is the spirit of darkness appearing as an angel of
light, enticing to devour. A beautiful woman who is
proud, flippant, selfish, false, is miserable herself, and dan-
gerous to others. It is a combination to be loathed and
shunned. A swine wallowing in the mire is not a crea-
ture that you would follow and embrace, although she
had a jewel of gold in her snout! Such is the glass in
which the Bible bids us see the sin and folly of the man
who gives himself over to the fascination of a worthless
heart, because it is covered by a fair skin.
Women who have beauty above the average should be
peculiarly watchful on that side, lest they sin and suffer
there. You have a jewel of gold; don't put it in a
swine's snout. The misapplication, will prostitute the
gift; the incongruity will be repulsive to all whose tastes
are true. It will attract the vain, and repel the solid.
There are diversities of operation under the ministry of
A JEWEL ILL SET 311
the same spirit. For discipline to human souls in time,
deformity is given to one, and beauty to another. The
chief consideration for each is how she may best bear the
trial, so as to get it enlisted among the workers for good,
and instruments of saving. If both are saved, it will be
a pleasant exercise to compare notes of their several paths
and several burdens, when they meet in equal loveliness,
without, spot or wrinkle, in the presence of the. Lord
If it were our part to judge, most of us would think it
probable that beauty is the greater trial, and that under
it a greater proportion stumble and fall. But we are not
permitted to judge, for we are not able to judge aright.
We do not see far. The Lord is judge himself and the
day shall declare whether beauty, in filling the soul with
vanity, or deformity, in fretting it with envy, has been
actually the more successful instrument of evil in Satan's
hands. Meantime, those who on either extremity have
a weight to bear, should watch unto prayer, and cast
their burden on the Lord; while we, the mass of human-
kind, in the middle, who in that respect have neither
poverty nor riches, should be humbly thankful to God
for casting our lot in a safer place, and marking out for
us an easier path.
212 THE DESIRE OF THE RIGHTEOUS.
LXVIII.
THE DESIRE OF THE RIGHTEOUS.
"The desire of the righteous is only good.—xi. 23.
IN the preceding chapter, we learned that "the desire of
the righteous shall be granted:" here we are told that it
is good. The fruit we gathered on a former page; and
now the tree that bore it is displayed. A good tree
bringeth forth good fruit. Holy desires implanted in the
heart will issue in glad enjoyments. "Delight thyself
also in the Lord, and He shall give thee the desires of
thine heart" (Ps. xxxvii. 4).
The new nature has new affections. Every creature
after its kind. The desires of this new man which has
been "put on" in conversion are "only good;" but the
desires of the old nature are not yet destroyed, and a life-
long conflict is maintained between them. In every
Christian while he lives there is a warfare between two
opposite principles. Paul stands forth as the type of the
truly converted, but not perfectly sanctified disciple—
"When I would do good, evil is present with me" (Rom.
vii. 21). There is a great tumult in a human breast
where these two contrary currents contend. It is like
the meeting-place of the rising tide and the descending
torrent. One stream, pure and transparent, is rising
mysteriously up; another, yellow and turbid, is rushing,
according to its constant nature, down. The contention
THE DESIRE OF THE RIGHTEOUS. 313
is sharp; but it is soon over. The pure overcomes the
impure. That which rises up, apparently contrary to
law, overcomes that which flows down obviously accord-
ing to law. The ocean, entering that channel, over-
powers and beats back the mountain stream. It is thus
that the tide which issues from the Infinite, and acts
against the law of the carnal mind, arrests and throws
back the carnal mind, notwithstanding its long possession
and its impetuous flow. The tide that rises is under
law, as well as the stream that descends; but the law
lies deeper among the things of God. That rising tide
is not only pure in itself, it has Omnipotence behind to
urge it on. There will be a mixture at the point of con-
tact, and while the conflict rages; but soon the unclean
will be driven back, and the channel will be filled from
brim to brim by a pure ascending stream.
Pure in character, and upward in direction, is the cur-
rent of a righteous man's desire. This description is a
standing rebuke of our poor attainments. How faintly
is the attraction from heaven felt, how feebly flow the
heart's emotions thitherward, how deeply tinged, even
in their upward course, by the mingling remnants of the
downward current! And yet there is encouragement
here, as well as rebuke; this purity of desire is attain-
able, in some measure, on the earth. The design of dis-
cipline is to increase it; and it will be perfect when the
discipline is done. The hope of final and complete suc-
cess is a powerful motive to present exertion. When
the new man is perfect, his desires will be only good,
with no admixture of evil; and when the desires are
314 THE DESIRE OF THE RIGHTEOUS.
only good, they will all be gratified. When the last ruse
of the flesh is crucified, disappointments will cease. If
my heart's desires were all and only good, they would
be like God's; and when my will is God's will, it shall
be accomplished, for He will do all his pleasure.
SCATTERING TO KEEP, AND KEEPING TO SCATTER 313
LXIX.
SCATTERING TO KEEP, AND KEEPING TO
SCATTER
"There is that scattereth, and yet increaseth; and there is that withholdeth
more than is meet, but it teadeth to poverty."—xi. 24.
THE maxim, although in form approaching the paradox.
has become familiar by frequent use. If any of us should
hear it now for the first time, we would be startled by
its boldness; but the proverb, like a well worn coin, has
become smooth by long continued handling, and it passes
easily from mind to mind; in the intercourse of life. To
have undergone so much wear, and yet to be accepted in
the market-place for "all its original worth, is evidence,
both that the metal is pure, and that the stamp of roy-
alty is on it. Day by day this proverb of Solomon is
offered and accepted on our streets, as a ground, legiti-
mate and authoritative, for giving freely of our means in
behalf of objects that are acknowledged good. By Christ-
tians, who labour for the good of men, it is boldly
applied; and wherever there is an enlightened con-
science, and a sound understanding, it is felt to be appli-
cable. As the formal and authoritative expression of a
fact which may be observed in the history of Providence;
it is a word of great practical value. It is a sharp wea-
pon, always at hand, by which a man may deal a blow
against incipient selfishness in himself or his neighbour.
The conception is similar to the sowing of righteous-
316 SCATTERING TO KEEP, AND KEEPING TO SCATTER.
ness which occurred before. In agriculture, to scatter
corn, is the sure and only way to increase it. It is a
species of faith that the cultivator of the soil exercises
when he casts good grain into the ground. In point of
fact, the exercise is easy, and the mind is not racked by
stretching far into the dark future for a pillar of truth to
support its trust; still, in its nature, it is faith in the
unseen. The direct design is to increase corn, and with
that view the man who possesses it scatters what he has.
His faith is rewarded by a manifold return: if, in stupid,
wilful, short-sighted penuriousness; he had withheld the
seed, the hoarding would have tended to poverty.
To distribute portions of our wealth in schemes and acts
of wise philanthropy, is like casting into the ground as
seed a proportion of the last year's harvest. It goes out of
your sight for the moment, but it will spring in secret, and
come back to your own bosom, like manna from heaven.
An unwise man may indeed scatter his corn on barren
rocks, or equally barren sands, and though he sow boun-
tifully, he will reap sparingly there. So, in the moral
region, the increase is not absolutely in proportion to the
profusion of the scattering. When a man lays out large
sums on unworthy objects, to feed his own vanity, or
gratify his own whim, he neither does nor gets good.
The outlay is in its own nature, and necessarily unprofit-
able. Sound judgment is as necessaay, in selecting the
objects of philanthropy, and determining the proportion
of effort that should be bestowed on each, as in deciding
where and when the seed should be sown. To give
money, for example, indiscriminately to street beggars,
SCATTERING TO KEEP, AND KEEPING TO SCATTER. 317
who tell a whining tale, and cunningly enact distress, is
worse than to sow precious seed on the sand of the sea-
shore. The seed cast on the sand will be lost: money
given to the profligate is lost, and more. It is not bar-
ren; it multiplies and replenishes the earth with vice. There
are many fields for scattering contribution and effort on,
both needful and promising. In educating the young,
in reclaiming the vicious, in supporting the aged poor, in
healing the sick, and in making known the gospel to all,
we have ample fields to cultivate, and the prospect of
large returns to cheer us in the toil.
The law that judicious liberality does not impoverish,
and selfish niggardliness does not enrich, may be seen in
its effects by any intelligent observer. If one, not con-
tent with the homely evidence of experience, should
demand how this can be, it would be sufficient answer
simply to repeat that it is, and appeal to the history of
the city or the generation. But, farther, we may answer,
by another question, how does the material seed grow in
the material ground? In point of fact, it does grow; and
this is the sum of our knowledge regarding it. Only
the pride of the rankest ignorance imagines that we
know how or why it grows. A step deeper, as was to
be expected, are the ways of God in the moral processes,
and on those borders where moral causes touch the mate-
rial to produce sensible effects; but in both regions, man
must ever be speechless under the challenge, "Cast thou
by searching find out God?"
If we understand the maxim, we should act on it; and
if we would act on it more, we would come to understand
318 SCATTERING TO KEEP, AND KEEPING TO SCATTER.
it better. Both to our money and ourselves, it is
better to wear than to rust. This it an earnest time.
Seek a good investment lay it out. In the tides
and currents of that commercial sea which now as one
connected ocean encircles all the earth, it it observed as a
law that when many and great losses are incurred in one
region, there is a flow of money into some other channel.
Of late, investments in man's hands for time have not been
secure. In that department we have heard many a heavy
crash, and been called to pity the mangled victims as they
crawled from beneath the ruins. Might we not expect
that after these disappointments men would be seen
streaming over to the other side, and hastening to invest
in God's hands for eternity? This lending to the Lord,
when a surplus accrues, affords the best security, and
ensures the largest return. if the Son of Man should
now come, would He find faith in the earth? We think
ourselves eminently a practical generation; but we should
beware lest we mistake the merely unspiritual for the
profitably practical. A carcass will not serve the pur-
poses of a man. Action is useless or worse except in so
far as it has true faith to energize and direct it. The
material acquisitions of the age will become a heavier
heap on the grave of humanity, if the Spirit of God be
grieved away. The large and complicated body of our
material prosperity will, if its soul goes out, only encumber
us with a greater bulk of corruption. Faith it the ani-
mating soul of practice. Men cannot get forward even in
things temporal unless they believe that God is; and that
He is the rewarder of them that diligently seek Him.
THE WATERER IS WATERED. 319
LXX.
THE WATERER IS WATERED.
"The liberal soul shall be made fat;
and he that watereth shall be watered also himself.” —xi. 25.
IT is announced here that the bountiful shall be enriched;
and that law is expressed in a simple, intelligible, and
memorable figure. —“He that watereth shall be watered
also himself." How wisely and kindly God has bound his
worlds into one, making all depend on each, and each on
all! When we look up to the heavens, the moon and the
stars which He hath made, we find there a law by which
all the worlds of space are linked together. Our earth
affects the moon, and the moon affects the earth; each
planet influences all the rest: the removal of one would
disturb the order of the whole. The well-being of all is
concerned in the right working of each. This law per-
vades the works of God. Souls are linked to souls in the
spiritual firmament, by a bond equally unseen, but equally
powerful. One necessarily, affects for good, or evil all the
rest in proportion to the closeness of its relations, and the
weight of its influence. You draw another to keep him
from error: that other's weight which you have taken on
keeps you steadier in your path. You water one who is
ready to wither away; and although the precious stream
seems to sink into the earth, it rises to heaven and hovers
over you, and falls again upon yourself in refreshing dew.
320 THE WATERER IS WATERED.
It comes to this: if we be not watering we are wither-
ing. There are only two things in time worthy of having
the whole force of an immortal mind directed upon them,
and these two are both here. The one is to be in Christ
ourselves saved; and the other, to be used by Christ in
saving others. "None of us liveth to himself, and no
man dieth to himself. For whether we live, we live unto
the Lord; and whether we die, we die unto the Lord:
whether we live therefore, or die, we are the Lord's "
(Rom. xiv. 7, 8).
To water green flowers that they may not wither, or
withered ones that they may revive, is one of the sweetest
employments that fall to the lot of man. Moral and
natural beauty are so entwined together in the act, that
his spirit must be dull indeed who is not drawn by the
double attraction. When the tastes of the spiritual life
are kept keen by frequent exercise, it must be a strong
and pure pleasure to be employed as a vessel to convey
water from the well of life to souls which would wither
for want of it. To be the instrument of keeping fresh a
lively plant, or making fresh a drooping one, in the garden
of God, is an occupation that angels might eagerly apply
for; but this work is all reserved for the children of the
family: servants are employed in other and outer things.
There are diversities of occupation for the children, as
well as diversities of operation by the Lord. To water
flowers in a sheltered garden, at the going down of a
summer's sun, is one work for man; and to ply the
hatchet on the hoary trunks of the primeval forest is
another. The works are very diverse, and yet the same
THE WATERER IS WATERED. 321
hand may do them both. The department of the Lord's
work which this text commends is of the gentlest and
most winsome kind. It differs as much from direct
assault on Satan's stronghold for the first conviction of
sinners, as that clearing of the first spot in the solitude
which tries the strong arm of the emigrant differs from
the watering of a garden-flower, which may be done by
a woman's hand; but it is a work commanded by God,
and needful for a brother. If we are his, and yield our-
selves to him as instruments, he will at one time nerve
us for rough work, and at another solace us with gentle
occupation. He has both departments in his power, and
in dividing he does all things well.
Opportunities and calls swarm at every turn. The
blind may never see the case or the time in which he can
do any good; but where the eyes are opened the willing
man sees a mountain full of them.
Here is a young woman, into whose heart the word
came with power in early youth. Through a storm of
terrible conviction she emerged into peace. She sat down
at the Lord's table in the church, and took the standing
of the Lord's disciple in the world. She has grown up,
and come out: perhaps by her parents she was ostenta-
tiously brought out from the kindly shade of youthful
retirement into the blaze of the world's hot light.
Passions are kindled in her breast, —passions for dress,
for company, for pleasure, which formerly she felt not and
feared not. The sun has risen with a burning heat on the
tender plant, not yet deeply rooted. Forthwith it droops,
and is ready to die. Run and water that weakling.
322 THE WATERER IS WATERED.
Mingle faithful reproof with patient kindness. At the
same moment touch her weakness with human sympathy,
and her sin with God's awful word. When she feels that
a disciple cares for her, she may be more easily convinced
that the Lord cares for her too. Gently lead her to the
beauty of holiness, that there she may lose relish for the
pleasures of sin. She may be saved, and you may be the
instrument of saving her. I have seen a plant of a cer-
tain species that had been exposed all day, unsheltered,
unwatered, beneath a burning sun, bent and withered
towards evening, and to all appearance dead; but when
one discovered its distress, and instantly watered it, the
plant revived so suddenly and so completely as to strike
inexperienced observers with astonishment.
Oh, it is sweet employment to be the waterer of a
withering soul! It is gentle work for tender workers.
"Who is on the Lord's side let him come," and labour in
this department. The work is pleasant and profitable.
In the keeping of this commandment there is a great
reward. To be a vessel conveying refreshment from the
fountain-head of grace to a fainting soul in the wilderness
is the surest way of keeping your own spirit fresh, and
your experience ever new.
RAISING THE MARKET, ETC. 323
LXXI.
RAISING THE MARKET—THE PRACTICE AND
THE PENALTY.
"He that withholdeth corn, the people shall curse him:
but blessing shall be upon the head of him that selleth it."—xi. 26.
To keep up grain in order to raise the market is a prac-
tice of very old standing, and the world has not done
with it yet. The manner in which this word deals with
it is worthy of observation. This law bears no mark of
having emanated from the ruling class of a nation. Here,
as elsewhere, the Bible holds the balance even between
the wealthy few and the needy many. Either class pos-
sesses its own peculiar power; one the power of wealth,
another the power of numbers. The domination of any
part over another is tyranny: liberty lies in the just
balance of all interests. In this brief maxim no arbitrary
rule is laid down to the possessor of corn, that he must
sell at a certain period, and at a certain price: and yet the
hungry are not left without a protecting law. The pro-
tection of the weak is entrusted not to small police regu-
lations, but to great self-acting providential arrangements.
The double fact is recorded in terms of peculiar distinct-
ness, that he who in times of scarcity keeps up his corn
in order to enrich himself is loathed by the people, and
he who sells it freely is loved. This is all. There is no
further legislation on the subject.
324 RAISING THE MARKET—
The wisdom of this course lies in its reserve. The his-
tory of some modern nations, especially that of France,
reveals the disastrous consequences of forcing sales and
regulating prices by arbitrary legislation. When a ruler
rashly puts his hand to the wheel of providence to guide
its movements, although it is done from the best of
motives, he hurts both himself and his subjects. In the
Bible no law is enacted, and no penalty prescribed. The
evil doer is left under a penalty which legislation can
neither abate nor enforce: "the people shall curse him."
He becomes an object of detestation to the community in
which he lives. No law and no government can shield
him from that punishment. They might as well attempt
to prevent the clouds from coming between his corn-fields
and the sun. Nor is the punishment light. To be the
object of aversion among his neighbours is a heavy inflic-
tion upon a human being. No man can despise it. What
though I be lord of the land, as far as my eye can see on
every side; if the men and women and children who live
on it loathe and shun me, I am miserable. When from
the battlements of my castle I survey the landscape, and
see the blue smoke from many a cottage curling up to the
sky, the scene will to me have no sweetness, if I know
that there rises with it a sigh to the Husband of the
widow and the Father of the orphan for a judgment on
my head. My barns may be full, but my heart will be
empty. This, in the last resort, is the protection of the
poor and the punishment of the oppressor. The mightiest
man desires the blessing of the people, and dreads their
curse. Wealth would be a weapon too powerful for the
THE PRACTICE AND THE PENALTY. 325
liberty of men, if he who wields it were not confined
within narrow limits by the weakness of humanity, com-
mon to him with the meanest of the people. In the
necessary dependence of man upon man lies the ultimate
protection of the weak and the ultimate limit of the
powerful.
In our country, and in our time, the scale of operations
has been prodigiously enlarged, but they do not, in virtue
of their magnitude, escape from the control of the provi-
dential laws. Latterly the contest with us has not lain
between a single holder of grain and the labouring poor of
the nearest village; the whole nation was divided into
two hostile camps. Agriculture and manufactures were
ranged against each other. In the main it was a battle
between those who sell bread and those who buy it. The
bone of contention was not precisely whether corn should
be hoarded or sold, but whether the buyers should be
permitted to range the world freely for a market. The
price of food in this country was formerly kept up, not
by individuals withholding it from sale, but by the
legislature preventing free importation. The land-owners
held that peculiar burdens were laid on them, and claimed,
therefore, corresponding protection in the form of a tax
on foreign corn. Whatever amount of reality there might
be in their plea, the form in which the issue was sub-
mitted was to their side altogether adverse. Their
demand was, close the foreign market from the people,
that we may get a higher price. They believed that they
had a right to compensation; but their position was most
unfortunate. It was defended at a great disadvantage; its
326 RAISING THE MARKET, ETC.
defenders accordingly were driven away before the onset
of the multitude. All this was accomplished by peace-
ful moral means. It proceeded with utmost regularity
under the great providential law or fact, "He that with-
holdeth corn, the people shall curse him." The tide of the
people's displeasure, stimulated and directed by vigorous
leaders, was steadily rising, and the opposing line, fearing
that it should swell into a "curse," and burst into civil
broil, gave way and submitted to defeat. The issue has
been, not the triumph of one class and the prostration of
another, but, the equal benefit of all. Scarcely a remnant
of party conflict, or even party feeling on that subject,
now lingers within our borders. Buyers and sellers agree
that corn shall not be withheld, come from what quarter
of the world it may. The muttering curse has died away,
and mutual blessings circulate from side to side of our
favoured island home. "Bless the Lord, O my soul,
and forget not all his benefits!"
THE TREE AND ITS BRANCH. 327
LXXI.
THE TREE AND ITS BRANCH.
"He that trusteth in his riches shall fall:
but the righteous shall flourish as a branch."—xi. 23.
SUPPOSE the world to be scorched by drought, as com-
pletely as it was deluged by water in Noah's day. Vege-
table life disappears. Trees, shrubs, and plants remain
where they were; but they are the sapless monuments of
a former glory. Every root is rottenness, and the stiffened
blossoms will at a touch of the finger go up like dust.
The circulation is arrested, the life-sap is exhaled, and the
vegetation of a world lies dead upon its surface. On hill
or dale the observer's weary eye can find no green or grow-
ing thing to rest upon. On every side are the withered
remnants of what once were trees, but no life. The
branches are very many and very dry—dry as the bones
of the unburied dead.
Can these dry branches live? No; they cannot. Mois-
ture now would not restore them. Rain may preserve
living plants, but cannot quicken the dead.
As you stand gazing on the desolation—weeping over
a barren world, a new sight attracts your eye. From
heaven a living tree descends. It is planted in the un-
moistened dust—the living among the dead. It grows
by its own life, in spite of the earth's barrenness. It
spreads over the land. The hills are veiled by its shade.
328 THE TREE AND ITS BRANCH.
It stretches its boughs on the one hand to the sea, and on
the other to the river. This heavenly plant is a root in
a dry ground, but not a dry root. While all earth's own
growth lies withered round, it is full of sap and flourishing.
But now another wonder: the withered branches begin
to grow into that living root. One and another that have
no life in themselves are successively grafted into it, and
as soon as they are in it, live. No hand is seen to touch
them, yet they move. Like the hewing of the stone out
of the mountain, the process is accomplished "without
hands." Branch after branch they begin to quiver where
they lie, like the bones under Ezekiel's preaching, and by
a mysterious power are drawn towards the tree of life and
let in. The branches which abide on their own old stock
continue dry, and at an appointed time are cast into the
burning. The engrafted branches are not dependent now
on earth and air. They draw their life-sap from a foun-
tain that never fails. They have life, and they have it
more abundantly than any that this world's soil ever sus-
tained.
The vision is of man's fall, and Messiah's mission. A
native human righteousness flourished once on earth. The
head of this material creation, like all its other parts, was
very good as it came from its Maker's hands. Man was
made in God's image. Trees of righteousness, the planting
of the Lord, flourished in that garden which is now a wilder-
ness. But the blight of sin came over it, and all moral
life died. "There is none that doeth good, no, not one."
Is there any hope that this desert will revive and blossom
like the rose? No; this is not the languor that will be
THE TREE AND ITS BRANCH. 329
refreshed by a shower. This is death. There can be no
revival here, except by a new creation. These dry branches
cannot of themselves live. Sin has cut sinners off from
the Life, and a great gulf keeps the severed members away.
We could not make our own way back to God, but he has
come to us. He that is mighty has done great things for
us. In amongst the dead came the living One. "In
Him was light, and the light was the life of men." In
Him the withered grow green, the dead become alive.
"If any man be in Christ, he is a new creature." Stand-
ing within the circle of his own disciples, Jesus said, "I
am the vine, ye are the branches" (John xv. 5).
Here lies the secret of spiritual life among men. The
righteous,—and some such there have been even in the
darkest periods of the world's history,—the righteous
"flourish as a branch." They lean not on their own
stem, and live not on their own root. From the begin-
ning the same Jesus to whom we look was made known
to faith. The manner and measure of making known
truth to the understanding were in those days widely
different; but the nature and the source of spiritual life
were the same. They stood "afar off," but they looked
unto Jesus. The medium of vision was diverse, but the
object was identical. As to knowledge, the ancient dis-
ciples were children, whereas disciples now are grown men:
but life was as true and vigorous in the Church's infancy as
it is in the Church's age. There was in those ancient times
a medium of union to the Redeemer: and blessed are all
they that trust in Him. The branch will flourish when
it is in the living tree.
330 THE TREE AND ITS BRANCH.
But though all the real branches live, all do not
equally flourish. Whatever girds the branch too tightly
round, impedes the flow of sap from the stem, and leaves
the extremities to wither. Many cares, and vanities,
and passions warp themselves round a soul, and cause the
life even of the living to pine away. When the world
in any of its forms lays its grasp round the life, the stric-
ture chokes the secret channels between the disciple and
his Lord, and the fruit of righteousness drops unripe. It
is only as a branch that Christians can flourish in this
wilderness; they have no independent source of life and
growth. It becomes them, therefore, to be careful above
all things to keep clear the communion between them
selves, and the root of their new life in the Lord. Ivy
has climbed from the ground, and gracefully coiled itself
round a majestic bough. Beautiful ornament! you say;
it would be barbarous to cut it through, and tear it off.
We dispute not the beauty of the parasite, and we
have no enmity to elegance. We only desire to keep
everything in its own place. According to the order
which the Scripture prescribes, let us have first the king-
dom of God and his righteousness, and then, if we can
get them, other things. Whether is its own life or the
elegance of its ornament the chief thing for the branch?
Let us not hear of any addition to its beauty, which may
endanger its life. Granted that this adjunct adorns; the
question remains, does it kill? If it strangles the living,
I would ruthlessly tear off its tendrils: without compunc-
tion I would cast its green mantle in the dust. Let me
have a flourishing and fruitful branch, although its stalk
THE TREE AND ITS BRANCH. 331
should seem bare, rather than a sapless stick within a
wrapping of treacherous ornament.
By this short process should many questions be settled,
which become the weapons of this world's god, and
wound the consciences of incautious Christians. Gain,
honours, accomplishments, company, are bought too dear,
when they obstruct the flow of grace from its fountain.
We speak not against the refinements of society, but for
the preservation of the soul's life. When bodily interests
are in the balance, we generally judge righteously between
rival claims. The order of arrangement is first life, next
health, and last adorning. The same principles faithfully
applied to higher issues would carry us safely through.
Life spiritual as an independent tree is not possible: and
seeing that we can have life only as a branch has, it, the
first care is to be in the living tree; the second is to let
nothing warp round the branch which would diminish
its freshness; and then ornaments, hung loosely on, may
be allowed to take their place. The first thing is to be
"found in Him;" the next is to cast off everything that
hinders us from receiving "out of his fulness:" and when
these two are satisfied, let the embellishments that per-
tain to the world be content with the fragments that
remain.
Even those who are branches in the tree of life may
be impeded in their growth; but those who are not in
union with the tree cannot grow at all. "He that
trusteth in his riches shall fall." I have seen a row of
branches profusely covered with leaves and blossoms,
stuck by children in the earth around a miniature garden.
332 THE TREE AND ITS BRANCH.
They appeared more luxuriant than those that were
growing on the neighbouring trees, but they withered in
an hour, and never revived. Behold the picture of a
man who has gained the world and neglected the
Saviour! The earth into which he plunges his soul has
nothing to satisfy its craving, or sustain its life. All the
gains and pleasures of time cannot contribute a drop of
moisture to refresh a drooping soul in the hour of its
greatest need. "The portion of Jacob is not like them"
(Jer. x. 16).
THE WISDOM OF WINNING SOULS. 333
LXXIII.
THE WISDOM OF WINNING SOULS.
"The fruit of the righteous is a tree of life;
and he that winneth souls is wise." –xi. 31.
To win souls seems to be the chief fruit which the trees
of righteousness bear in time. It is sweet and precious.
It is pleasing to God, and profitable to men. It is an
everlasting memorial. In monuments of marble we com-
memorate for a few years the deeds of the great; but a
soul won through your means will itself be a monument
of the fact for ever. It is thus that "the righteous shall
be in everlasting remembrance" (Ps. cxii. 6). The
righteous, we learn in a previous verse, "shall flourish as
a branch;" this is the secret of his fruitfulness. "As the
branch cannot bear fruit of itself except it abide in the
vine; no more can ye, except ye abide in me" (John xv. 4).
Christ is the source of a Christian's fruitfulness. From
Him it comes and to Him it returns. This branch bears
fruit after its kind. It is the life work of the won, to
win others.
A soul won is a bright conception, but it suggests
inevitably its dread counterpart, a soul lost. From the
night's darkness the daylight springs; there must be a
sense of loss ere there can be a real effort to save. We
must begin at the beginning. Our defect lies at the root
If we knew the ailment, the cure is at hand. Food is
334 THE WISDOM OF WINNING SOULS.
abundant; it is hunger that is rare. We seem to act as
if men were safe in a competent hereditary portion, and
might or might not lay themselves out for new acquisi-
tions. The true state of the case is, all is lost already,
and the soul that is not won shall perish. To realize this
would embody theory in action, and change the face of the
world. We would all labour more to win souls if we really
believed them lost. "Fools " are "slow of heart to
believe," and, therefore, they are slack of hand to work.
Faith knows the death by sin, and the life through
Jesus; therefore, the faithful work, and the workers win
souls,—their own first, and then their neighbour's.
The charity that wins a soul begins at home; and if
it do not begin there it will never begin. The order of
nature in this work is, "save yourselves and them that
hear you." But though this charity begins at home, it
does not end there. From its centre outward, and
onward all around, like the ripple on the surface of the
lake, compassion for the lost will run, nor stop until it
touch the shore of time. On this errand Christ came
into the world, and Christians follow the footsteps of the
Lord. He recognised the world lost, and therefore He
came a Saviour. Those who partake of His spirit put
their hand to His work.
To win an immortal from sin and wrath to hope and
holiness—this is honourable work, and difficult. It is
work for wise men, and we lack wisdom. On this point
there is a special promise from God. Those who need
wisdom, and desire to use it in this work, will get it for
the asking. The wisdom needed is very different from
THE WISDOM OF WINNING SOULS. 335
the wisdom of men. It is very closely allied to the
simplicity of a little child. Much of it lies in plainness
and promptness. Those who try to win souls must
not muffle up their meaning: both by their lips and their
life, they must let it be seen that their aim is not to
make the good better, but to save the lost. Delays also
are dangerous, as well as ambiguities. Get the word of
life dropt on the conscience of the healthy, lest he be sick
before another opportunity occur. Tell the whole truth
to the sick to-day, lest he be dead before you return.
None who try to win deal slackly, and none who deal
slackly win, whether it be a fortune, or a race, or a battle;
those should throw their whole might into the conflict,
who wrestle with a more powerful adversary, and for a
greater prize.
336 A BITTER BUT HEALTHFUL MORSEL.
LXXIV.
A BITTER BUT HEALTHFUL MORSEL.
"Whoso loveth instruction, loveth knowledge;
but he that hateth reproof is brutish."—xii. 1.
REPROOF is not pleasant to nature. We may learn to
value it for its results, but it never will be sweet to our
taste. At the best it is a bitter morsel. The difference
between a wise man and a fool is, not that one likes and
the other loathes it,—both dislike it,—but the fool casts
away the precious because it is unpalatable, and the wise
man accepts the unpalatable because it is precious. It
is brutish in a man to act merely according to the im-
pulse of sense. We are not so foolish when the health
of our bodies is at stake. When we were children in-
deed, if left to ourselves, we would have swallowed
greedily the gilded sweetmeat that sickened us, and
thrown away the bitter medicine which was fitted to
purge disease from the channels of life; but when we
became men, we put these childish things conclusively
away. Day by day, in thousands of instances that con-
cern this life, we accept the bitter because it is salutary,
and reject the sweet because it destroys. Would that we
were equally wise for higher interests "I hate him; for
he doth not prophecy good concerning me" (1 Kings xxii.
8): there, in the person of that ancient Israelitish king,
is humanity in the lump and without disguise. Grown
A BITTER BUT HEALTHFUL MORSEL. 337
men lick flattery in because it is sweet, and refuse faithful
reproof because it is unpleasant. The beat of us has
much to learn here: and yet we think that, by pains
and prayer, Christians might make large and rapid pro-
gress in this department. No advancement will be at-
tained without particular and painstaking trial; but such
trial will not be labour lost. Paul reached his high
attainments not by an easy flight through the air, but
by many toilsome steps on the weary ground: smaller
men need not expect to find a royal road to spiritual
perfection. "Herein do I exercise myself," he said,
"that I may have a conscience void of offence." What
he obtained only by hard exercise, we need not expect
to drop into our bosom. Here is an exercise ground for
Christians who would like to grow in grace. Nature
hates reproof: let grace take the bitter potion, and
thrust it down nature's throat, for the sake of its healing
power. If we had wisdom and energy to take to our-
selves more of the reproof that is agoing, and less of the
praise, our spiritual constitution would be in a sounder
state.
Some of the reproof comes directly from God by his
providence and in his word. This, if there be the spirit
of adoption, it is perhaps easier to take. So thought
David. When he found that a terrible rebuke must
come, he pleaded that he might fall into the hands of
God, and not into the hands of man. Still these chas-
tenings are painful, and wisdom from above is needed
to receive them aright. But although all are ultimately
at the disposal of the Supreme, most of the reproofs that
338 A BITTER BUT HEALTHFUL MORSEL
meet us in life come immediately from our fellow-men.
Even when it is just in substance and kindly given, our
own self-love kicks hard against it; and, alas! the most
of it is mixed with envy and applied in anger. Here is
room for the exercise of a Christian's highest art. There
is a way of profiting by reproof, although it be adminis-
tered by an enemy. It is in such narrows of life's voyage
that the difference comes most clearly out between the
wise and the foolish. A neighbour is offended by some-
thing that I have said or done. He becomes enraged,
and opens a foul mouth upon me. This is his sin and
his burden; but what of me? Do I kindle at his fire,
and throw back his epithets with interest in his face?
This is brutish. It is the stupid ox kicking everything
that pricks him, and being doubly lacerated for his pains.
It is my business and my interest to take good for my-
self out of another's evil. The good is there, and there
is a way of extracting it. The most unmannerly scold
that ever came from an unbridled tongue may have its
filth precipitated and turned into a precious ointment, as
the sewage of a city, instead of damaging the people's
health, may as a fertilizer become the reduplicator of the
people's food. The process is difficult, but when skilfully
performed it produces a large return. When Shimei
basely cursed David in his distress, the counsel of a rude
warrior was, "Let me go over and take off his head."
This was merely a brutish instinct—the beam that lay
not on the solid, rebounding, by the law of its nature,
to the blow. But the king had been getting the
good of his great affliction. At that moment he had
A BITTER BUT HEALTHFUL MORSEL. 339
wisdom, and therefore he got more. He recognised a
heavenly Father's hand far behind the foul tongue of
Shimei: he felt that the rebuke, though cruelly given,
contained salutary truth. He occupied himself not with
the falsehood that was in it in order to blame the reprover,
but with the truth that was in it in order to get humbling
for himself "Let him alone," said the fallen monarch,
meekly; “let him alone and let him curse, for the Lord
hath bidden him.” Here is wisdom. It is wise to re-
ceive correction from God, although it come through an
unworthy instrument. Although the immediate agent
meant it for evil, our Father in heaven, can make it work
for good.
340 A HUSBAND'S CROWN.
LXXV.
A HUSBAND'S CROWN.
"A virtuous woman is a crown to her husband:
but she that maketh ashamed is as rottenness in his bones."—xii. 4.
WOMAN's place is important; God has made it so, and
made her fit for filling it. Man is incomplete with-
out her; there is a blank about him which she alone
can fill; it is here that her great strength lies. When
she assumes an independent or rival place, she mistakes
her mission and her power. Man, though made for
the throne of the world, was found unfit for the final
investiture until he got woman as a help. She became
the completion of his capacity and title—she became his
crown. Let woman ever be content with the place that
God has given her; let her be what He made her, neces-
sary to man, and not attempt to make herself indepen-
dent of him. In her own place, her power has hardly a
limit in human affairs; out of it, her efforts only rack
herself and reveal her weakness. Elsewhere in this book
we learn that "a gracious woman retaineth honour, and
strong men retain riches." The comparison intimates
that what strength is to man in maintaining his wealth,
grace is to woman for securing her position and influence.
This is a finger-post directing woman in her weakness to
the place where her great strength lies. If there be the
fear of the Lord as a foundation, with wisdom, truth,
love, and gentleness rising gracefully upon it, a queenly
A HUSBAND'S CROWN. 341
power is there. The winsome will win her way. With-
out the trappings of royalty, she will acquire the homage
of a neighbourhood. The adaptation of the feminine
character to be the companion and complement of man is
one of the best defined examples of that designing wis-
dom which pervades creation. When the relations of the
sexes move in fittings of truth and love, the working
of the complicated machinery of life is a wonder to an
observing man, and a glory to the Creator God.
But what horrid contrast have we here, like the echo
of a glad song given back transformed into despairing
wails from some pit of darkness; "she that maketh
ashamed is as rottenness in his bones!" We need not
be surprised by this announcement. It is according to
law; the best things abused become the worst. The
picture is an appalling one, but it is taken from life.
In many ways woman, when she is not virtuous, makes
man ashamed. When she is slovenly and uncleanly in
her person and her house; thoughtless and spendthrift in
the management of her means; gaudy and expensive in
her tastes for herself and her children; company-keeping,
gipping, tale-bearing; quarrelsome with neighbours or
servants; discontented, querulous, taunting, at home; and
last of all (for what abounds in the world should go down
on this page, though it be a noisome thing), drunken:
when in these or in other of its legion forms, the unclean
spirit possesses woman, he contrives thereby to penetrate
everywhere, and to poison all. Woman is the very ele-
ment of home, wherein all its relations and affections live
and move. When that element is tainted, corruption
242 A HUSBAND'S CROWN.
spreads over all its breadth, and, sinks into its core. It
spreads shame on the husband's countenance, and infuses
rottenness into his bones.
God did not take from among the creatures any help
for man that came to hand, but made one meet for him.
The Maker of all things took the measure of man's need,
and constituted woman a suitable complement. This is
God's part, and His work, in as far as it bears yet the
mark of His hand, is very good. Every man on his
part should seek an individual "help," "meet" for his
own individual need. On that choice interests of un-
speakable magnitude depend for time and eternity; he
who makes it corruptly or lightly is courting misery, and
dallying with doom. It is not in man that walketh to
direct this step of his life; those who seek direction from
above will be sure to find it. Our Father loves to be
consulted in this great life-match for his children, and
they who ask His advice will not be sent away without
it. If men were duly impressed with the vastness of the
interests involved in the transaction, that alone would go
far to bear them steadily through. Let a man remember
that woman, by constitutional character, goes into all,
like water. She should be clean who plies so close. Let
a young man know, while he is adjusting the balance of
this momentous choice, what are the alternatives that
depend on either side, and the weight of them will do
much to keep his hand steady and his eyesight clear.
In that act he is either setting a crown on his own head,
or infusing rottenness into his own bones.
THE TENDER MERCIES OF THE WICKED. 343
LXXVI.
THE TENDER MERCIES OF THE WICKED.
"A righteous man regardeth the life of his beast:
but the tender mercies of the wicked are cruel."—xii. 10.
CONSISTENT kindness to brute creatures is one of the
marks by which a really merciful man is known. When
the pulse of kindness beats strong in the heart, the warm
stream is sent clean through the body of the human
family, and retains force enough to expatiate among the
living creatures that lie beyond. The gentleness of
Christ is one beauty of the Lord, which should be seen
on Christians. Over against this lovely light, according
to the usual form of the proverb, yawns the counter-
part darkness, habitation of horrid cruelty. Cruelty is
a characteristic of the wicked in general, and in particu-
lar of antichrist, that one, wicked by pre-eminence, whom
Christ shall yet destroy by the brightness of his coming.
By their fruits ye shall know them. The page of history
is spotted with the cruelties of papal Rome. The red
blood upon his garments is generally the means of dis-
covering a murderer. The trailing womanish robes of the
papal high priest are deeply stained with the blood of
saints. The same providence which employs the bloody
tinge to detect the common murderer has left more last-
ing marks of Rome's cruelty. The Bartholomew mas-
sacre, for example, is recorded in more enduring charac-
344 THE TENDER MERCIES OF THE WICHED.
ters than the stains of that blood which soaked the soil
of France. By the accounts of those who did the deed,
and favour Rome, 30,000; according to other estimates,
100,000 Protestants were slain. Such were the heaps,
in some places, that they could not be counted. The
Pope and his cardinals greatly rejoiced when they heard
the news. So lively was their gratitude, that they cast
a medal to record it on. There stands the legend, raised
in brass and silver, "Strages Huguenotorum" (the
slaughter of the Huguenots), in perpetual memory of the
delight wherewith that wicked antichrist regarded the
greatest, foulest butchery of men by their fellows that
this sin-cursed earth has ever seen. That spot will not
out by all their washings. That monument, reared by the
murderer's own hands, exhibits to the world now a faith-
ful specimen of his tender mercies, and will remain to
identify the criminal at the coming of the Judge.
"Blessed are the merciful." A curse lies on the cruel
ever since Cain shed his brother's blood.
LIES, THE SNARE THAT LIARS ARE CAUGHT IN. 345
LXXXVII.
LIES, THE SNARE THAT LIARS ARE
CAUGHT IN.
"The wicked is snared by the transgression of his lips:
but the just shall come out of trouble."—xii. 13.
THE Supreme has set many snares, in the constitution of
things, for the detection and punishment of evil doers.
The wicked are continually trailing into them, and suffer-
ing. The liar's own tongue betrays him. In some of its
movements, ere he is aware, it touches the spring which
brings down the avenging stroke. It is instructive to
read with this view the detailed account of a criminal
trial. In the faltering and fall of a false witness, you
should see and reverence the righteousness of God. The
first lie must be defended by a second, and that by a
third. As the line of his defences grows in length, it
grows in weakness. His fear and labour increase at
every step. He is compelled at every question to con-
sider what truth is like, and imitate it in lies. Ere long,
when he is crossing his own path, he falls into a lie that
he had left and forgotten there; he falls, and flounders,
like a wild beast in a snare. When a man is not true,
the great labour of his life must be to make himself
appear true; but if a man be true, he need not concern
himself about appearances. He may go forward, and
tread boldly; his footing will be sure. Matters are so
346 LIFE, THE SNARE THAT LIARS ARE CAUGHT IN.
arranged, in the constitution of the world, that the
straight course of truth is safe and easy; the crooked
path of falsehood difficult and tormenting. Here is
perennial evidence that the God of providence is wise
and true. By making lies a snare to catch liars in, the
Author of being proclaims, even in the voices of nature,
that he "requireth truth in the inward parts." All the
labour of swindlers to dress up their falsehood, so as to
make it look like truth, is Satan's unwilling homage
to the true God. It is counted a glory to the Lord
when his enemies feign submission unto Him (Psalm
lxxxi. 15).
"The just shall come out of trouble;" that is the word;
it is not said that he will never fall into it. The inven-
tory which Jesus gives of what his disciples shall have
"now in this time," although it contains many things
that nature loves, closes with the article "persecutions"
(Mark x. 30). The recorded description, "these are
they who have come out of great tribulation," belongs
alike to all the redeemed of the Lord, when they come
to Zion. These, who wave their palms of victory, and
sing their jubilant hymns of praise, were all in the hor-
rible pit once: they were held helpless by its miry clay,
until the Mighty One lifted them up, and set their feet
upon a rock, and established their goings.
HOPE DEFERRED. 347
LXXVIII.
HOPE DEFERRED.
"Hope deferred maketh the heart sick:
but when the desire cometh, it is a tree of life."—xiii. 12.
THE rule, as expressed in the first clause, is universal;
but in the second clause it is applied to a particular case.
Hope deferred makes the heart sick, whether the person
hoping, and the thing hoped for, be good or evil. Thus
far one thing happens to all. But the second member is a
dividing word. The accomplishment of the desire "is a
tree of life." This belongs only to the hope of the holy.
Many, after waiting long, and expecting eagerly, dis-
cover, when at last they reach their object, that it is
a withered branch, and not a living tree. When a human
heart has been set on perishable things, after the sick-
ness of deferred expectation, comes the sorer sickness of
satiated possession. If the world be made the portion of
an immortal spirit, to want it is one sickness, and to
have it is another. The one is a hungry mouth empty,
and the other a hungry mouth filled with chaff. The
cloy of disappointed possession is a more nauseous sick-
ness than the aching of disappointed desire.
There is no peace to the wicked. They are all always
either desiring or possessing; but to desire and to possess
a perishable portion, are only two different kinds of
misery to men. They are like the troubled sea, when it
348 HOPE DEFERRED.
cannot rest. You stand on the shore, and gaze on the
restless waters. A wave is hastening on, struggling, and
panting, and making with all its might for the shore.
It seems as if all it wanted was to reach the land. It
reaches the land, and disappears in a hiss of discontent.
Gathering its strength at a distance, it tries again, and
again, with the same result. It is never satisfied: it
never rests. In the constitution of the world, under the
government of the most Holy, when a soul's desire is set
on unworthy objects, the accomplishment of the desire
does not satisfy the soul. In the case here supposed,
however, the desire must be pure, for the attainment of
it is found to be a tree of life: it is living, satisfying,
enduring. It has a living root in the ground, and satis-
fying fruit upon its branches.
Those who were enlightened by the Spirit before the
incarnation, looked in faith, through the sacrifices, for Jesus;
and they beheld his day, but it was afar off. They
longed for Christ's coming as those that wait for the
morning. While they waited for redemption in Israel,
hope deferred made their hearts sick; but they waited
on. Their desire, the Desire of all nations, came. The
Word was made flesh, and dwelt among them, and they
beheld his glory. That desire satisfied did not pall upon
their taste. It was enough. "Lord, now lettest thou
thy servant depart in peace, for mine eyes have seen thy
salvation" (Luke ii. 29, 30).
The same experience is repeated in the personal history
of disciples now. When a hungering for righteousness
secretly rises in a human heart, the blessing is already
HOPE DEFERRED. 349
sure; but it is not enjoyed yet. The hungerer "shall be
filled;" but in the meantime, his only experience is an
uneasy sensation of want. The craving of that appetite,
while yet it is not satisfied, is a painful thing. The heart
is sick of that love. Far-seeing friends delight to ob-
serve the symptoms of that sickness beginning in a youth,
not for the sake of the suffering, but because of the glad
enlargement to which it leads. In God's good time that
desire will be satisfied. That longing soul will taste and
see that the Lord is gracious. The peace of God which
passeth all understanding will come in and keep that heart
and mind.
In the tumults of these latter days, some earnest spirits
greatly long for the second coming of the Lord. Their
hope has been deferred, and their hearts are sick; but
"when the Desire cometh"—and He shall come without
sin unto salvation—the sorrow will no more be remem-
bered in the joy of their Lord. To them that look for
Him he will appear, and his coming will be like the
morning. This "Tree of life"—the redeemed of the Lord,
when they come to Zion, shall sit under His shadow with
great delight, and the days of their mourning shall be
ended. "The Lamb which is in the midst of the throne
shall feed them, and lead them unto living fountains of
waters; and God shall wipe away all tears from their
eyes."
350 GOD'S WORD THE PRESERVER OF NATIONS.
LXXIX.
GOD'S WORD THE PRESERVER OF NATIONS.
“Whoso despiseth the word shall be destroyed:
but he that feareth the commandment shall be rewarded."—xiii. 13.
THIS word has a private and personal, as well as a public
application; but it is in the providential government of
the nations that its truth has been most conspicuously
displayed. The kingdoms of the world in these days
prosper or pine in proportion as they honour or despise
God's word. Show me a land where the Bible is de-
graded and interdicted, and I will show you a land whose
history is written in blood and tears. Show me a land
where the Bible is valued and spread, and I will show
you a country prosperous and free. Number the nations
over one by one, and see where property is valuable and
life secure; mark the places where you would like to in-
vest your means and educate your family; you will shun
some of the sunniest climes of earth, as if they lay under
a polar night, because the light of the truth has been
taken from their sky. Traverse the world in search of
merely human good, seeking but an earthly home, and
your tent, like Abraham's, will certainly be pitched at
"the place of the altar." Scotland is a kindlier home
than Connaught. The Irish Papist abjures the Bible as
an unintelligible or dangerous book, and implicitly sub-
mits to the spiritual guidance of his priest: the British
GOD'S WORD THE PRESERVER OF NATIONS. 351
Protestant holds God's word in his hand, at once the
standard of his teacher's doctrine, and the rule of his
own life. Hence chiefly the difference, moral and mate-
rial, between the two peoples. They who despise the word
are a prostrate race. A nation of beggars starves at our
doors, on an island that might become a garden. The
map of the world is sufficient evidence that God is, and
that He has revealed his will to men.
This country has been preserved safe in many convul-
sions, while others have been rent asunder. It has
grown great, while others have wasted. It has been
gradually growing more free, while other nations are
robbed of their liberty, or retain it at the price of their
blood. We should know Who makes us to differ, and
what. The Bible has made us what we are; it is dark
ingratitude to despise or neglect it. It is often observed
that when a man rises in the world, he no longer knows
the person by whom he rose. This is the mark of a low
ungenerous mind. Symptoms not a few of this vulgar
vice may be seen in high places of our own land. The
preserved do not care to know their Preserver. A sum-
mer tour on the Continent is not a sufficient lesson. The
power of Britain shields her subject during his travels,
and the iron of Popish despotism does not enter into his
soul. But a year of subjection to Italian rule, such as
the Italians feel it, would teach politicians a truth which
they are slow to learn. They might discover the worth
of the Bible as the preserver of liberty, if they felt the
want of it.
352 THE HARD WAY.
LXXX.
THE HARD WAY.
"The way of transgressors is hard.” —xiii. 15.
Is not the way of transgressors pleasant in its progress,
though it ends in death? No. Sin barters away future
safety, but does not secure present peace in return.
Things are not always as they seem to be. The
pleasures of sin are not only limited in their duration,
they are lies even while they last. They are "for a
season" as to endurance, and for a show as to their cha-
racter. There is a bitterness in the transgressor's heart,
which only that heart can know. The man in the gos-
pel history, who wore no clothes, and lived among the
tombs, did not lead a happy life. The rocky, thorny
grave-yard was a hard bed, and the dewy night air a
cold covering for the naked man; but such was his will,
or the will of the spirit that possessed him. It was the
man's pleasure to take that way, but the way was hard.
It is so still, and ever will be, for all whom the same
spirit leads. It has neither the promise of the life that
now is, nor of that which is to come. The race is torture,
and the goal perdition. "Destruction and misery are in
their paths, and the way of peace have they not known."
Here is a glory of God reflected from the experience
of men. It is far-seeing mercy that makes the way of
transgressors hard. Its hardness warns the traveller to
THE HARD WAY. 353
turn that he may live. Two mechanics work side by
side all day, and receive equal wages at night. One
goes home when his toil is over, and rests in the bosom
of his own family, enjoying doubly all that he has won,
because he shares it with those who love him there: the
other having no home to love, or no love to home, goes
into a public-house, and remains there as long as his
money lasts. Late at night he is driven to the street,
penniless, hungry, and without a friend. He falls
at every turn. His clothes are besmeared with mud;
his bones are bruised; his face streams with blood. In
pity for his misery, rather than in vengeance for his
crime, the officers of justice drag or carry him to a prison
cell, and lay him on its floor till morning. The man
followed the way of transgressors, and he has found it
hard. Day by day his body is bruised and torn on
the rugged sides of that crooked path; and yet he will
not forsake it. If any one inquire after the name of
this foul spirit, we answer, his name is Legion, for they
are many.
Nor is this the only crooked path that tears the feet
of the wretched passenger: they are all hard however
widely they diverge from each other--all that diverge
from the line of righteousness. In some of them, the
hardness is an iron that entereth into the soul, rather
than the body, and therefore the wounds are not so pal-
pable to others. The pain is not on that account, how-
ever, less pungent to the sufferer. "A wounded spirit,
who can bear?"
But the right way is not a soft and silky path for the
354 THE HARD WAY.
foot of man to tread upon; and, if one thing happens to
all in the journey of life, what advantage have the good?
Much every way, and specifically thus: The hardness
which disciples experience in following the Lord, is right-
eousness rubbing on their remaining lusts, and so wasting
their deformities away; whereas the hardness of a trans-
gressor's way is the carnal mind, in its impotent enmity,
dashing itself against the bosses of the Almighty's buckler.
The one is a strainer, made strait to purge the impuri-
ties away, through which the purified emerges into peace;
the other is the vengeance which belongeth unto God,
beginning even here to repay. The stroke of discipline
under which a pilgrim smarts, as he travels towards
Zion, is an excellent oil which will not break his head.
The collision between transgressors and the law of God,
hardens the impenitent for completer destruction at the
final fall. As the pains of cure differ from the pains of
killing, so differs the salutary straitness which presses the
entrants at the gate of life, from the hardness which hurts
transgressors while they flee from God.
THE CHOICE OF COMPANIONS. 355
LXXXI.
THE CHOICE OF COMPANIONS.
"He that walketh with wise men shall be wise:
but a companion of fools shall be destroyed.—xiii. 20.
LOVE of company is a steady instinct of the young. This
tendency performs a great part in the economy of human
life. Like many other forces under the control of a free
moral agent, it is mighty for good or evil, according to
the direction in which it is turned. It is the nature of
certain plants, while they strike their own independent
roots into the ground for life, to twist their tendrils
round other trees for support to their branches. To this
species in the animal department of creation belong the
young of human kind. Physically, the organization of
each individual is separate and complete, but morally
they interweave themselves into others; so that, though
the growth of their bodies is independent, the cast of
their characters is largely affected by the companions to
whom they cling. At this point, therefore, there is room
and need for much prayer, and watchfulness, and effort
both by and for the generation that is now tender, and
taking the form of any mould that closes round and
presses it.
The principle of reciprocal attraction and repulsion
pervades all nature, both in its material and spiritual
departments. Your character goes far to determine
356 THE CHOICE OF COMPANIONS.
the company that you will keep, and the company
that you keep goes far to mould your character. But
while these two are hanging in the balance, it is the
place and prerogative of man, for himself or his brother,
to rush in and lay his hand upon the scales, and cast a
makeweight into the side of safety. By the warnings of
God's word, and the lessons of our own experience, we
know before they begin what the end of certain com-
panionships will be. The awful end is opened up to make
us fear the beginning.
Your heart takes to a companion who has been acci-
dentally thrown in your way. You should not yield to
that inclination merely because it works within you. The
beasts that perish do so, and therein they never err.
They associate with their kind, and are never corrupted
by the company that they keep. Their instincts are
perfect as they come from the Creator's hands. It is safe
to trust them. But there is a bias to evil in a human
heart. It must be watched and thwarted, if we would
avoid error now and escape perdition at last. It is not
for us to let our hearts have their own way in the selec-
tion of companions. On that choice depend interests too
great to be safely left to chance. The issue to be de-
cided is not what herd you shall graze with a few years
before your spirit return to the dust; but what moral
element you shall move in during the few and evil days
of life, till your spirit return to God who gave it. I like
this companion; he fascinates me; I cannot want him;
an enforced separation would be like tearing myself asun-
der. Well, if that companion's heart be godless, and his
THE CHOICE OF COMPANIONS. 357
steps already slipping backward and downward, why not
tear yourself asunder? The act will be painful, no doubt;
but "skin for skin, yea, all that a man hath will he give
for his life." Your soul's life depends on that painful
act. It is better that you enter into life maimed of that
member, than that your tempter and you should perish
together. In this way the young are put to the test,
whether they will obey Christ's word or no. On this
side there are right arms to be cut off, and right eyes to
be plucked out. Young men and women, God and all
the good are looking on, and watching to see whether
you will throw off the chain of charms by which brilliant
but wandering stars have led you, and cling to the skirts
of the meek and lowly, who follow the Lamb whitherso-
ever He goeth.
"He that walketh with the wise shall be wise." If he
is wise he will walk with them, and to walk with them
will make him wiser. To him that hath wisdom to choose
the wise as his companions shall be given more wisdom,
through their converse and example. Such is the blessed
progress in the path of life, when fellow travellers towards
Zion help each other on; but, alas! what of him who "hath
not" any wisdom to begin with? Let him who lacks
wisdom ask of God, who giveth to all men liberally and
upbraideth not. God takes peculiar delight in granting
this request, when it comes up in earnest simplicity from
the needy. Wisdom from above will be given to them
that ask it for the purpose of selecting safe companions.
No one, it may be safely affirmed, ever made this request
in simplicity to God, and came away without an answer.
358 THE CHOICE OF COMPANIONS.
No; when people cling to unprofitable and dangerous
associates, it is because they take what they like without
asking counsel of God, not because they asked counsel
and failed to obtain it. This dashing, clever youth makes
sport of serious things and serious persons. He quotes
a text so dexterously, that the gravest of the circle are
surprised into laughter. He sings merrily, and perhaps
drinks deeply. He affects to be skilled in the mysteries
of vice, and kindles the curiosity of a novice by knowing
hints, which seem to leave the most untold. Here is a
fool who will probably entice some to be his companions.
Before the bargain be struck, while this leader and his
dupes are arranging the terms of his lead and their fol-
lowing, a voice bursts out above them—"The companion
of fools shall be destroyed." It is God's voice; He speaks
in mercy; hear ye Him. "Forsake the foolish and live."
THE FATHER WHO HATES HIS SON. 359
LXXXII.
THE FATHER WHO HATES HIS SON.
"He that spareth his rod hateth his son.” —xiii. 24.
You indulge your child and do not correct him: you
permit selfishness, and envy, and anger to encrust them-
selves, by successive layers, thicker and thicker on his
character: you beseech him not to be naughty, but never
enforce your injunction by a firm application of the rod;
and you think the fault, if it be a fault, is a very trivial
one: perhaps you appropriate to yourself a measure of
blame for loving your child too much. Nay, brother;
be not deceived; call things by their right names. Be-
ware of the woe denounced against those who call evil
good. You do not love, you hate your child.
Love is a good name, and hate a bad one. Every one
likes to take to himself a good name, whether he deserve
it or not. To love one's own child, even though that
love should run to excess, is counted amiable: to hate
the child in any measure, is reckoned the part of a mon-
ster. In order to keep a fair character before the world,
a deceitful heart so shuffles in secret the two things, that
while hate is the real character of the deed, its outward
appearance shall be love.
It is obvious to any careful observer of human nature,
that even blame is pleasant to indulgent parents, when it
is the blame of loving their own children too much. They
360 THE FATHER WHO HATES HIS SON.
swallow the soft reproof as a luscious flattery. The
scripture deals with them in another way. It does not
gratify them by the soft impeachment of excess in parental
love. It roundly asserts that they have no love at all.
It comes down upon them abruptly with the charge of
hating the child.
Sparing the rod is the specific act, or habit, which is
charged against the parent, as being equivalent to hating
his son. The child begins to act the tyrant. He is cruel
where he has power, and sulky where he has not. He is
rude, overbearing, untruthful. These and kindred vices
are distinctly forming on his life, and growing with his
growth. The matter is reported to the father, and the
same things are done in his presence. He tells the child
to do better, and dismisses him with caresses. This pro-
cess is frequently repeated. The child discovers that he
can transgress with impunity. The father threatens some-
times, but punishes never. The child grows rapidly worse.
By the certainty of escaping, acting in concert with a
corrupt nature, the habit of intentional evildoing is
formed and confirmed. All the while this father takes
and gets the credit of being, if not a very wise, at least a
very loving parent. No it is mere prostitution of that
hallowed name to apply it to such ignoble selfishness.
Love, though very soft, is also very strong. It will not
give way before slight obstacles. To sacrifice self is of
its very essence. If it be in you, it will quickly make
your own ease give way for the good of its object. When
a father gives the child all his own way, yielding more,
the more he frets, until the child finds out that he can get
THE FATHER WHO HATE HIS SON. 361
anything by imperiously demanding it, he yields not from
love to his child, but from loathsome love of ease to him-
self. It is a low animal laziness that will not allow its
own oily surface to be ruffled even to save a son. If
there were real love, it would be strong enough to endure
the pain of refusing to comply with improper demands,
and chastening for intentional or persistent wrong-doing.
Parents who are in the habit of giving their children
what they ask, and permitting them to disobey without
chastisement, may read their own character in this verse
of scripture. Such a father "hateth his son:" that is
the word. To call it love is one of Satan's lies. It is
unmingled selfishness. The man who gravely tells his
child what is wrong, and, if the wrong is repeated, sternly
chastens him,—that man really loves his child, and sacri-
fices his own ease for the child's highest good. It is
enough to break one's heart to think how many young
people are thrown off the rails at some unexpected turn
of life by the momentum of their own impetuousness, for
want of a father's firm hand to apply in time the neces-
sary break. We need a manful, hardy love—a love that
will bear and do to the uttermost for all the interests of
its object
Let it be remembered here, however, that every blow
dealt by a father's hand is not parental chastening. To
strike right and left against children, merely because you
are angry and they are weak, is brutish in its character
and mischievous in its effects. A big dog bites a little
one who offends him: what do ye more than they? Never
once should a hand be laid upon a child in the hasty im-
362 THE FATHER WHO HATES HIS SON.
pulse of anger. The Koh-I-Noor diamond, when it came
into the Queen's possession, was a misshapen lump. It
was very desirable to get its corners cut off, and all
its sides reduced to symmetry: but no unskilful hand
was permitted to touch it. Men of science were sum-
moned to consider its nature and its capabilities. They
examined the form of its crystals and the consistency of
its parts. They considered the direction of the grain,
and the side on which it would bear a pressure. With
their instructions, the jewel was placed in the hands of
an experienced lapidary, and by long, patient, careful
labour, its sides were grinded down to the desired pro-
portions. The gem was hard, and needed a heavy pres-
sure: the gem was precious, and every precaution was
taken which science and skill could suggest to get it po-
lished into shape without cracking it in the process. The
effort was successful The hard diamond was rubbed
down into forms of beauty, and yet sustained no damage
by the greatness of the pressure to which it was sub-
jected.
"Jewels, bright jewels," in the form of little children,
are the heritage which God gives to every parent. They
are unshapely, and need to be polished; they are hard,
and cannot be reduced into symmetry without firm
handling; they are brittle, and so liable to be per-
manently damaged by the pressure; but they are stones
of peculiar preciousness, and if they were successfully
polished they would shine as stars for ever and ever,
giving off from their undimming edge, more brilliantly
than other creatures can, the glory which they get from
THE FATHER WHO HATES HIS SON. 363
the Sun of righteousneas. Those who possess these dia-
monds in the rough should neither strike them unskil-
fully, nor let them lie uncut.
This boy placed in the dock before you, with his
clothes torn, and his hair dishevelled, with an air of peni-
tence put on, over a purpose of more mischief that
gleams through the awkward covering, just one minute
after your last lecture, has been caught up to the ears
in another scrape. What is to be done with him? You
have tried severity, and tried gentleness. All is in
vain. He waxes worse in your hands. Do with him
as the infant-school rhyme enjoins you, "try, try, try
again." Don't let him alone, for he is all unshapely, and
in this form he will have no loveliness in the sight of
God or man. Don't strike rashly, for in one moment
you may start a rent of hatred and discontent through
and through a soul that no after discipline will ever
obliterate. Cautiously, firmly, perseveringly, lovingly,
polish away at your jewel. Get a right estimate of its
value impressed upon your heart, and you will not give
up in despair, although you have made many unsuccess-
ful efforts. The work is difficult, but the prize is great.
If he is won, he is won to himself, and to you, and to
society, and to God.
While there should be a strong manly love to wield
the rod firmly, there should also be a far seeing wisdom
to judge, in view of all the circumstances, whether and
when the rod should be applied. A parent must study
carefully both his child's character and his own. If his
own nature be now rigid, and incapable of going into
364 THE FATHER WHO HATES HIS SON.
sympathy with the impetuous playfulness of robust youth,
he may with the best intention fall into a fatal mistake.
He may chasten for that which is not a fault, and so
crack the temper of his child for life. We must learn to
measure the instincts of boyhood, and make allowance
for the muscular exercise, amounting almost to perpetual
motion, which nature demands. Love will give ample
room for the effervescence of a buoyant spirit; but, when
it has separated so widely between sportiveness and sin,
it will then all the more bring down the rod with the
certainty and severity of a law of nature, for every dis-
covered, definite, wilful wickedness. If a father on earth
be like our Father in heaven, judgment will be his
"strange work." Do not resort to it often, but let it be
real when it comes.
I am disposed to set a high value on, not only the
general principles of Scripture regarding this subject, but
also its specific precepts. I would limit with jealous
apprehension the application of the rule about duty
changing with the change of circumstances. The only
thing that I would leave open to be modified by circum-
stances is the mere instrument wherewith the chastening
is administered. By all means let "rod" stand as a
generic term, and under it let the most convenient imple-
ment be used; but the spirit of the text is abandoned,
as well as the letter, when a parent abjures corporal
chastisement altogether, and trusts exclusively to moral
means. There is indeed no virtue in bodily pain to heal
a moral ailment; it depends on the adaptation of punish-
ment in kind and measure to the particular form of the
THE FATHER WHO HATES HIS SON. 365
child's waywardness. If a child so act as seldom to need
the rod, or never, then seldom or never let the rod be
applied; but beware of determining and proclaiming be-
forehand that you will not in any case resort to corporal
chastisement, lest you be setting up your wisdom against
the law of the Lord.
I have heard of some educators who, in public assem-
bly, with much pomp and circumstance, cut the tawse in
a hundred pieces, and scattered the fragments in the
wind, proclaiming, by way of contrast, the reign of love.
There is more of quackery under this than the benevo-
lent performers suspected. It is a shallow mistake. The
rod and love are not antagonist. It is not necessary to
banish the one in order to submit to the reign of the
other. Love keeps the rod, and lifts it too, and lays it
on when needful. This is the very triumph of true love,
over a spurious imitation. When a father puts forth his
strength to hold the struggling victim, and applies the
rod, although every stroke thrills through his own heart,
this is love such as God commands and approves. Our
Father in heaven chastens every child whom He loves,
and does not spare for their crying. Genuine parental
love on earth is an imitation of His own.
Although it is an important rule not to trifle with this
work when it is begun, yet the effect does not depend on
the number or weight of the blows. The result is deter-
mined more by the side on which the force is applied,
than by the mere magnitude of the force. The stroke in
which the operator suffers more than he inflicts, power-
fully impels the child in the direction which you approve,
366 THE FATHER WHO HAT HIS SON.
but spurts of selfish anger drive him the other way. It
is like admitting steam into the cylinder of an engine: if
you admit it on this side, the machine goes forward; if
you admit on that side, the machine goes backward.
One characteristic mark of genuine love is to chasten
a child "betimes." To do it early is both easiest and
best. It is, cruel to let your son grow up without the
correction which he needs. If you who love him do not
bend him while he is a child, those who do not love him
will break him after he has become a man.
The word is specifically "son," and not generally
"child." There is a reason for this selection of terms.
Although there may be here and there individual excep-
tions, the common rule is that boys are more stubborn
than girls. In proportion to the hardness of the subject,
must be the heaviness of the blow. The child must be
subdued into obedience at whatever cost. This is the
most important of a parent's practical duties in life. He
should not permit any other business to push it aside
into a secondary place. The boy is your richest treasure,
and should be your chief care. He is the greatest talent
which the Master has placed in your hands; lay it out
well, even though other things should be neglected. Exert
all the wisdom and foresight and firmness that you can
command in the cultivation of this field, no other will
yield a return so sure or so satisfying.
Prayer and pains must go together in this difficult
work. Lay the whole case before our Father in heaven:
this will take the hardness out of the correction, without
diminishing its strength.
SECULARISM. 367
LXXXIII.
SECULARISM.
"A scorner seeketh wisdom and findeth it not:
but knowledge is easy unto him that understandeth."—xiv. 6.
IT is the constant profession of those who reject the
Bible that they are seeking truth. Their likeness is taken
here from life. They seek wisdom, but do not find it.
They want the first qualification of a philosopher, a humble
and teachable spirit.
There is a race of men, amongst us at the present day
who scorn bitterly against faith's meek submission to
God's revealed will. They desire to be free from authority.
The papist, they say, submits to the authority of the
church, and the protestant to the authority of the Bible.
They count these only different forms of superstition, and
cast off with equal earnestness both the bonds. They
make a man's own feelings the supreme judge to that
man of right and wrong, good and evil. The divinity, as
they phrase it, is in every man; which means that every
man is a god unto himself. It is, in its essence, a repro-
duction of the oldest rebellion. A creature, discontented
with the place which his Maker has given him, strives to
make himself a god.
If men really were independent beings, it would be
right to assert and proclaim their independence; but as
matters really stand, this desperate kicking against
368 SECULARISM.
authority becomes the exposure of weakness, and the
punishment of pride. We are not our own cause and our
own end; we are not our own lords. We are in the
hands of our Maker, and under the law of our Judge.
Our only safety lies in submission to the rightful authority,
and obedience to the true law. The problem for man is,
not to reject all masters, but to accept the rightful One.
Those who scorn the wisdom from above, seek laboriously
for the wisdom that is beneath. The name "secularist"
is adopted to indicate that they appreciate and study the
knowledge that concerns the present world, and repudiate
as unattainable, or useless, all knowledge that pertains to
another. People sometimes lose their way in words as
they do in mist; and then very vulgar objects seem
mighty castles looming in the darkness. Let it be known,
and remembered, that "secularism" is the Latin for this-
world-ism, and means, attend to the world that you are
now in, and let the next alone. Perhaps this translation
of the name into English may help us to take the measure
of the thing signified. Before we adopt this philosophy
we must be sure that there is no immortality for man.
For, if there be another world, obviously our course here
will affect our condition there, and the view that we take
of eternity will decisively influence our path over time.
Granting even, that it is this world with which men have
now to do, our present view of the world to come exerts
a supreme control over the whole course of our conduct,
and every step of our life. It is by faith in the unseen
that men steer through this shifting sea of time. Cut us
off from the future, and you have left the ship without
SECULARISM. 369
a chart, and without a star; without a compass to steer
by, and without a harbour to steer for; you have left the
ship an aimless meaningless log lying on the water, to be
tossed up and down by the waves, and driven hither and
thither by the winds, until it fall asunder or sink unseen.
These seekers of knowledge, who limit their search to
the earth on which they tread, profess great zeal in the
question of education. I am not aware that they do
more in the work of education than others, but they say
loudly, and oft, that the young of the nation should be
educated according to their views. Children in the public
schools, they say, should be thoroughly trained in secular
knowledge, and religious dogmas should be left untouched.
The public schoolmaster should be entirely neutral on the
subject of religion. He should give no judgment for or
against any of its doctrines. Verily, these men seek
knowledge, and find it not. After all their efforts to
learn, they are not yet very wise. They prescribe to the
schoolmaster a task that is palpably impossible. Revealed
religion has touched the world, and been the turning
point of its history in all ages. The Scriptures of the
Old and New Testaments, claiming as they do to be the
inspired record of God's will, have in point of fact influenced
the conduct and history of mankind more than all other
books together. Jesus of Nazareth was, through the
unwilling instrumentality of the Roman, put to death by
the Jewish priesthood, because he made Himself equal
with God; and this event has done more to cast the
civilized world into its present mould, than any or all the
revolutions of kingdoms since the beginning of time. How
370 SECULARISM.
is the teacher to dispose of that book, and that event, in
his complete course of secular instruction? Must he teach
history and leave these things out of it? He may as well
teach the elements of Euclid, omitting all the capital
letters; he may as well weave without a warp, as exhibit
the kingdoms of this world, without taking notice of the
kingdom of God, and of his Christ. The religion of Christ
has grasped the world, and penetrated human history
through and through. If you exclude these topics, your
disciple comes out of your hands a barbarian; and if you
introduce them, you are compelled to take a side. For
or against, Christ the teacher must be, and the scholar
too. God has, in providence, not left it possible simply
to pass the Bible by without letting it be known whether
you believe it or not. The question, "What think ye of
Christ?" was of old pressed upon the Jews, though they
desired rather not to commit themselves to an answer;
and by the same sovereign Lord, who rules over all, it is
in these latter days pressed upon men so as to force an
answer out of them whether they will, or be unwilling.
No man can teach the history and condition of this world
without indicating expressly, or by implication, whether
he counts Jesus of Nazareth a blasphemer, or the Son of
God. No man can be in this world without accepting or
rejecting Christ's claim to be the Redeemer of his soul,
and the sovereign of his life. Such have been the effects
of the Bible, and such is the place of Christ among men,
that we must take a side. The decision cannot be avoided;
all depends on making it aright. The liberty of having no
Lord over the conscience is not competent to man. Sub-
SECULARISM. 371
mission absolute to the living God, as revealed in the
Mediator, is at once the best liberty that could be, and
the only liberty that is.
In these days, when the pendulum is often seen swing-
ing from scepticism over to superstition, and from super-
stition back to scepticism again, we would do well to
remember that there is truth between these extremes, and
that in truth alone lies safety for all the interests of men.
We must beware of confounding two questions that are
totally distinct—the existence of truth, and our percep-
tion of it. Although all the men that live on the earth
should awake to-morrow blind, that would not prove that
the sun had ceased to shine. It is fashionable in high
places to laud religious indifference, and stigmatize as
bigotry all earnest belief. This is a great mistake. They
who fall into it cannot read even profane history aright.
Let politicians learn to apply the grand test, "By their
fruits ye shall know them." To believe nothing will pro-
duce as rank intolerance as to believe all the legends of
Rome. Look to the history of modern Europe, and you
will see that those who believed all dogmas and those who
rejected all are equally stained with the blood of the
saints, and have equally impeded the progress of men. To
have no belief; and to believe a lie, are seeds that bear only
bitter fruits. The conceit of the sceptic that outside of
himself there is no truth to believe in, projects into human
life only an empty shadow of liberty; but if He who is
the truth "make you free, ye shall be free indeed."
I see two men near each other prostrate on the ground
and bleeding, while one man stands between them, with
372 SECULARISM.
serenest aspect, looking to the skies: who and what are
these? The two prostrate forms are Superstition and
Unbelief. Superstition bowed down to worship his idol,
and cut his flesh with stones to atone for his soul's sin.
Unbelief scorned to be confined, like an inferior creature,
to the earth, and was ever leaping up in the hope of
standing on the stars. Exhausted by his efforts, he fell,
and the fall bruised him, so that he lay as low as the
neighbour whom he despised. He who stands between
them neither bowed himself to the ground, nor attempted
to scale the heavens. He neither degraded himself be-
neath a man's place, nor attempted to raise himself above
it. He abode on earth, but he stood erect there. He
did not proudly profess to be, but meekly sought to find
God. This man understands his place and feels his need;
to him therefore knowledge is easy. To him that hath
shall be given. He has the beginning of wisdom, and he
will reach in good time its glad consummation. "Blessed
are the poor in spirit, for theirs is the kingdom."
FLIGHT, THE SAFETY OF THE WEAK. 373
LXXXIV.
FLIGHT, THE SAFETY OF THE WEAK.
"Go from the presence of a foolish man,
when thou perceived not in him the lips of knowledge." —xiv. 7.
IN nature some creatures are strong and bold, having both
instincts and instruments for combat: other creatures are
feeble but fleet. It is the intention of their Maker that
they should seek safety, not in fighting but in fleeing. It
would be a fatal mistake if the hare, in a fit of bravery,
should turn and face her pursuers. In the moral conflict
of human life it is of great importance to judge rightly
when we should fight and when we should flee. The
weak might escape if they knew their own weakness, and
kept out of harm's way. That courage is not a virtue
which carries the feeble into the lion's jaws. I have
known of some who ventured too far with the benevolent
purpose of bringing a victim out, and were themselves
sucked in and swallowed up. To go in among the foolish
for the rescue of the sinking may be necessary, but it is
dangerous work, and demands robust workmen.
The ordinary rule is, "go from the presence of a foolish
man:" "forsake the foolish and live" (ix. 6). Your
first duty is your own safety. But on some persons at
some times there lies the obligation to encounter danger
for the safety of a neighbour. Man is made his brother's
keeper. It is neither the inclination nor the duty of a
374 FLIGHT, THE SAFETY OF THE WEAK.
good man to be among the profane or profligate, but he
sometimes recognises the call of God to go in among them
for the purpose of pulling a brand from the burning. The
specific instruction recorded in scripture for such a case is,
"save with fear, pulling them out of the fire; hating even
the garment spotted by the flesh" (Jude 23). He who
would volunteer for this saving work must "save with
fear"—fear lest the victim perish ere he get him dragged
out, and fear lest himself be scorched by the flame.
We often hear of a miner going down a shaft to save a
brother who has been choked by foul air at the bottom.
It is a work of mercy: but the worker must beware; if he
linger too long in the deadly atmosphere of the pit, in-
stead of saving his neighbour, himself will share his fate.
There may be—there ought to be an effort made to lay
yourself along the drunken, the licentious, the profane,
and so bear them out into safety: but it should be a rush
in and a rush out again. When one begins to dally in
the place of danger he is gone. When your earnest inter-
ference is resisted, fall back upon the rule of scripture:
"go from the presence of the foolish," lest your soul be
polluted by contact with their blasphemy or vice.
SYMPATHY. 375
LXXXV.
SYMPATHY.
"The heart knoweth his own bitterness;
and a stranger doth not intermeddle with his joy."—xiv. 10.
THE two extreme experiences of a human heart, which
comprehend all others between them, are "bitterness"
and "joy." The solitude of a human being in either
extremity is a sublime and solemnizing thought. Whe-
ther you are glad or grieved, you must be alone. The
bitterness and the joyfulness are both your own. It is
only in a modified sense, and in a limited measure, that
you can share them with another, so as to have less of
them yourself. We speak of sympathy, and sympathy
means community of emotions between two human hearts.
Doubtless there is a reality corresponding to that attrac-
tive name, but the share which another takes is a thin
aerial shadowy thing in comparison with the substantive
experience of your own soul. Sympathy between two
human beings is, after all, little more than a figure of
speech. A physical burden can be divided equally
between two. If you, unburdened, overtake a weary
pilgrim on the way, toiling beneath a load of a hundred
pounds weight, you may volunteer to bear fifty of them
for the remaining part of the journey, and so lighten his
load by a full half. But a light heart, however willing
it may be, cannot so relieve a heavy one. The cares that
press upon the spirit are as real as the load that lies on
376 SYMPATHY.
the back, and as burdensome; but they are not so tangible
and divisible. We speak of sharing them by sympathy,
and there is some meaning in the words, some reality in
the act; but the participation in kind and effect comes far
short of the actual partition of material weight. The law
of our nature in the last resort is, "Every man must
bear his own burden." The weight that falls upon my
body may be divided with you, but the weight that falls
on my soul must lie all on my soul alone. You may
indeed stand beside me, and hold me by the hand, and I
may be abler to bear because of your presence and your
love, but I alone must bear it all.
There are, indeed, some very intimate unions in human
society, as organized by God, and existing even yet in a
fallen world. The family relations bring heart into very
close contact with heart, and joys or sorrows that abound
in one flow freely over into another. The closest of them
all, wonderful in name and in nature, the two "no longer
twain, but one flesh," is a union of unspeakable value for
such sympathy as is compatible with distinct personality
at all. But when you estimate this union at its highest
value, and take it all into account, there remains a mean-
ing, deep and wide like the ocean, in this one touching
word, "the heart knoweth his own bitterness." The wife
of your bosom can indeed intermeddle with your joys and
sorrows as a stranger cannot do, and yet there are depths
of both in your breast which even she has no line to
sound. When you step into the waters of life's last sor-
row, even she must stand back and remain behind. Each
must go forward alone. The Indian suttee seems nature's
SYMPATHY. 377
struggle against that fixed necessity of man's condition.
But it is a vain oblation. Although the wife burn on
the husband's funeral pile, the frantic deed does not
lighten the solitude of the dark valley. One human
being cannot be merged in another. Man must accept
the separate personality that belongs to his nature. In
his relations to duty and to God, no partnership is per-
mitted, no community of goods is possible.
But the isolation of every man from his fellow in the
hour of extremity may become the means of pressing the
sufferer nearer another companion, who is able even then
to remain. "There is a friend that sticketh closer than
a brother." Such is the person of Emmanuel, God with
us, that the spiritual life of a believer is not a separate
existence, but a part of His. As a branch in the vine or
a member in the body, so is a disciple in the Lord. The
Christian is one with Christ in such a way as no human
spirit can be with another. When the fangs of the per-
secutor vexed the life of his little ones, the pain throbbed
that moment in the heart of Jesus. The Head on high
cried out when the enemy hurt His member, "Saul, Saul,
why persecutest thou me?" Only Christ's sympathy is
real and complete; all other sympathy is but a pleasant
image. He who suffered for our sins can make himself
partaker of our sorrows. He who went through the
wrath of God to make a safe path for his people, is able to
keep them company in the swelling of Jordan. Long ago
they saw His day, and rejoiced in His perfect sympathy.
"Though I walk through the valley of the shadow of death,
I will fear no evil, for thou art with me" (Ps. xxiii. 4).
378 A MAN IS RESPONSIBLE FOR HIS BELIEF.
LXXXVI.
A MAN IS RESPONSIBLE FOR HIS BELIEF.
"There is a way which seemeth right unto a man,
but the end thereof are the ways of death."—xiv. 12.
THE way seems right, but is wrong; and the result ac-
cords, not with the false opinion, but with the absolute
truth of the case. Its issue in death proves that its
direction was erroneous. A tree is known by its fruits,
and a life-course by the end to which it leads. A man
follows a path which he thinks right, but which really is
wrong; if he persist he will perish. This case is of fre-
quent occurrence in the world, both in its material and
its moral departments. Your opinion that the path is
right does not make it right: your sincerity in that erro-
neous opinion does not exempt you from its consequences,
whether these affect more directly the body or the soul.
There is a mercantile company which bulks largely in
the public eye, and turns over vast sums, and spreads its
agencies widely over the world. You think the concern
is solid, and court its alliance. You are accepted; your
interests are bound to its fortune, and are ruined in its
fall. Your favourable opinion of a hollow pretence did
not prevent the loss of your means when the bubble
burst. The law is universal. In the nature of things it
cannot be otherwise. It is a hollow form of philosophy
that deceives some men on this point. They say, surely
A MAN IS RESPONSIBLE FOR HIS BELIEF. 379
God will not punish a man hereafter who conscientiously
walks up to his convictions, although these convictions
be in point of fact mistaken. They err, knowing neither
the inspired Scriptures nor the natural laws. Do men
imagine that God, who has established this world in such
exquisite order, and rules it by regular laws, will abdi-
cate, and leave the better world in anarchy? This
world is blessed by an undeviating connection between
causes and their effects; will the next be abandoned to
random impulses, and run back to chaos? The idea is
not only false, but impossible and absurd. It is not
even conceivable that the direction of a man's course
should not determine his landing-place.
But here an element is introduced into the calculation
which, it is thought, essentially modifies the result. In
morals the motive is an effective constituent of every
transaction: and if a man endeavour to form a right
judgment, and yet fall into error, will not his sincerity
exempt him from the consequences of his mistake? This
supposition is contrary both to the testimony of the
word, and to the analogy of nature. It sets up wilful
fancy against uniform fact. A man contracts and pays
for a ship of first-rate material and workmanship. In
due time a vessel is delivered to him of goodly ap-
pearance, but built of unseasoned material, and not
water-tight in the joints. He embarks with his family
and his goods in the treacherous bottom. When be
is out of sight, and the storm has begun to blow,
the truth begins to circulate from lip to lip among his
former neighbours that the ship is not seaworthy, and
380 A MAN IS RESPONSIBLE FOR HIS BELIEF.
the question is anxiously discussed whether she can
accomplish the voyage. If one of them should reason
that because the man did his best, and honestly believed
the ship was good, a just God overruling all, would not
permit the innocent to be drowned, while the guilty
stood on dry land safe, the suggestion would be scouted
by common consent as an unsubstantial dream. We all
know that the laws of nature do not turn aside to shield
a man from the consequences of his error, because his in-
tention was good. Every man, also, may, by a little
consideration, come to see that this arrangement is best
for the interests of all. Such is the principle that ope-
rates with undeviating uniformity in all the region which
lies within the view of man; and what ground have we
for believing that order will be exchanged for anarchy in
the government of God, whenever it steps over the
boundary of things seen and temporal?
Perhaps the secret reason why an expectation, so con-
trary to all analogy, is yet so fondly entertained, is a
tacit unbelief in the reality of things spiritual and eter-
nal We see clearly the laws by which effects follow
causes in time; but the matters on which these laws
operate are substantial realities. If there were a firm
conviction that the world to come is a substance, and not
merely a name, the expectation would necessarily be
generated, that the same principles which regulate the
divine administration of the world now, will stretch
into the unseen and rule it all. On one of the latter
days of a return voyage across the Atlantic, we paced
the level deck beneath a brilliant sun, and on a placid
A MAN IS RESPONSIBLE FOR HIS BELIEF. 381
sea, in earnest and protracted conversation with a bene-
volent and accomplished Englishman. He was sincerely
religious in his own way: and a part of his confes-
sion was that every man's religion would carry him
to heaven whatever it might be in itself, provided he
sincerely believed it. He accounted it rank bigotry to
doubt the safety of any fellow-mortal on the ground of
erroneous belief. His creed, although he would probably
have refused to sign it, if he had seen it written out,
was, Safety lies in the sincerity of the believer, without
respect to the truth of what he believes. We plied him
with the analogy of nature in the form which circum-
stances most readily suggested. We are here coursing
over the ocean at the rate of three hundred miles a day.
We have seen no land since we left the shores of Ame-
rica, nine days ago. We are approaching the coast of
Ireland, and will no doubt pass about a quarter of a mile
on the safe side of Cape Clear. The captain and his
officers have been carefully taking their observations, and
calculating their course. We have confidence in their
capacity and truth. But if they should commit a mis-
take, and cast up an erroneous reckoning, whether by
their own ignorance, or by a false figure in their tables,
or a misplaced mark on their quadrant—whether by their
own fault or the fault of others whom they innocently
trusted—will the sincerity of their belief that they are
in the right course save them and us from the conse-
quences of having deviated into a wrong one? If the
ship is directed right upon a rocky shore, will the rocky
shore not rend the ship asunder, because the master thinks
382 A MAN IS RESPONSIBLE FOR HIS BELIEF.
he is in the accustomed track? Our friend was silenced,
but he was not convinced. Argument alone will not
remove such an error. It is not a clearer head that is
needed, but a softer heart. When in conscious unwor-
thiness and godly simplicity we are willing to have it so,
we shall perceive that it is so. "Unto the upright there
ariseth light in the darkness." Even so, Father, for so it
seemed good in thy sight.
It is fashionable, in some quarters, to deny responsi-
bility for belief, on the ground that a man's opinion is
not under his own control. There is precisely the same
ground for affirming that a man cannot help his actions.
His opinions do no doubt influence his actions, but his
actions also influence his opinions. A bad life deranges
the judgment, and a deranged judgment deteriorates still
more the life. These two act reciprocally as causes, and
emerge alternately as effects.
Truth shines like light from heaven; but the mind
and conscience within the man constitute the reflector
that receives it. Thence we must read off the impres-
sions, as the astronomer reads the image from the reflector
at the bottom of his tube. When that tablet is dimmed
by the breath of evil spirits dwelling within, the truth is
distorted and turned into a lie. It was because the
man's deeds were evil that he missed the truths He is
responsible for his erroneous opinion as certainly as he
is responsible for his unrighteous act.
It may be proved, by a large induction of facts, that
among the multitude, those who become infidel in opinion
have previously become vicious in conduct; and in other
A MAN IS RESPONSIBLE FOR HIS BELIEF. 383
classes, where the experience seems to be opposite, the
difference may be only in the outward appearance. Pride,
and other forms of spiritual wickedness in the high places
of the cultivated human intellect, are as hateful to God,
and as adverse to right moral perceptions, as meaner vices
in the low places of ignorant, unrestrained sensuality.
There is no respect of persons with God.
There is a way which is right, whatever it may seem to
the world, and the end thereof is life. "If any man be in
Christ, he is a new creature." "I am the way, and the
truth, and the life, no man cometh unto the Father but
by me." God's way of coming to us in mercy, is also
our way of coming to Him in peace. Christ is expressly
"the Apostle and High Priest of our profession" (Heb.
iii. 1). He has come forth God's messenger to us, and
returned as our advocate with the Father.
384 THE BACKSLIDER.
LXXXVII.
THE BACKSLIDER.
"The backslider in heart shall be filled with his own ways."—xiv. 14.
IF the secret history of backsliders were written, many
startling discoveries would be made. Whatever the enor-
mity it may end in, backsliding begins unseen in the heart.
The Christian in name, whose fall resounds through the
land, filling the mouths of scorners with laughter, and
suffusing the faces of disciples with shame, did not de-
scend to that depth by one leap from the high place on
which he formerly stood. He does not by a sudden
resolution of mind turn from virtue into vice. He does
not even abandon his Sabbath school, or desert the
prayer-meeting, by a deliberate judgment. A slipping
begins secretly and imperceptibly in his heart, while
appearances on the surface are kept unchanged. He
ceases to watch and pray, He admits vain thoughts,
and gives them encouragement to lodge within him.
Having no hunger for righteousness, he neglects the bread
of life. He grows weary of religious exercises and reli-
gious society. If he continue to attend them, it is a bodily
service, endured for the purpose of maintaining the place
which he has attained. Duties become more irksome, and
forbidden indulgence more sweet.
There is a weighing beam exposed to public view,
with one scale loaded and resting on the ground,
THE BACKSLIDER. 385
while the other dangles high and empty in the air.
Everybody is familiar with the object, and its aspect.
One day the curiosity of the passengers is arrested by
observing that the low and loaded beam is swinging
aloft, while the side which hung empty and light has
sunk to the ground. Speculation is set on edge by the
phenomenon, and set at rest again by the discovery of
its cause. For many days certain diminutive but busy
insects had, for some object of their own, been trans-
ferring the material from the full to the empty scale.
Day by day the sides approached an equilibrium, but no
change took place in their position. At last a grain
more removed from one side, and laid in the other,
reversed the preponderance, and produced the change.
There is a similar balancing of good and evil in a human
heart. The sudden outward change results from a gra-
dual inward preparation.
All engineering proceeds upon the principle of reach-
ing great heights or depths by almost imperceptible
inclines. The adversary of men works by this wile.
When you see a man who was once counted a Christian
standing shameless on a mountain-top of open impiety, or
lying in the miry pit of vice, you may safely assume that
he has long been worming his way in secret on the spiral
slimy track by which the old serpent marks and smooths
the way to death.
On the same branch of an apricot-tree that leant
against the south side of a garden wall, I have seen two
fruits, large and luscious, hanging side by side, and ripen-
ing apace in the sun. They were of equal size and equal
386 THE BACKSLIDER.
loveliness. Their stainless bosoms peeped from beneath
the leaves, to bask in the noonday heat. Nothing in
nature could be more lovely to look upon, or more rich
in promise. Yet, ere to-morrow's sun is hot, one of them
grows black on the side, and bursts, and collapses, and
becomes a mass of rottenness, while the other remains in
undiminished beauty and fragrance by its side. Whence
the diverse fates of these twin beauties? Especially,
why did the catastrophe happen so suddenly? It hap-
pened thus:—yesterday, when you stood looking on the
two, admiring their equal beauty, one of them was hol-
low in the heart. If then you had taken it in your hand,
and turned it round, you would have seen corruption
already pervading its mass. On the dark side, next the
wall, it has been pierced and entered. Its inside has
been scooped out and devoured, while it continued to
present to the passenger as fair an appearance as ever.
And see, black, crawling, loathsome creatures are nestling
and revellin: in that hollow heart, beneath that beau-
teous skin.
Thus are fair promises in the garden of the Lord sud-
denly blighted. You have known two, standing long
side by side in a goodly profession, and labouring hand
in hand for the kingdom of Christ. One of them falls
headlong into a pit of vice, and next day the whole
neighbourhood rings with the scandal. Diverse are the
emotions, but all are moved. Christ's enemies sneer, and
his members sigh. How sudden the fall has been, sor-
rowing disciples say to each other in a suppressed whis-
per, when they meet,—how sudden and unexpected! No,
THE BACKSLIDER. 387
friends; it was not a sudden fall. In the heart, unseen,
there has been a long preparation of backsliding. Vain
thoughts have lodged within, and vile thoughts have
been welcome visitors. Persons first vain and then vile
have by degrees found their way into his presence, and
charmed him, so that he cannot want them, though he
knows they are stinging serpents. By such a process his
heart has been hollowed out, and inhabited by creatures
more loathsome than crawling vermin, while the skin of
profession was kept whole, and its fairest side turned to
public view. A cry of wonder rises from the crowd,
when the hollow shell falls in, because they did not know
its hollowness until the fall revealed it.
There is a warning, in such a case:—beware of back-
sliding in heart; small beginnings may issue in a fearful
end. But there is encouragement even here to disciples
who are humble, and trustful, and watchful. There is
no such thing as a sudden collapse of a sound heart.
"They that wait upon the Lord shall renew their
strength."
388 THE TRUSTFUL AND THE TRUTHFUL.
LXXXVIII.
THE TRUSTFUL AND THE TRUTHFUL.
"The simple believeth every word:
but the prudent man looketh well to his going." —xiv. 15.
"THE simple believeth every word;" and why not? If
it were the universal rule, it would make a happy world.
Trust is a lovely thing; but it cannot stand, unless it get
Truth to lean upon. When its tender hand has been
often pierced by a broken reed of falsehood, it pines away,
and dies of grief. A man would find it easier to be
trustful, if his neighbours were trust-worthy.
It is a well-known characteristic of little children to
believe implicitly whatever you tell them. This is one
and not the least, of those features which make up their
beauty, and draw forth our love. It remains a feature
of the child until it is worn off by hard experience of
the world. Perhaps we should recognise in it a broken
remnant of our unfallen state. It is an obvious fact in
nature, that the infant expects truth, until that expecta-
tion is burned out of him by many disappointments. Sus-
picion does not appear until it has been generated by
falsehood.
A great responsibility is attached to all our intercourse
with children. Offences will come; but woe to him by
whom the offence cometh. The child expects truth; let
him have it. Be not the first to wring his simplicity out
THE TRUSTFUL AND THE TRUTHFUL. 389
of him by double dealing. A lie told by seniors for their
amusement threw a dark shadow over my childhood, and
took much of the sunshine out of it. Some person in a
military dress, interested in the child for his father's sake,
took me fondly in his arms, when I was between four and
five years of age, and slipped a shilling into my hand.
I either never knew, or have long since forgotten, what
his name was, and what relation he sustained to the
family; but the instant he passed, older children and
grown-up people told me, with an air of seriousness, that
I was enlisted, and that whenever I should be old enough,
the officer would return, and take me off to the wars.
This intimation sank into me, and lay at my heart like
lead, all the period of my childhood. I was afraid to
speak of it, and suffered in silence. The terror was never
taken off by a serious explanation, for no one knew how
great it was. I obtained no relief until my understand-
ing gradually outgrew it. That lie wrought grievous
harm to me. Besides overclouding life at its very dawn,
it left within me, when it departed, a general grudge
against mankind for wantonly wounding the helpless.
When the boy was big enough to shake off the phantom,
he was full of indignation against the world for amusing
itself by torturing a child. The Almighty has consti-
tuted himself the Helper or Avenger of the weak, what-
ever the form of their weakness may be; beware of hurt-
ing a little child by any untruth. It is a great wicked-
ness when older children or servants torment the little
ones by inventing false terrors. Stand in awe, and speak
only sacred truth to the timid confiding infant, for the
390 THE TRUSTFUL AND THE TRUTHFUL.
Almighty Friend of the feeble is looking on. Even in little
things He will carry through the principle, "inasmuch as
ye have done it to one of these little ones, ye have done it
unto me." God has made the infant trustful, and then cast
him upon you: if you take advantage of that trustfulness to
deceive, whether in great things or small, you are mocking
its Author. The child is poor, and lying threats oppress
it: "He that oppresseth the poor, reproacheth his Maker."
"Vengeance is mine; I will repay, saith the Lord." As
the young of birds instinctively open their mouths for
food, and their mothers never—not even once since the
creation of the world—have thrown in chaff to mock
their hunger; so the trustfulness of children is the open-
ing of their mouth for truth: if we fling falsehood in,
and laugh at their disappointment, the Lord will require
it. It is not amusement; it is sin. It is both a crime
and a blunder. They are called Goths and Vandals who
deface the precious remnants of Greek statuary that have
descended to our times. What name would fitly desig-
nate the barbarian who, in sheer wantonness, spoils the
beauty of a finer, fairer form—who rubs off by vulgar
lies the lovely trustfulness of a little child?
"The prudent looketh well to his going;" and good
cause he has so to do. In this world a man is obliged
to be suspicious. Man suffers more from man than from
the elements of nature or the beasts of the field. A time
is coming when this species of prudence will be no longer
needed. When the people shall be all righteous, there
will be no deception on one side, and no distrust on the
other. How sweet even this life would be, if there
THE TRUSTFUL AND THE TRUTHFUL. 391
were no falsehood and no distrust. If every speaker
were true, and every hearer trustful, already the new
world would have begun. As yet, we must walk cir-
cumspectly at every step, lest a neighbour deceive us. In
the new heavens and new earth, truth will pervade all
like air. "They shall not hurt nor destroy in all my
holy mountain, saith the Lord." Oh, that will be joyful,
joyful, when there shall be no lie to generate suspicion, and
no suspicion generated by a lie!
392 THE FOOL'S CONFIDENCE.
LXXXIX.
THE FOOL'S CONFIDENCE.
"A wise man feareth, and departeth from evil:
but the fool rageth, and is confident."—xiv. 16.
A WISE man fears sin, and distrusts himself He knows
that the enemy is strong, and that his own defences are
feeble. His policy, therefore, is not to brave danger, but
to keep out of harm's way. He seeks safety in flight.
The character of the wise man may be read most distinctly
in the dark but polished mirror that stands on the other
side—"the fool rageth, and is confident." From the
glossy surface of this intensified folly, the wisdom of
modesty shines brightly out.
The fool's picture is truthfully sketched here, in few
lines. His character is mainly made up of two features:
he thinks little of danger, and much of himself. These
two ingredients constitute a foot He stumbles on both
sides alike. That which is strong he despises, and that
which is weak he trusts. The dangers that beset him
are great, but he counts them nothing; the strength that
is in him is as nothing, but he counts it great. Thus, he
is on all hands out of his reckoning, and stumbles at every
step.
The end of such a fool was described lately in the
newspapers. Many must have read and shuddered at
THE FOOL'S CONFIDENCE. 393
the tragic tale. A certain man was employed by the
Zoological Society of London, as a keeper in their collec-
tion of animals. His department was the care of the
serpents. A separate building was appropriated to them,
and stringent regulations laid down for their manage-
ment. The keeper's wages were good and his work was
light. If he had been cautious and careful, his life would
have been safe and his labour easy. Those of the ser-
pents that are venomous must be closely confined and
cautiously tended. The front of the cage is of strong
glass. It is divided into two equal parts by a partition,
in which there is a door. The serpents lie in one of these
divisions, while the other is empty. It is the duty of the
keeper, at certain times, to introduce an iron rod through
a small opening, and therewith remove them by the door
in the partition from the one compartment into the other.
This done, he makes fast the door, and then enters the
emptied cage, for the purpose of cleaning it and depositing
food. One morning the keeper opened the door, before
the serpents were removed, took one of them in his
hands, hung it around his neck, and thus attired ran after
his companions, sportively pretending to throw it upon
them. He was warned that it might sting, and its sting
might be death. He laughed at the warning. He then
put the creature back into the cage, without having
received any harm. Next he drew out a cobra capella,
and placed it in his bosom beneath his coat, calling out,
"I am inspired; it will not hurt me." Waxing bolder
by impunity, he grasped the deadly reptile by the middle,
and held it up before his face pretending to speak to it.
394 THE FOOL'S CONFEDENCE.
Drawing itself back to take aim, the creature made a
sudden dart, and fixed its fangs in his nostrils. Sobered
by fear, he screamed out, tore the fangs out of his flesh,
and flung the serpent back into the cage. He was car-
ried to an hospital, and died in fearful agony about an
hour afterwards.
The fool raged and was confident; but he was drunk
at the time, otherwise he would not have taken a venom-
ous snake in his hand and held it up to his face. The
man was not himself: it was strong drink that raged
within him. Yes, he was drunk. His own act brought
madness on, and then the snake plunged its poisonous
fangs in the madman's blood. The snake did not abstain
from stinging him; the poison did not abstain from de-
stroying his life because he was drunk: and will God
abstain from judging him because he was drunk when he
stumbled into eternity? How many in our land, every
year, die as that fool died? They inflame their appetite
by a little strong drink, and then blind the eye of reason
by more. With reason laid asleep, and passions heated
into sevenfold fury, they sally forth and get or give a
mortal wound. Every man who even once maddens
himself by drink is a fool of the same stamp with the
serpent-keeper. He has allowed a snake to coil itself
round his body: no thanks to him if it creep off without
spurting death into his veins. The confidence of fools is
their ruin. The safety of a wise man lies in that modest
sense of his own infirmity, which makes him fear and
depart from evil. Solomon's advice is, "Look not thou
upon the wine when it is red, when it giveth his colour
THE FOOL'S CONFIDENCE. 395
in the cup, when it moveth itself aright: at the last it
biteth like a serpent and stingeth like an adder" (xxiii.
31, 32).
We seem as a nation to derive little benefit from the
warnings which reach us through the newspapers by hun-
dreds every year, in the form of frightful deaths caused
by drunkenness. A man will readily resolve, as he reads
these tragedies, that he will neither murder his neighbour
nor walk over a quarry himself: but his resolution may
avail him nothing if he dally with strong drink. This
people are paying a heavy price, and yet they will get no
wisdom in return, if they content themselves with punish-
ing murder and loathing suicide, and continue to think
lightly of drunkenness, which is the most prolific seed of
both. He would be the greatest benefactor of his country,
in all its interests, who should lodge in the public mind an
adequate estimate of drunkenness, as a sin in the sight of
God, an injury to the individual, and a crime against
society. As long as public opinion makes light of this
germ-sin, its fruits will work us heavy woe.
396 WITNESSES.
XC.
WITNESSES.
"A true witness delivereth souls."—xiv. 25.
"TRUTH is great and it will prevail;" but truth in the
abstract is like a disembodied spirit, and cannot exert a
power upon the world. It must be incarnate in a living
witness ere its effect be felt.
One witness, faithful and true, has appeared among
men, and this witness delivers souls. He is the Truth in
human nature, and the truth makes the captive free. If
the Son make you free, ye shall be free indeed. Of the
sin of men and the holiness of God, of the curse and the
blessing, the fall and the rising again, He is witness. He
is the way and the truth and the life. There is no sal-
vation in any other. If we would see evidence either of
God's anger against sin, or His mercy to sinners, we must
look unto Jesus.
But in Him, and by Him, and for Him, Christians are
witnesses too. In this respect, "as He is, so are we in
this world" (1 John iv. 17). Every one whom Christ
saves from the world He uses in it. Deserters from the
powers of darkness are, one by one as they come over,
incorporated in the armies of the living God, and sent
back to do battle against their former lord. If you are
a Christian, these two things are true of you: first, you
have need of Christ, and, second, Christ has need of you.
WITNESSES. 397
He saves you, and you serve Him. All things are in His
hand. Those who are bought with His blood He loves,
with a love that is wonderful, passing the love of mothers:
He would call them home, and give them rest, if He had
not some needful work for them to do in this outer world.
The very fact of a Christian being here and not in heaven,
is a proof that some work awaits him.
And the special work for which Christians are left in
the world is to be witnesses. Himself told his disciples
so when He was about to leave them: "Ye shall receive
power after that the Holy Ghost is come upon you; and
ye shall be witnesses unto me" (Acts i. 8). On high,
whither he was then going, he does not need witnesses.
There they behold his glory. The Lamb is the light of
heaven, and they who bask in His rays need none to
tell them that He is great and good; but in this outfield,
where enmity and ignorance prevail, Christ has need of
witnesses, and He has chosen to this office those who
trust in His salvation and are called by His name.
He does not send angels to proclaim His message and
wield His power. He does not command the thunders
to pronounce His name, and the lightnings to write His
character on the sky. The epistle in which He desires
to be read is the life of His disciples. The evidence by
which the Spirit will convince the world is His truth,
uttered from the word, and echoed, still and small, from
the meek and quiet life-course of converted men. It
should be encouraging, stimulating, elevating to the hum-
blest disciple to learn that the Lord who redeemed him
has appointed his time and his path. It is required that
398 WITNESSES.
we be witnesses unto Him wherever we are and whoever
may question us. Two qualifications are required in a
witness, truth and love (Eph. iv. 15): these are needed,
but these will do. With these one will chase a thousand,
and two put ten thousand to flight.
The place of a witness for Christ in the world is
honourable, but arduous. A witness, in contested cases,
after giving evidence in chief, is subjected to cross-
examination. A Christian's profession is, and is under-
stood to be, his direct and positive testimony that he is
bought with a price, and bound to serve the Lord that
bought him: but as soon as this testimony is emitted, the
cross-examination begins. If he be not a true witness,
he will stumble there. Either or both of two persons,
with very different views; may subject a witness to cross-
exaanination—the judge or the adversary. It is chiefly
done by the adversary, and in his interests. The Supreme
himself puts professing disciples to the test before the
public court of the world; but when He so tries his chil-
dren, the truth comes forth purer and brighter by the
trial. He who goes about as a roaring lion, seeking
whom he may devour, tempt, to destroy. He puts the
witness to the question in order to break him down. An
inquirer who saw you at the Lord's table meets you in
the market-place. If he saw the solemnity of a trustful
worshipper there, and feel the gripe of an overreacher
here, he counts your testimony for Christ not true, and
sets his conscience free from the restraints of begun con-
viction. The keen eye of an adversary, sharpened into
more than natural intensity by the reproof which your
WITNESSES. 399
profession administered, tracks you into the world, and
questions you there. Every inconsistency raises a shout
of triumph in the circle who will not have this Man to
reign over them, and draws a sigh in secret from the
broken hearts of the Lord's meek and poor afflicted ones.
They speak of the evidences of religion, and much has
been done in our day to multiply and confirm them.
But, after all, Christians are the best evidences of Chris-
tianity. Alas, we have for eighteen hundred years been
printing books to prove Christianity true, and living so
as to make men think we do not believe it. Living wit-
nesses, if they be true, have far more power than dead
letters of a book, however accurate they may be. The
last words of Jesus on the earth were to leave this, charge
upon his members, "Ye shall be witnesses unto me,
both in Jerusalem, and in all Judea, and in Samaria, and
unto the uttermost part of the earth; and when he had
spoken these things, while they beheld, he was taken up,
and a cloud received him out of their sight" (Acts i. 8, 9).
His last command is, in the place where ye happen to be,
and in all the neighbourhood as far as your influence
reaches, and when opportunity occurs to all mankind, be
ye witnesses unto me. After this he departed in a cloud.
He will come again in the clouds, and every eye shall see
Him. Occupy till He come. At His coming we would
like to be found faithful and busy in the very work
which he prescribed. There is no other work worth
living for, or fit for dying in. How much you have
gotten from Christ, and how much you have done for
needy men while passing through life—these are the
400 WITNESSES.
only things that will be important when the closing hour
has come. To be saved, and to commend the Saviour,—
this is the double aim fit to fill a human heart and a
human life.
"A true witness delivereth souls;" and a false witness?
He is the stone over which they stumble. It is not in
the power of any man to be neutral in the conflict be-
tween light and darkness. Good and evil in actual life
are like land and sea on the globe. If you are not on
the one, you must be on the other. There is no belt of
intermediate territory for the irresolute to linger on. Let
no man who bears Christ's name lay the unction to his
soul, that if he does no good he at least does no evil.
One of the heaviest complaints made in the prophets
against Jerusalem for her backsliding, is that she was a
"comfort" to Samaria and Sodom (Ezek. xvi. 54); that
those who had the name and place of God's people, so
lived is to make the wicked feel at ease. If the salt
retain its saltness, surrounding corruption will be made
uneasy by the contact. If Christians live as like the
world as they can, the world will think itself safe in its
sin; and those who should have been the deliverers, will
become the destroyers of their neighbours.
THE PLACE OF REFUGE. 401
XCI.
THE PLACE OF REFUGE.
"In the fear of the Lord is strong confidence;
and his children shall have a place of refuge."—xiv. 26.
FEAR is confidence: the words sound strangely. They
are like that blessed paradox of Paul, "when I am weak,
then am I strong." They are strange indeed, but true.
To fear God aright is to be delivered from all fear.
"His salvation is nigh them that fear him." To have
such a neighbour is strong consolation to a human spirit
in this howling wilderness. The fear which brings a
sinner submissive and trustful to the sacrifice and righte-
ousness of the Substitute is itself a confidence. The
great and terrible God becomes the "dwelling-rock" of
the fugitive. Those who went early to the sepulchre
and looked into the empty grave where the Lord lay,
departed from the place with "fear and great joy." A
human soul, made at first in God's image, has great capa-
city still. In that large place fear and great joy can
dwell together. There are different kinds of fear: there
is a fear that "hath torment," and perfect love, when it
comes, casts that kind out (1 John iv. 18). Like fire
and water, these two cannot agree. The fear that hath
torment by its very nature keeps or casts out confidence
from a human heart. But the filial fear of the dear chil-
dren may be known by this, that it takes in beside itself
402 THE PLACE OF REFUGE.
a great joy, and the two brethren dwell together in unity.
When the fear of God, which a sinner feels, is plunged in
redeeming love, the torment is discharged, and confidence
comes in its stead.
"His children shall have a place of refuge." God is
their refuge and their strength: they will not fear
though the earth be removed. They "are kept by the
power of God through faith unto salvation" (1 Pet. 5).
There are two keepings very diverse from each other,
and yet alike in this, that both employ as their instru-
ments strong walls and barred gates. Great harm accrues
from confounding them, and therefore the distinction
should be made and kept clear. Gates and bars may be
closed around you for the purpose of keeping you in, or
of keeping your enemy out. The one is a prison, the
other a fortress. In construction and appearance the two
places are in many respects similar. The walls are in
both cases high, and the bars strong. In both it is essen-
tial that the guards be watchful and trusty. But they
differ in this—the prison is constructed with a view to
prevent escape from within; the fortress to defy assault
from without. In their design and use they are exact
contraries. The one makes sure the bondage, the other
the liberty of its inmates. In both cases it is a keep,
and in both the keep is strong—the one is strong to
keep the prisoner in, the other strong to keep the
enemy out.
The fear of the Lord to those who are within, and
have tasted of his grace, is the strong confidence of a for-
tress to defend them from every foe; to those who look
THE PLACE OF REFUGE. 403
at it from without, it often seems a frowning prison that
will close out the sunlight from all who go within its
portals, and waste young life away in mouldy dungeons.
Mistakes are common on this point, and these mistakes
are disastrous.
Life to the Christian is a warfare, all the way. He is
safe, but his safety is not the peace of home. It is the
protection of a strong tower in the presence of enemies.
The children of the kingdom are safe though weak, not
because none seek their hurt, but because greater is He
that is for them, than all that are against them. This
is the condition of all who have turned to the Lord, and
have not yet entered into rest. They are out of the
kingdom of darkness, but have not reached the presence
of God. In all this middle region they are safe, but
their safety cometh from the Lord.
Danger surrounds them: but they are kept in safety.
Before they were converted they did not desire this
keeping; when they are glorified they will not need it.
But in all this passage through the wilderness, after they
have burst forth from Egypt, and before they have
reached the promised land, "His children" need and get
"a place of refuge."
This is their best estate on earth, His children though
they be. It is good to know precisely what we have a
right to expect. If we carelessly count on advantages
which have not been promised, and not provided for us.
we shall be thrown off our guard and suffer loss. The
utmost request that Jesus made for His disciples was,
not that they should be taken out of the world, but kept
404 THE PLACE OF REFUGE.
from the evil (John xvii. 15). This, therefore, is the
utmost that will be given. Enemies swarm around—
His children are feeble; the safety provided is confidence
in Himself, the strong tower into which the righteous
run.
But often a trembling fugitive mistakes the fortress
for a prison, and refuses to go in. A single soldier in an
enemy's country is crossing the plain in haste, and making
towards a castle whose battlements appear in relief on
the distant sky. A man who appears a native of the
place joins him from a bypath, and asks with appa-
rent kindness whither he is going. To yonder fortress,
says the soldier, where my Sovereign's army lies in
strength. The stranger, under pretence of friendship,
endeavours to persuade him that it is a prison. He is
an emissary of the enemy, sent to detain the fugitive
until it be too late, and then cut him off. In this way
many are turned back from the place of refuge after they
seemed to have turned their faces thitherwards. Agents
of the enemy, under various disguises, join themselves to
the young, and insinuate that to be seriously religious is
to throw their liberty away. Multitudes, whom no man
can number, are thus cheated and lost. They would like
to be safe, but cannot consent to go into a dungeon yet.
When they grow old, and the appetite for pleasure is
comparatively weak, they think they can submit to the
sombre shade of those towers where the regenerate have
taken refuge; but as yet they love life too well to plunge
into a living death.
A little religion is a painful thing. It destroys one
THE PLACE OF REFUGE. 405
pleasure, and supplies no other in its stead. In this land
of light and of privilege, many go as far forward in a
religious profession as to embitter the joy of the world;
few seem to advance far enough in the "new and living
way" to reach a refuge in the joy of the Lord. Safety
lies in drawing near to God, and the distinguishing mark
of an unbelieving heart is that it departs from Him. If
the fortress were some pile of self-righteousness, or even
a huge, shapely heap of penances and fastings, men
with their corruption all about them would be content to
take shelter there; but since the offered resting-place is
under the eye, and even in the bosom of the Holiest, they
will not and cannot go in, unless they are made willing
to put off the old nature and leave it behind. "His
children shall have a place of refuge," and the refuge is
such that only the children count it a boon. The Great
Teacher told Nicodemus first about seeing the kingdom
of God, and next about entering it (John iii. 3, 5). No
man will go into the kingdom until he has some spiritual
perception of what it is. Though the Refuge is provided,
and the gate standing open, and the invitation free, poor
wanderers stand shivering without, because a suspicion
clings to the guilty conscience, that the “strong tower,”
offered as a safe dwelling-place, will turn out to be a
place of confinement from genial society and human
joys. We must take up Philip's simple prayer, "Lord,
shew us the Father." If the prodigal could know the
Father's love, he would arise and go to the Father's
bosom.
406 ENVY—THE DISEASE AND THE CURE.
XCII.
ENVY—THE DISEASE AND THE CURE.
"A sound heart is the life of the flesh;
but envy the rottenness of the bones."—xiv. 30.
AN object is sometimes so situated that you can see it better
by looking away from it to the surface of a mirror opposite
than by attempting to look directly upon itself. If you
want to know what is meant by a sound heart, look over
to the other clause, and learn that envy is the rottenness
of the bones. Soundness of heart is generous love to a
brother, kindled there by Christ's love to us. "Love one
another as I have loved you." When that grace of the
Lord is transferred to a disciple, and written by the Spirit
so deeply upon the fleshly table within, that it can be read
by the passer-by on the man's outer life, the new creature
is sound at heart and vigorous in action. "Perfect love
casteth out fear" in relation to God, and envy in relation
to fellow-men.
Among the many diseases to which the living body
is liable, some are much more appalling and repulsive
than others, though not more deadly. Perhaps there is
not one of all the ghastly host that casts a deeper shadow
of dismay before it over a human spirit than rottenness
in the bones. The very conception of it in the imagina-
tion is enough to send a cold shudder through the frame.
Such is the tried word chosen by the Spirit to designate
ENVY—THE DISEASE AND THE CURE. 407
envy, an evil disease which is endemic among mankind.
Like other diseases that affect the spirit rather than
the body, its nature is such, that they who are most
deeply tinged by the infection are least alive to the dan-
ger. To arouse the envious out of their indifference, that
ailment of the soul is named after one of the most fright-
ful maladies that preys upon the human frame and wastes
its life away. New creatures in Christ Jesus, if the
spiritual life be in healthful exercise, dread every tincture
of envy felt working within them as they would dread
the symptoms of incipient caries in their bones.
Envy is called a passion; and passion means suffering.
The patient who is ill of envy is a sinner and a sufferer
too. He is an object of pity. It is a mysterious and
terrible disease. The nerves of sensation within the man
are attached by some unseen hand to his neighbours all
around him, so that every step of advancement which
they make tears the fibres that lie next his heart. The
wretch enjoys a moment's relief when the mystic cord
is temporarily slackened by a neighbour's fall; but his
agony immediately begins again, for he anticipates an-
other twitch as soon as the fallen is restored to prosperity.
No species of sensitive pleasure can be greater or purer
than that of the convalescent when the disease has been
cast out, and he walks forth without pain to breathe the
fresh air, and look on the green fields again. Those who
have long pined in disease, and been at last delivered,
relish most keenly the blessing of health. Such is the
delight of being delivered from the tormenting presence
of envy, and emerging into love. It is the sensation of
408 ENVY—THE DISEASE AND THE CURE.
renewed health, when rottenness has been purged out of
the bones. They who are led into love walk at liberty.
It is a large place. Your path would never be crossed,
and your person never jostled, although all the world
were beside you there. As to the room that is in him
and about him, a disciple is, according to his capacity,
like his Lord.
But the cure of envy, as it is wrought by the love of
Christ, is not only a deliverance from pain; it is, even
in the present world, an unspeakable gain. That man
will speedily grow rich who gets and puts into his bag
not only all his own winnings, but also all the winnings
of his neighbours. Whenever love like Christ's takes
possession of a man, and drives the rottenness from his
bones, the capital of his enjoyment is increased by all
his own prosperity and all the prosperity of others. His
peace, according to the simple and sure imagery of scrip-
ture, is like a river. A river that follows its own course
in solitude does not grow great. The Nile, contrary to
the analogy of other great streams, flows more than a
thousand miles without receiving the waters of a single
tributary; the consequence is, that it grows no greater
as it courses over that vast line. Other rivers are every
now and then receiving converging streams from the right
and left, and thereby their volume continually increases
until it reach the sea. The happiness of a man is like
the flow of water in a river. If you enjoy nothing but
what is your own, your tiny rivulet of contentment, so
far from increasing, grows smaller by degrees, until it
sinks unseen in the sand, and leaves you in a desert of
ENVY—THE DISEASE AND THE CURE. 409
despair; but when all the acquisitions of your neighbours
go to swell its bulk, your enjoyment will flow like a
river enriched by many affluents, growing ever greater
as life approaches its close. It is some such river that
makes glad the city of our God. Envy will be unknown
there. "Faith, hope, charity, these three; but the greatest
of these is charity." Charity is very pure, and very
great. When the rottenness that mingled with it shall
be all cast out, and charity without spot or wrinkle shall
be the element of heaven, the redeemed will be the happy
inmates of a happy home. If there were no envy, but
only love—if each should count and feel his neighbour's
good to be his own gain, this earth would already be a
heaven.
To have constituted the world so that envy is as rotten-
ness in the bones, and love is felt like the glow of health
permeating the frame, is a glory to the world's Maker.
Every sensation of glad enlargement enjoyed by a loving
heart, at the sight of a neighbour's prosperity, is a still
small voice, announcing to him who hath an ear that God
is good; and every pang that gnaws the envious, like rot-
tenness in his bones, is the same word, God is good, echoed
unwillingly back from the suffering of sin.
410 THE MERCIFUL.
XCIII.
THE MERCIFUL
"He that oppresseth the poor, reproacheth his Maker;
but he that honoureth Him hath mercy on the poor."—xiv. 31.
FAITH in God is the foundation that sustains the goodly
superstructure of relative duties. A greater than Solo-
mon imparted the same instruction to the apostle who
leant on His breast. This commandment have we from
Him: "That he who loveth God, love his brother also"
(1 John iv. 21). The Almighty casts his shield over
those who have no other help. He espouses the cause
of the poor. To oppress them is to reproach Him. In
the arrangements of His providence, the poor we have
always with us, as tests to try our love, and objects
to exercise it on. Love of God is the root of the matter
in a human heart: but the root, though the chief thing,
is from its nature unseen. It is known by its fruit, and
its fruit is philanthropy. The necessary dependence of
human duty upon divine faith is laid down by Solomon
as clearly as by John: "He that honoureth Him, hath
mercy on the poor." If the heart is right with God, the
hand will be open to a brother; but a profession of faith
by a merciless man the Most High will repudiate as
hypocrisy. The ancient Church possessed in full the
glorious truth, that of all the real compassion which
flows through human channels, the fountain-head is on
high. He who gets mercy shows it.
THE MERCIFUL. 411
In His own teaching on this subject, Jesus said, "These
things have I spoken unto you, that my joy might remain
in you, and that your joy might be full;" and imme-
diately added, "This is my commandment, that ye love
one another" (John xv. 11, 12). The connection be-
tween these two intimations is interesting and obvious.
First, his own joy; next, that joy flowing into his dis-
ciples, so that they shall be full; and then these full
vessels flowing over in streams of Christ-like love on
all the needy within their reach. It is this union to the
Head that will enable—that will compel a disciple to love
his brother. From this fountain, through this channel, a
love-stream will flow of volume sufficient to carry down
before it a whole legion of obstructing jealousies.
These are the principles; and now, some suggestions
as to the practice of mercy to the poor.
1. We must not confine our aim either to the sins of
the soul on the one hand, or to the sufferings of the body
on the other. You cannot effectively or permanently
help your poor brother, if you treat him merely as a body
with life in it. The laws of Providence forbid. Whom
God hath joined, no man can with impunity put asunder.
Soul and body are so united, that the one cannot really be
elevated while the other is left low. Those who attempt
the material elevation of the species by material means
alone, do and must fail. Soul and body are bound
together for better and for worse. We cannot keep our
brother's body and neglect his soul. If we would
rescue the falling, we must lay hold of the whole man.
On the other side, we will not succeed in influencing
412 THE MERCIFUL.
the spirits of the wretched, if we are callous to their
bodily sufferings. If we leave behind unnoticed the
body's privations, we shall not reach the soul to deal with
its sins. The avenue to the spirit lies, in part at least,
through the bodily senses. If we do not approach in
that way, we shall be kept out, and our spiritual coun-
sels, however good, will strike against the closed door of
an anguished heart, and rebound in our faces, like an
echo that mocks us from a rock. The double rule for
the whole case is—as to the supply of spiritual destitu-
tion, this ought ye to do; and as to the healing of physi-
cal ailments, that ought ye not to leave undone.
2. Every one must do his part in the great work of
helping those who cannot help themselves. To prescribe
other people's duty, and neglect our own, is a foolish and
mischievous habit. We must not suppose that philan-
thropists are a few eminent personages, standing out in
high relief on the page of history—men born, like poets,
to their destiny, whose office is to cure human ills on the
stage of a continent, and in sight of an admiring world.
Honour to the greatly good of every age and every coun-
try; but the bulk of mercy's work must everywhere be
done by the many thousands of kind hearts and busy hands
that are never heard of half a mile from home. Most of
the light we work by on the surface of the earth, comes to
us reflected from unnumbered objects near that get it from
the sun; and so the glimpses of compassion that fall in
all directions on the poor, from every heart that basks in
the love of Jesus, constitute, by aggregate of many little
things, the bulk and substance of the effort that mitigates
THE MERCIFUL. 413
the sufferings of men. Let every man do his best in the
place which he holds, and with the means at his disposal
3. Mercy to the poor must be a law operating from
within, and not a system adopted from without. Where
ever genuine coin is going, counterfeits appear. There
is a species of charity, got up according to the fashion,
that flourishes in benevolent societies abroad, and comes
home to snarl at a servant who is doing her best to
please. You never find the law of gravitation acting on
a steeple, and forgetting itself in the shaft of a coal-pit
where it is out of sight. The laws of God never put on
appearances, whether they be the laws that are stamped
on creation, or those that are written by the Spirit on a
renewed heart. If there be truth in the inward parts,
the outward actions will be consistent. The legs of the
lame are unequal, and he makes no progress in this race
of benevolence. I would estimate at a low price the
philanthropy of the man who has spent ten thousand on
an hospital, and oppresses his own dependents in detail.
The ills of life are real; we must have a real love to cope
with them. Mercy to man must have its spring in the
heart, that its streams may be ever ready to flow, wher-
ever there is an opening. The sufferings of humanity
cannot be conjured away by a name: a nature is needed
to secure a steady supply of mercy, and that nature must
be new. Howard was a man of great mercy, but he was
not a great man. He was not great, but he was true,
and the secret of his power lay in his truth. It was
conscious union to Christ as a sinner saved that animated,
sustained, and directed him Mercy in him acted by a
414 THE MERCIFUL.
law of the new creature, and it was steady like nature's
other laws. It acted on every object and at every time,
without partiality and without hypocrisy. If the un-
healthful cottages of Cardington had been left wet above
and wet below, while Howard sewed the rents from
their squalid inmates, he would not have been able to
have poured the balm of humanity on the barbarism of
British and continental prisons. Inconsistency, if he had
been guilty of it, would have unnerved his arm and un-
dermined his influence. Neglect of smaller oppressions
near his own dwelling would have shorn the locks of his
strength; and the mighty Philistines whom he met
abroad, instead of falling by his sling, would have put
out his eyes and made sport of his blindness. It was
love that led him forth, and truth that made him strong.
If a man is not merciful all over, he is not merciful at all.
4. There must be regulating wisdom as well as motive
power. There must indeed be an impulse in order to
energetic action, but we must not act by impulses. We
need all the power that we possess; it is a pity that any
of it should be wasted. To give alms to little children
sent by profligate parents to enact misery on the street
is money thrown away, and mercy too. Of late years
much has been done to indoctrinate the public mind on
this subject. Whether the public have learned the lesson
yet, I know not; but certainly they have been often
taught that it is. useless and mischievous to give pence
indiscriminately to beggars on the street or the wayside.
This doctrine is true, but it does not contain the whole
truth in regard to that subject. One side of truth may
THE MERCIFUL. 415
become practically falsehood. We need the counsels
which have of late been largely addressed to us from
many quarters, to harden us against giving by sudden
impulse to persons unworthy or unknown; but we don't
need any lecture to repress within our hearts the move-
ments of mercy to the poor. I am jealous for myself
and others, lest, in leaning hard over from the side of
lavish expenditure on the unworthy, we should fall, on
the other side, into a callous indifference to human suffer-
ings. We must not check the impulse because counter-
feit poverty has abused our compassion and wasted our
gifts. Direct it upon genuine poverty, and stimulate it
to the utmost. Such is the constitution of the world,
and the condition of men, that if the relations are rightly
managed, the rich may get more good from the presence of
the poor than the poor get from the gifts of the rich. The
flow of compassion is healthful; obstruction in the channel
breeds disease in the moral system. It is both health
and happiness to a mother to have a helpless, little, living
thing hanging on her breast, and drawing its sustenance
from her body. To want it would be neither a pleasure
nor a profit. The poor we have always with us, and it
is a double blessedness to give.
The discovery of abuses should induce us not to seal
the fountain, but to direct the stream. Where no water
runs, no ships, with their precious burdens, navigate the
interior of a country. Even where there is it stream
constant and strong, it does not follow that you can have
safe and profitable inland navigation. If the water turn
sharply round a corner here, and leap white and frothing
416 THE MERCIFULL.
over a rock there, it will be better to entrust no ship to
its impetuous movements. What then? Then neither
entrust your floating treasures to that wayward stream,
nor let the country lie lean for want of commerce. Dig
a canal. Your canal will do nothing for you dry, and
your river will do nothing for you although it is filled to
the brim; but let, the river into the canal, and forthwith
ply your traffic. The whole neighbourhood will be en-
riched. Let us beware of either checking or wasting any
impulse of humanity; we need it all, and more. Direct
it wisely, and let it flow.
5. Another important rule for the practice of mercy
to the poor is, whatever share you may be able to take
in the wholesale benevolence of organized societies, you
should also carry on a retail business, by personal contact
with the sufferers. Societies and pecuniary contributions
are necessary, in their own place; but even although they
should satisfy the wants of the receive; the greater bless-
ing to the giver cannot come through these channels.
Personal contact—face to face, heart to heart, hand to
hand—this is the best way to do good, and get good.
We are indebted to our Father in heaven for all the good
that we enjoy; and as our goodness reacheth not unto
Him, He has made the account payable to the poor. No
man has any right to lift himself up in pride; no man
has any right even to count that he condescends, when he
enters the houses, and listens to the tale of the sufferers.
He is only owning, we cannot say paying, a lawful debt.
It is simply the act of honouring his Maker. When he
has done all, he is an unprofitable servant.
THE TWO DEPARTURES, ETC. 417
XCIV.
THE TWO DEPARTURES—THE HOPEFUL AND
THE HOPELESS.
"The wicked is driven away in his wickedness:
but the righteous hath hope in his death."—xiv. 32.
THE peculiarities of the Hebrew proverb shine conspicu-
ously in this specimen. The two arms of the sentence
are nicely balanced, and move round a common centre.
There is a mixture of similarity and difference, which
makes the meaning perspicuous and the expression me-
morable. But if there is peculiar beauty in the words,
there is terrible sublimity in the thoughts which they
convey. Unspeakably great are the two things which
the two balanced branches of this proverb hold in their
hands. These two arms, outstretched and opposite, direct
the observer, by their piercing finger-points, to Death on
this side, and Life on that—endless both. Looking this
way, you read the doom of the wicked; that way, you
descry the hope of the just.
1. The doom, of the wicked—He "is driven away in
his wickedness." As smoke is driven by the wind, so will
the wicked perish in the day of wrath. I think I hear
arguments fitfully muttering through pauses of the blast,
that "God would not make creatures, and then tor-
ment them." The smoke complains that it is hard to be
driven by the wind; and yet it is driven by the wind.
418 THE TWO DEPARTURES—
This very word will justify the Judge, and shut the con-
vict's mouth. It comes to warn the wicked, that he may
turn and live. If he come out of his wickedness at
God's invitation, he will not be driven away in it by His
wrath.
We are not able to form a right conception of what it
is to be and abide in wickedness. Because it is so near
us, we do not know it. If it were a body standing be-
fore us, we could examine its proportions, and describe its
appearance; but because it is a spirit transfused through
us, we remain ignorant of its character and power. To
be in sin is a fearful condition; yet he who is in it may
be at ease. A ship is lying in a placid river when win-
ter comes, and is gradually frozen in. The process was
gentle, and almost imperceptible. There was no commo-
tion and no crash. The ice crept round, and closed in
upon the ship without any noisy note of warning. If it
had been a foreign body brought by human hands to
bind the ship withal, the operation would have been ob-
served. If men, whether professing to be friends or foes,
had carried trees or stones, and piled them round the
ship, suspicion would have been aroused; the owners
would have heaved their anchors, and worn her down to
the sea for safety. As it was, no one approached the
ship. Her own element, the water on which she lay,
closed and held her. It was not possible to prevent that
lockfast, except by taking the ship out of the river in
time.
But what is the effect? The ship is not shaken. No
creaking is heard—no strain is felt. She feels firm and
THE HOPEFUL AND THE HOPELESS. 419
easy. Even when the pines of the neighbouring forest
are bending to the blast, she sits unmoved in her solid
bed. That bed she has made for herself, and therefore it
fits her. This is very like the wicked in his iniquity,
and before he is driven away. When it closed round
him, he was not afraid. It was not some danger threat-
ening from without, and pressed forward by another. It
was his own; it was what he had always been in. It
was his element. Silently and surely, that which he lived
in congealed and locked him fast. Nor is he in any way
alarmed. In its closing embrace, it does not thwart him.
It humours him all round. It yields to every feature of
his character, only it holds him fast. He is more at ease
now than others, or than himself was before. His neigh-
bours may be sometimes agitated, but he is at peace.
He stands steady in his element, and no ripple disturbs
its surface.
When the ice of the river goes away, the imbedded
ship goes with it. It is a dreadful departure. The rup-
ture of the ice on a large river is one of the sublimest
scenes in nature. The water swells beneath; the ice
holds by the crooked banks a while; but after a period
of suspense, the flood prevails, and the trembling rending
mass gives way. Reeling icebergs and foaming yellow
waves tumble downward in tumultuous heaps, and the
ship is swept away like a feather on a flood.
If we had a sense for perceiving spiritual things, the
most heart-rending sight in the world would be a sinner
set fast in his element, and the flood, of wrath secretly
swelling from beneath. They speak of angels weeping,
420 THE TWO DEPARTURES—
and the figure may in its own place be useful; but we
do not need the aid of such a supposition here. The
Lord of angels wept indeed, when he saw sinners fixed
and easy in their sin, with the tide of divine vengeance
rolling forward to drive them away. That same Jesus
looks in pity now on the wicked in their wickedness, and
continues sweetly calling, "Come unto me."
No remedy is possible to the wicked in his wickedness;
and the remedy which consists in bringing him out, he is
not willing to accept. For all who are sinners—that is,
for all men—a rending is prepared. Every one must
either be riven out of his wickedness, or driven away in
it. This tearing or that every one must endure. The
alternative is, Come out of her, my people; or, Be par-
taker of her plagues. Pain there must be; either the
pain of the new birth, or that of the final judgment. A
process is ready for drawing the victims out. The power
is Christ's love; the means the gospel message. Some
lie locked fast in wickedness, who know that wrath is
coming, and yet refuse to let the line of that Almighty
love be laid about their souls. Why do they choose
death rather than life? Because they are so closely
bedded in their element, that to be drawn out of it is to
be torn asunder. Such is the feeling of the captive soul:
and the answer which the possessing spirit suggests is,
"What have we to do with thee, thou Jesus; art thou
come to torment us before the time?" But the love of
Christ, when a repentant sinner casts himself confidently
upon it, melts the fastenings away, and makes the out,
gorne easy. When from the iron icy bondage, hope, the
THE HOPEFUL AND THE HOPELESS. 421
anchor of the soul, goes out, and up, and into Jesus our
Advocate within the veil, not only is ultimate safety
secured, but present severance accomplished. Down the
line of hope's hold flows a melting heat from the Sun of
righteousness, which loosens the gripe of sin, and sets the
soul at liberty. But the sentence remains sure; he who
is not so drawn out of wickedness, will be driven away
in it.
2. The hope of the just.—"The righteous hath hope in
his death." Certain it is that the faithful in ancient
times believed God, and it was counted to them for
righteousness; but at this distance of time we are not
able to determine how far their faith was like an appetite
of the renewed nature, and how far it attained to under-
standing also. The regenerate in the childhood state of
the Church were alive, and lived upon the sincere milk
of the word, and grew thereby, whatever the measure of
their knowledge or their ignorance may have been. The
righteousness that justified Abraham was the same as
that which Paul put on. The righteous of those days
knew that, by birth-right and personal desert, he was on
the same standing with the wicked, and that the difference
was due to redeeming love. If Israel's first-born were not
destroyed like Egypt's, it was because of the Lamb's blood
marking their dwellings. On the ground of a perfect
righteousness imputed, an actual obedience begins. He is
bought with a price, and therefore serves the Lord. By
birthright he was a child of wrath: he has been "be-
gotten again into a living hope." This man has hope at
the time when humanity needs it most--when death draws
422 THE TWO DEPARTURES—
near. A friend in need is a friend indeed. Stars are a
grateful mitigation of the darkness; but we do not want
them by day. Hope, always lovely, is then sweetest
when it beams from heaven through the gloom that
gathers round the grave.
There are diversities in this department of the Spirit's
ministry. Some even of the children depart under a
cloud, and others in sunlight, softer at the setting than it
was at noon. Some are glad when they are passing
through the flood, and others do not begin their song till
they are safe on the farther shore. The various notes of
their varied experience, when the redeemed tell the story
of their life, will give richer music to the hymns of
heaven.
There is one class of experiences of which many ex-
amples occur. A youth who has been seeking first the
kingdom of God with alternate hope and fear, but without
violent emotions on either side, comes suddenly and un-
expectedly in sight of death. There is at first, and for a
time, a very great tumult of alarm. When that tumult
subsides, a peace that passeth all understanding keeps the
heart and mind, until the spirit is released from flesh, and
darts away.
The ship has set sail, and kept on her course many
days and nights, with no other incidents than those that
are common to all. Suddenly land appears; but what
the character of the coast may be, the voyagers cannot
discern through the tumult. The first effect of a neat
approach to land is a very great commotion in the water,
It is one of the coral islands of the. South Pacific, en-
THE HOPEFUL AND THE HOPELESS. 423
circled by a ring of fearful breakers at some little dis-
tance from the shore. Forward the ship must go. The
waves are higher and angrier than any they have seen in
the open sea. Partly through them, partly over them,
they are borne at a bound; strained and giddy, and
almost senseless, they find themselves within that sentinel
ridge of crested waves that guard the shore, and the por-
tion of sea that still lies before them is calm and clear like
glass. It seems a lake of paradise, and not an earthly
thing at all. It is inexpressibly sweet to lie on its bosom,
after the long voyage and the barrier ridge. All the
heavens are mirrored in the water, and along its edge
lies a flowery land. Across the belt of sea the ship glides
gently, and gently touches soon that lovely shore.
It is thus that I have seen a true pilgrim thrown into
a great tumult when the shore of eternity suddenly ap-
peared before him. A great fear tossed and sickened
him for some days; but when that barrier was passed,
he experienced a peace deeper, stiller, sweeter, than any
be ever knew before. A little space of life's voyage
remained, after the fear of death had sunk into a calm,
and before the immortal felt the solid of eternal rest. On
life's sea, as yet, was the spirit lying, but the shaking had
ceased; and when at last the spirit passed from a peace-
ful sea to a peaceful land, the change seemed slight. The
righteous had hope in his death. "Blessed hope!"
424 THE TRUTH IN LOVE.
XCV.
THE TRUTH IN LOVE.
"A soft answer turneth away wrath;
but grievous words stir up anger."—xv. 1.
WE greatly need an instrument capable of turning away
wrath, for there is much wrath in the world to be turned
away. It is assumed here that the anger is sinful in
character, or excessive in degree; but there are occasions
in which a good man may do well to be angry. It is
recorded of Jesus once, in the days of his flesh, that He
was angry; but the explanation is immediately added,
He was "grieved for the hardness of their hearts" (Mark
iii. 5). It is safe for a disciple "to follow the Lamb
whithersoever He goeth." If all our anger were grief
for sin, and grief for sin our only anger, the emotion
wound neither displease God nor disturb men. If our
love were like Christ's, our anger would be like his too.
In the meantime, most of the anger that prevails is sin-
ful and dangerous. On that side there is especial need
for watching and prayer, lest we enter into temptation.
We are on dangerous ground when we are contending
in our own cause. A man may indeed, through divine
grace, rule his spirit aright even there; but it is his wis-
dom to be jealous of himself. Self-love ties a bandage
on the eyes of the understanding, and then leads the
blind astray. A great part of the danger lies in the sud-
denness of the explosion. To obtain a delay of a few
THE TRUTH IN LOVE. 425
moments is half of the victory. "He that is slow to
wrath is of great understanding; but he that is hasty of
spirit exalteth folly" (xiv. 29). Some knowledge of
human nature is displayed in the advice once given to a
passionate man, to count a hundred after he felt the fire
burning within, before he permitted it to blaze forth by
his lips. The monitor shrewdly calculated that in many
instances the passion would cool down during the inter-
val, and the explosion be altogether prevented. An im-
provement on that method might be suggested. Instead of
securing merely an empty interval, fill it with an air that
the flame of anger cannot live in—fill it up with prayer.
Employ the same space of time in prayer for yourself and
for the offenders. Nehemiah adopted this method to
subdue another passion. He was oppressed by fear.
The Jewish captive betrayed his patriotism before the
despot, and symptoms of the royal displeasure appeared.
"Then was very sore afraid." Then and there, how-
ever, notwithstanding the monarch's presence, Nehemiah
"prayed to the God of heaven." Courage came, and
wisdom with it. He asked skilfully, and obtained his
desire (Neh. ii) The same resource would afford deliver-
ance when anger is the passion that suddenly assails.
After praying to "our Father" for your offending brother
and yourself; you may speak to him safely. "The
Christian's vital breath" is fatal to all the spawn of the
serpent. Pass your resentment through a period of com-
munion with Him who bought you with his blood, and it
will come out like Christ'' a simple grief for a brother's
sin, and a holy jealousy for truth.
426 THE TRUTH IN LOVE.
In some such way should we treat our aim anger; but
how shall we meet the anger of other people. Turn it
away by a soft answer. In man as he is, a sally of wrath
from another seems to produce a similar sally in return,
as naturally as a mountain-side gives back an echo of
the sound that strikes it. If you listen to the quarrel of
two men or women who have neither been purified by
Christian principle, nor smoothed by a liberal education,
you will observe the working of the natural law. Wrath
generates grievous words, and grievous words aggravate
the wrath that produced them. The reciprocating series
goes on, until some accident break the chain, or the sounds
die away from the exhaustion of the combatants.
There is an instrument for receiving anger on, so as to
make it harmlessly expend its force, like lightning led
by a conducting rod into the ground; and even if there
be a rebound at first, the force gradually melts away, like
a dying echo from a single sound. That patent shield
for warding off the sharp strokes of wrath, is "a soft
answer." Christianity makes it of the solid metal, and
education supplies at a cheaper rate a plated article, use-
ful as long as it lasts, and as far as it goes. The prin-
ciple: of softness increasing the strength of a defence is
common to the physical and moral departments of the
world. The Roman battering ram, when it had nearly
effected a breach in walls of solid stone, was often baffled
by bags of chaff and beds of down skilfully spread
out to receive its stubborn blow. By that stratagem
the besieged obtained a double benefit, and the be-
siegers suffered a double disappointment. The strokes
THE TRUTH IN LOVE; 427
that were given proved harmless, and the engine was
soon withdrawn. In our department a similar law
exists, and a similar experience will come out of it. If
the person assailed hang out in time his soft answer;
the first stroke will not hurt him; and the second will
never come.
In the effort to avoid one extreme, however, we must
beware lest we fall into another. Mere softness will not
do. The down beds of the besieged. Jews within Jeru-
salm would have been no defence against the battering
rams of Titus, if there had not been a solid wall of
masonry behind them. A glove of velvet should cover
the hand of iron, but an iron hand should be within the
velvet glove. Faithfulness naked, may in its effect be
little better than vulgar obstinacy; and gentleness un-
supported, may, in the miscellaneous strife of time, count
for nothing more than lack of courage; but when faith-
fulness is gentle in its form, and gentleness faithful in its
substance, these two meet helps, made one in a marriage
union, constitute the best preparation which man's im-
perfect state permits, for meeting rough jostling in the
moving crowd of life. Truth alone may be hated; and
love alone despised: men will flee from the one, and
trample on the other; but when truth puts on love, and
love leans on truth, in that hallowed partnership lies the
maximum of defensive moral power within the reach of
man in the present world.
There is a contrivance to prevent the destructive colli-
sion of carriage against carriage in a railway train, which
human beings might profitably imitate. On the outer
428 THE TRUTH IN LOVE.
extremities, where they are liable to strike against each
other, there is a soft spongy covering. Within, and at
the very centre, is a spring, strong, but yielding; yield-
ing, but strong. There is both a soft surface without,
and an elastic spring in the heart. If the impact of an-
other body were met by mere hard unyielding strength,
both would fly into splinters at the first shock. On the
other hand, if there were in one of the carriages softness
only, with no recuperative spring, the others would soon
drive it from the rails, or crush it to pieces. The de-
stroyed carriage would be lost to the owners, and its
debris would cause additional mischief These machines
move in company like ourselves, and they move quickly,
and jostle each other by the way. The managers have
marked the danger, and made skilful provision for esca-
ing it. They take advantage of the great pervasive law,
that firmness and softness united in each is the best
arrangement for the safety of all.
The apparatus employed to keep these mute racers off
each other, in the swift course of life, might almost be
counted a modification of our great law, "speaking the
truth in love." Although the two departments lie so
far asunder, a parallelism is plainly perceptible in their
laws. One inventing mind is at the fountainhead of
creation, and the so-called discoveries, in the various de-
partments, are so many drops from its diverging streams.
It seems a reversal of the usual order, and yet we are
assured the rule is reasonable and useful;—observe how
carriages on a railway keep their own places, kindly
meeting, yet firmly repelling every blow from a neigh-
THE TRUTH IN LOVE. 429
hour in the rapid race. Observe how they do, and do
likewise.
A little girl came to her mother one day and inquired,
in a tone which showed that the words were not words
of course, if every word of the Bible is true. "Yes, child;
but wherefore do you ask?" "Because the Bible says, a
soft answer turneth away wrath; and when Charlotte
spoke to me in a rage, I gave her a soft answer, but it
did not turn away her wrath." It was a natural, but a
childish thought. It is true that such is the tendency of
a soft answer,—in that direction it puts forth a power;
but, alas, that power is often exerted without effect on a
callous heart. "The goodness of God," says the Scrip-
ture, "leadeth thee to repentance" (Romans ii. 4). Many
who distinctly feel its drawing refuse to follow it. The
obstinate perish unrepentant, and yet the word is true.
The most important practical rule, for our guidance
under provocation, is to consider, not how hard a blow
we can deal in return, consistently with a character for
Christian meekness, but how far we can yield, without
being faithless to truth and to God. In view of our own
corruption, and the temptations that abound, a leaning to
this side seems the safest for a Christian man. But when
all rules fail to reach the case, let us have recourse to
the great Example. He walked over our life-path, in
order that we might have His foot-prints to guide us.
Alike in love of good, and resentment against evil, the
Master's conduct is the disciple's rule.
"Be ye followers of God, as dear children" (Eph. v. 1).
The word is "imitators," and we know what that means
430 THE TRUTH IN LOVE.
in the instincts and habits a loved and loving child.
Our Father in heaven has given us an example, and if we
have the spirit of dear children, Our constant impulse and
tendency will be to do as. He has done. This lifts out
eyes at once to the deepest counsel of eternity—the
greatest event of time. To the enmity against Himself,
which reigned and raged in human kind, God replied by
sending His Son, to seek and save them. Look unto
Jesus, and learn, the answer from heaven to the auger of
earth. Jesus is God's answer to the wrath of man. The
answer is soft, and yet it is the greatest power that can
be applied—the only power that will prevail to turn the
wrath away, and win the wrathful back to love.
Please report any errors to Ted Hildebrandt:
ted.hildebrandt@gordon.edu